Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe 2 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe 3 Video Vortex Reader II: moving images beyond YouTube Editors: Geert Lovink and Rachel Somers Miles Copy Editor: Nicole Heber Design: Katja van Stiphout Cover Image: Team Thursday, Rotterdam Printer: Ten Klei, Amsterdam Video Publisher: Institute of Network Cultures, Amsterdam 2011 ISBN: 978-90-78146-12-4 Vortex Contact Reader II Institute of Network Cultures phone: +3120 5951866 Moving fax: +3120 5951840 email: info@networkcultures.org iMages web: http://www.networkcultures.org Beyond Order a copy of this book by sending an email to: books@networkcultures.org youtuBe edited By A PDF of this publication can be downloaded freely at: GeeRt LoVInk and http://www.networkcultures.org/publications/inc-readers RacheL someRs mILes Join the Video Vortex mailing list at: http://www.listcultures.org inC ReadeR #6 Supported by: the School for Communication and Design at the Amsterdam University of Applied Sciences (Hogeschool van Amsterdam DMCI). The Video Vortex Reader is produced as part of the Culture Vortex research program, which is supported by Foundation Innovation Alliance (SIA - Stichting Innovatie Alliantie). Thanks to Andreas Treske, Dan Oki, Bram Crevits and the Video Vortex Steering Committee for their valuable input and editorial support. Thanks to our Culture Vortex partners: MediaLAB Amsterdam, Netherlands Institute for Sound and Vision, Netherlands Media Art Institute, Virtueel Platform, VPRO, Amsterdam City Archives, Museum Boijmans van Beuningen, IDFA, and the Urban Screens Association. (http://networkcultures.org/culturevortex/) Special thanks to all the authors for their contributions, and to Nicole Heber for her copy editing. This publication is licensed under the Creative Commons Attribution Noncommercial No Derivative Works 3.0 Netherlands License. To view a copy of this license, visit: http://creativecommons.org/licenses/by-nc-nd/3.0/nl/deed.en No article in this reader may be reproduced in any form by any electronic or mechanical means without permission in writing from the author. 4 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe 5 contents Geert Lovink Engage in Destiny Design: Online Video Beyond Hypergrowth: The INC reader series are derived from conference contributions and produced by the Introduction to Video Vortex Reader II 9 Institute of Network Cultures. They are available in print and PDF form. theoRy & aesthetiCs Video Vortex Reader II is the sixth publication in the series. Stefan Heidenreich Previously published INC Readers: Vision Possible: A Methodological Quest for Online Video 13 Andreas Treske INC Reader #5: Scott McQuire, Meredith Martin and Sabine Niederer (eds), Frames within Frames - Windows and Doors 25 Urban Screens Reader, 2009. Robrecht Vanderbeeken This reader is the first book to focus entirely on the topic of urban screens. Offering Web Video and the Screen as a Mediator and Generator of Reality 35 texts from a range of leading theorists to case studies on artist projects, as well as Vito Campanelli screen operators’ and curators’ experiences, this collection offers a rich resource for The DivX Experience 51 exploring the intersections of digital media, cultural practices and urban space. Sarah Késenne Regarding the Sex, Lies and Videotapes of Others: Memory, Counter-Memory, INC Reader #4: Geert Lovink and Sabine Niederer (eds), and Mystified Relations 61 Video Vortex Reader: Responses to YouTube, 2008. iMages on the Move This reader is a collection of critical texts dealing with the rapidly emerging world of online video – from its explosive rise in 2005 with YouTube, to its future as Gabriel Menotti Objets Propagés: The Internet Video as an Audiovisual Format 70 a significant form of personal media. Andrew Gryf Paterson INC Reader #3: Geert Lovink and Ned Rossiter (eds), From a Pull-down Screen, Fold-up Chairs, a Laptop and a Projector: MyCreativity Reader: A Critique of Creative Industries, 2007. The Development of Clip Kino Screenings, Workshops and Roles in Finland 81 This reader is a collection of critical research into the creative industries. The material Jan Simons develops out of the MyCreativity convention on International Creative Industries Re- Between iPhone and YouTube: Movies on the Move? 95 search held in Amsterdam, November 2006. This two-day conference sought to bring ColleCtion Case studies the trends and tendencies around the creative industries into critical question. Sandra Fauconnier Video Art Distribution in the Era of Online Video 108 INC Reader #2: Katrien Jacobs, Marije Janssen and Matteo Pasquinelli (eds), Evelin Stermitz C’LICK ME: A Netporn Studies Reader, 2007. ArtFem.TV: Feminist Artistic Infiltration of a Male Net Culture 126 This anthology collects the best material from two years of debate from ‘The Art and Mél Hogan Politics of Netporn’ 2005 conference to the 2007 ‘C’LICK ME’ festival. The C’LICK ME Crashing the Archive/Archiving the Crash: The Case of SAW Video’s Mediatheque 132 reader opens the field of ‘internet pornology’, with contributions by academics, artists and activists. Teague Schneiter Ethical Presentation of Indigenous Media in the Age of Open Video: Cultivating Collaboration, Sovereignty and Sustainability 147 INC Reader #1: Geert Lovink and Soenke Zehle (eds), Incommunicado Reader, 2005. asia online The Incommunicado Reader brings together papers written for the June David Teh 2005 conference ‘Incommunicado: Information Technology for Everybody The Video Agenda in Southeast Asia, or, ‘Digital, So Not Digital’ 162 Else’. The publication includes a CD-ROM of interviews with speakers. Ferdiansyah Thajib, Nuraini Juliastuti, Andrew Lowenthal and Alexandra Crosby A Chronicle of Video Activism and Online Distribution in Post-New Order Indonesia 178 Download a free PDF of the readers from: Larissa Hjorth www.networkcultures.org/publications/inc-readers Still Mobile: Networked Mobile Media, Video Content and Users in Seoul 195 6 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe 7 teChnologiCal appRoaChes Matthew Williamson Degeneracy in Online Video Platforms 211 Andrew Clay Blocking, Tracking, and Monetizing: YouTube Copyright Control and the Downfall Parodies 219 Tara Zepel Cultural Analytics at Work: The 2008 U.S. Presidential Online Video Ads 234 Rachel Somers Miles Free, Open and Online: An Interview with Denis Roio aka Jaromil 250 Alejandro Duque Streaming Counter Currents: ‘W.A.S.T.E’ 258 politiCs & huMan Rights Sam Gregory Cameras Everywhere: Ubiquitous Video Documentation of Human Rights, New Forms of Video Advocacy, and Considerations of Safety, Security, Dignity and Consent 268 Elizabeth Losh Shooting for the Public: YouTube, Flickr, and the Mavi Marmara Shootings 283 online video aRt Brian Willems Increasing the Visibility of Blindness: Natalie Bookchin’s Mass Ornament 293 Natalie Bookchin and Blake Stimson Out in public: Natalie Bookchin in Conversation with Blake Stimson 306 Linda Wallace non-western and garland 318 Perry Bard When Film and Database Collide 322 Cecilia Guida YouTube as a Subject: Interview with Constant Dullaart 330 Rosa Menkman Glitch Studies Manifesto 336 Albert Figurt The Thin Line Between On and Off: a (re:)cyclothymic exploration 348 appendiCes Video Vortex Conferences 356 Video Vortex III in Ankara Video Vortex IV in Split Video Vortex V in Brussels Video Vortex VI in Amsterdam Author Biographies 372 8 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe 9 enGaGe In DestIny DesIGn: onLIne VIDeo BeyonD hypeRGRowth intRoduCtion to video voRtex ReadeR ii GeeRt LoVInk ‘The automatic carriage-return on the typewriter, electronic central locking of cars: these are the things that count. The rest is just theory and literature’. – Jean Baudrillard 1 This second Video Vortex Reader marks the transition of online video into the mainstream. Staggering statistics of hypergrowth no longer impress us. Discussing a possible online video project for the first time in late 2006 in Melbourne with Seth Keen, the topic was still a matter of ‘becoming’. One collaborative research project, six conferences and two anthologies later, the Video Vortex project seems at a crossroads. Massive usage is not an indication of relevance. Heavy use does not automatically translate into well-funded research or critical art practices. Is the study of online video, like most new media topics, doomed to remain a niche activity – or will we see a conceptual quantum leap, in line with the billions of clips watched daily? So far, there is no evidence of a dialectical turn from quantity into quality. It is remarkable how quickly both pundits and cultural elites became used to online video libraries containing millions of mini-films. In our ‘whatever’ culture nothing seems to surprise us. Who cares about the internet? Continuous technological revolution, from social networking to smartphones, seems to have numbed us down. B-S-B: Boredom-Surprise-Boredom. Instead of an explosion of the collective imaginary we witness digital disillusion – a possible reason why online theory has had a somewhat unspectacular start. The low quality of YouTube’s most popular videos certainly indicates that this platform is not a hotbed of innovative aesthetics. What are the concerns here? Was will das Medium? Are we condemned to fight over the exact percentage of user-generated content in comparison to remediated film and television material? Will online video remain a jukebox item that is passed from one social network to the next? Have we all switched from zapping to searching? Should we approach the potential of YouTube culture from the plasma screen angle? Is the final destination to be found in the living room, where the online video logic starts to compete with cable and free-to-air television? Is online video liberating us from anything? Instead of trying merely to measure this ever-changing field, we can also try to define future scenarios. Let’s dig into the destiny of online video and discuss three possible directions: 1. Jean Baudrillard, Cool Memories: Volume 1, trans. Chris Turner, London; New York: Verson, 1990, p.191. 10 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe 11 1) Because of their financial and legal muscle, television and film industries will create outcome of the above three scenarios, Video Vortex sends out a call to become platform- a coalition with the aim of marginalizing online video platforms such as YouTube. This specific. What are the unique characteristics of online video? Is it the ability to link and will not be done by taking them offline or through copyright court cases but by creating comment on such files? Or rather the indifferent time and space coordinates of the visual appealing online viewing applications that link the comfort of the home theatre with the experience? In his work An Introduction to Visual Culture, Nicholas Mirzoeff asks: mobility of smartphones. Easy-to-use payment systems and new models of advertising combined with internet fibres into home will do the trick. Online video as we know it Can the writing of the digital present and its implied futures only be accomplished by right now is still too closely tied to the multitasking practices of the PC-bound computer a counterhistory that refuses to tell a history of progress? How do we write a history of user who, like a cybernetic commander, sits on a chair behind a desk. In this scenario something that changes so fast it can seem like a full-time job keeping up, let alone online video is recognized as a disruptive technology-in-transition, that will nonetheless learning the softwares? 2 be unable to survive because its values are too deeply rooted in a white-male-geek cul- ture that doesn’t accommodate the busy lives of the billions who demand easy access In an age where the gap between subculture and Main St. has closed, the avant-garde to instant infotainment and seamless interfaces. can only respond to yesterday’s pop culture. Let’s investigate the myriad smartphones, notebooks, laptops, car LCD screens, flip down monitors, portable video players, pocket 2) Following the rhetoric of heroism of the mighty battle of Old against New, many insiders PCs and handheld TVs. Beyond the often moralistic critique of gadget fetishism we need believe online video will emerge as the great winner. Google, Facebook and Twitter are to upgrade and focus that which John Berger terms our ‘ways of seeing’, and start to the media companies of the Web 2.0 era. But how will this corporate reality translate describe what our contemporary culture actually consists of. We are simultaneously pro- into future ownership of the visual? Cyber-evangelists emphasize the move away from ducing and consuming moving images wherever we are. Italian artist Albert Figurt has dead content to interaction and aggregation. It is all about clicking, linking and liking, achieved this in his brilliant Notre Cam de Paris video .3 We see tourists walking through the in short, ‘the social’ that generates value. The more visual material aligns itself with Notre Dame cathedral in Paris, filming and taking pictures. The video carefully observes users by facilitating ‘clouds of meaning’, as YouTube and Flickr do, the more they will the way the bodies of these camera laymen adjust themselves to the camera: arms moving dominate the future media markets. The parasitic strategy which promotes ‘free’ and and stretching in order to zoom in or out of the sculptures or glass windows they are trying ‘open’ helps us to navigate the plenitude of images. The result is a culture of indiffer- to capture. Figurt makes us aware not only of the mass production of visual material but ence towards retro-futurism. It no longer matters if content is old or new, as long as we of the condition of the image as flexible techno-extension of the body. exchange our micro-impressions. Instead of travelling to and from a visual experience, such as the cinema or PC on a desk, 3) I n the third scenario we are already in the midst of a Hundred Years Civil War between we watch a film in the subway, car or airplane to kill time – and intensify our everyday life. platforms and corporations competing for the user’s attention. As a never-ending event The long predicted ‘totale Mobilmachung’ of visual culture has finally arrived. With the of non-compatibility and built-in obsolescence, we live in this techno-media drama spreading of the videophone and MP4 players, the film-video-TV complex is now travel- as an epos without clear winners – unless the overall picture radically changes. Right ling with us and is becoming part of the intimate sphere of the Self. We carry the image now, market expansion in all directions is still possible through ‘emerging’ markets in device in our pockets, close to our body, and watch it within close range of our face. It is Asia, Africa, the Middle East and Latin America. But this spectacular growth might fool the intensity of this solitary watching whilst on the move, in bed, and at the kitchen table us. The Attention War is real. We all participate by making choices – and contribut- that is defining the online video experience. ing our micro-data to online video (or not) is only one of many platforms to which we dedicate our time. Online video is merely a manifestation of hardware, software and So far it has not been the ‘live’ element that interests us here at Video Vortex. Live stream- network configurations, an endless helical chain of codecs, protocols and models that ing, though technically within the realm of the possible, has not yet taken off. We watch generates its own ‘auto poetic’ aesthetics. In this case, ‘new media’ will co-exist next clips, reports and movies in the time-space coordinates of our liking. Video has gone to television and film for some time to come. Digital convergence will only happen on viral but has not yet deeply penetrated the social networking experience. Even embed- a back office level. Concepts such as cross, trans, locative or geo media will be only ded, video remains something outside that we recommend and ‘like’. The worlds of user- short-lived business memes. In this Machiavellian view, media have no ‘telos’. It is all generated content and the Skype telephone system have not yet met, even though both of about power and resources—a cynical play that most idealistic and utopian new media them have hundreds of millions of users. The radical banality of Chatroulette has also not actors do not know about, or want to respond to. yet been seen as a video input signal. We could blame this on the poor image quality and This reader will offer clues that point in various directions, from comparative platform stud- ies to a theory of windows and frames. Beyond theorizing possibilities, the texts found here 2. Nicholas Mirzoeff, An Introduction to Visual Culture, 2nd edition, New York: Routledge, 2009, p. 241. move towards the description of concrete artworks and case studies. Regardless of the 3. http://vimeo.com/18662693. 12 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 13 the high drop-out rate, but more likely it is the single media ideology (in this case recorded VIsIon possIBLe: a methoDoLoGIcaL Quest video signals) most of us are encapsulated by that prevents us from making the perverse foR onLIne VIDeo connections that are overlooked by business engineers. stefan heIDenReIch During the first years of online video research, most attention was dedicated to Henry Jenkins’ uncritical appraisal of ‘participatory culture’, and to the ‘cult of the amateur’ response. Despite the criticism supplied by figures such as Cass Sunstein, Andrew Keen and Jaron Lanier, the ‘most watched’ logic is still dominant in the academic cultural stud- ies approaches. Instead of deploying pessimistic judgements against optimistic marketeer Beginnings talk, it could be more interesting to closely investigate the messy online reality. In the early Early Cinema 1970s Jean Baudrillard defined mass media as ‘speech without response’. These days, Beginnings are delusive. When the Lumière brothers invented cinema, they were in a hurry messages only exist if they are indexed by search engines, retweeted with shortened URLs, – and not only because so many others were about to come up with the same idea. In fact, forwarded through emails and RSS feeds, liked at Facebook, recommended through Digg one year before their famous first screening in 1895, short movie clips were already on dis- or, we must not forget, commented on the page itself. Media without response seem to be play in Edison’s slot-machines, and Edison’s engineer William Dickson had even proposed unthinkable. The second Video Vortex Reader takes you to this second stage of the online projecting these moving images. This could be considered another origin of moviemaking. video experience. Enjoy! But the story of cinema took another turn than that which the Lumière brothers anticipated. They were convinced that the moving image would become just another of the short-lived spectacles seen at fairs and markets. Their business idea consisted of the simple plan to reach as many areas as possible with traveling teams before competitors could show up, and before the attention of the public shifted to another attraction. So they conceived an RefeRenCes incredible apparatus designed to record, develop, and project the short clips. They trained their cameramen and sent them out to all parts of the globe. That is the reason why there are Baudrillard, Jean. Cool Memories: Volume 1, trans. Chris Turner, London; New York: Verson, 1990. so many very early films from different places on earth. But when the cinema became a big Mirzoeff, Nicholas. An Introduction to Visual Culture, 2nd edition, New York: Routledge, 2009. industry, the Lumière brothers were caught by surprise and dropped out. Very soon after the Lumières’ first movie projectors were set up in theatres, people started to screen programs of short clips. During the early years, cinema underwent considerable changes, not only aesthetically but also in the way movies were produced. The famous turn from documentaries to fiction is closely linked to demand surpassing supply. This, in turn, led to a wave of professionalization. Soon, early cinema looked like a clumsy predecessor of the smooth continuity introduced by the editing technology to come. Early YouTube Given the unpredictable history of moving images, can the history of early cinema teach us anything about the future of online video? The speed of globalization and the short duration of the early movies due to technical constraints are two of many characteristics shared by early online video and early cinema. Plenty of formal similarities can be found, from the short formats to the focus of attractions and mishaps. There are even similarities between the different genres assembled in the programs of early cinema and YouTube’s classifications. 1 But mere comparison can be a trap, because the early phase of cinema did not disclose much about what happened to its future. Contrary to the assumptions of 1. See in detail Corinna Müller, ‘Variationen des Kinopgramms. Filmform und Filmgeschichte’, in Corinna Müller and Harro Segeberg (eds), Die Modellierung des Kinofilms, Munich, 1998, p. 43. 14 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 15 some media theorists, these initial moments – ‘Urszenen’ – do not reveal much about the restrictive mode of understanding only, and separates itself from practice. In fact, the present future. Therefore, one might rather need to ask: What are the lies early YouTube is trying situation almost obliges the humanities to overcome the division between interpretation and to tell us about the coming of online video? One fact seems certain: in the decades ahead, production .3 our contemporary online video culture and its gadgets will look as clumsy as early cinema appeared in comparison to what followed. In hindsight, all early films look like predecessors Media Theory and incomplete exercises. If this is what we can learn from the comparison of early cinema In the mid-1980s, most likely at the peak of technological diversity amongst analogue, half- and early YouTube, the main task consists of anticipating possible perspectives from which digital and fully digital new media, the traditional humanities in Germany were disrupted by to look back to our present situation. a new focus on technology. Regrettably, what had the potential to lead us out of the trap of a backwards-looking orientation and the split between theory and production soon fell prey to Method the usual course of academic trends. Less than ten years after Friedrich Kittler introduced After Interpretation the new approach to German literature studies, he was forced to acknowledge the ubiquitous When investigating culture, one is accustomed to engaging in a process of interpretation. presence of the term ‘media’. 4 Subsequently, the initial impulse was lost in the operational When researchers write about works of art, literature, theatre, music, or cinema they add procedures of academic administration. The term media turned into a discretionary keyword layers of comments. They try to understand. But understanding is a strange activity. It without theoretical specificity, but with the powerful promise of generating money for re- requires something to be understood, and so it seems naturally to direct attention towards search. And most of the books considering media theory fell back onto an intellectual terrain the past. Rituals of understanding seem to be tied to history. But historicization itself, as just from which Kittler had initially tried to depart. 5 The philological method of interpretation and one of many models of organizing an archive, spread to all kinds of disciplines only around the self-restriction to history prevailed. That is the main reason why media theory rarely had 1800. 2 Throughout the 19th century, the memory and historicization of cultural heritage much to say about media after 1950, let alone the internet. 6 constitutes one of the crucial steps in establishing a legitimate national identity. Yet, Kittler’s initial impulse would have allowed for something more. The backbone of this This shift is accompanied by another crucial turn concerning the invention of the subject approach was Kittler’s newly established cross-breeding of Foucault’s discourse analysis with in the modern sense. Institutional rituals of understanding were always grounded on the a media theory as envisioned by Marshall McLuhan. Foucault focuses on epistemological assumption of a divide between the figure of the creator and the passive believer. This and institutional settings and investigates figures or phenomena such as the author, the divide reappeared under different names: artist vs. beholder, author vs. reader, god vs. gaze, or the archive, according to their rules and practices. Technology remained a field believer. However, the divide has not been as wide at all times, and in relation to all institu- which Foucault almost entirely excluded from his considerations. But the general approach tions. Before 1750, the disciplines later to be replaced by the humanities taught rhetoric, of discourse analysis allows media and materiality to re-enter the picture. This is the use that dialectics, and grammar, which meant teaching to read and to write at the same time. Kittler makes of McLuhan’s theory of technology. By stating that ‘the medium is the message’, When the humanities in the modern sense were established around 1800 they followed McLuhan claims that any content may primarily fulfill the conditions of a specific technologi- the exegetic model of theology. Ever since, it has been taken for granted that artists do cal setup. In that sense, McLuhan’s approach resembles the perspective of Foucault, with not understand, whilst academics don’t know how to write or paint or make music. And to the only difference being that the Canadian sociologist speaks of technology whereas the return to the question of the subject, a term which had meant a person sub-jected to the French philosopher speaks about discourse. Both meet in questioning the conditions for the state’s power, now entered the scene of illumination and had to be educated in the newly existence of a statement, or of information. devised read-only-mode. One of the most striking failures of the theoretical approach of subsequent media theory was The split between writing and reading eventually came to be viewed as an achievement of its inability to recognize the upcoming importance of the internet in the 1990s. Instead, most the academic reforms in the 18th century. From then on, academic education had to serve of the disciples of media theory bothered merely with technical considerations concerning the institutional needs of the newly built nation states, shaping their cultural identity and the progress of computing powers. This led to the delusion that simulation would lead the providing for apt bureaucrats. The aesthetic education so emphatically favored by Schiller turned into a governmental effort. However, the discursive control enforcing the separation of practice and theory has weakened significantly in the last decade. With the declining 3. The recent cuts in the funding of U.K. universities speak a clear language here. How to react to power of the states one has to ask why we continue to have a cultural theory that follows the that, remains in question. 4. Friedrich Kittler, Aufschreibsysteme 1800/1900, München: Wilhelm Fink Verlag, 1995, p. 523. 5. See Friedrich Kittler, Austreibung des Geistes aus den Geisteswissenchaften, Paderborn: UTB Einleitung, 1980, pp. 7-13. 2. See Michel Foucault, The Order of Things: An Archaeology of the Human Sciences, London: 6. Geert Lovink develops this point in Zero Comments: Elemente einer kritischen Internetkultur, Routledge, 2002, pp. 235-240. trans. Andreas Kallfelz, Bielefeld: Transcript Verlag, 2008, p.145. 16 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 17 way, with the replacement of reality by a still-to-be-defined virtual world. Both the miscalcula- bricoleur who was active on both sides of the divide, as exemplified by Daguerre, Edison, or tions of the near future and the ignorance toward the internet were rooted in the fallacies of a more recent figures such as Bill Gates, Steve Jobs or Mark Zuckerberg. 8 simplified idea of linear historicity and the progress in computing power. When the expecta- tions of these theories proved inconsequential for the real world, most proponents withdrew Separating the two discursive fields of the social and the technological comes with the advan- to their academic careers, and returned to history, pre-history and an archaeology of media. tage of being able to observe both without interference. From this axiom, it follows that there is not something one could call a social use of media. Whatever social activities unfold in and After Media through media essentially constitute a mis-use; or in other words, a practice contradicting Media no longer determine our situation, as they did when Kittler first formulated his posi- the initial phantasies or purposes of technology. Far from postulating a strict technological tion. 7 This is not because they have lost their power to define. In fact, media have ceased determinism, the assumption of a technological a priori only prepares the ground upon which to exist, at least in their plurality. There are not many media left, but only one medium, as a great variety of data can circulate. 9 Instead of starting with a social a priori, one is able to different media have converged and fallen prey to a single network of computers. Therefore, describe the social sphere as a result of technologically shaped communication. Therefore the appearance of new media no longer continues to shape our situation. The media wars of media constitute the social sphere, and not the other way around. And media constitute a the past are over. If we look at the basics of technology now, there is not much change ahead, field of stability from which a coming environment can be imagined. and no diversity that would merit a closer theoretical observation. The current changes and developments are initiated by other factors like gadgets, network architectures, databases Hermeneutic Circle, Opposite Direction and applications. Most roads allow for two-way traffic. The hermeneutic circle is no exception to that rule. One always has to enter the circle from a given present situation, with a certain intention and with Despite this post-media situation, the original impulse of media theory as an approach that prejudices about what is to be understood. 10 In the circle we go back and forth between the enhances discourse analysis with a perspective on technology can still provide for a valid whole and the particular, the single work and its environment, and the work of art and the methodological basis. Of course, this method still comes with its own assumptions. One of historical situation it finds itself in. In doing so, we aim to understand both better, and in the the most discussed points of medium theory was its so-called technological determinism. end also our own situation. Driving this circle backwards would involve reference to works The argument as such is based mostly on a misunderstanding. Saying that media define to come, in their singularity as much as in their environment. Of course, the work does not our situation does not equal the statement that they completely determine it. Defining in yet exist; all we can do is to imagine it as a possible outcome. In order to facilitate that, one this respect rather means giving a systematic background for a variety of possibilities. The needs to anticipate an environment in which it could appear and survive. But this coming situation resembles an ecological system, where the conditions of climate and terrain define environment needs to be imagined, just as imagination is required to reconstruct the past. an environment for very many different species. In the same sense a technological system provides an environment for many different types of data, formats and contents. The point of departure remains the same. But what needs to be understood lies ahead. Future as well as past situations constitute a horizon for understanding. Going backwards On the other hand, early German media theory proposed a clear perspective on the relation through the hermeneutic circle, we still operate in front of the same horizon. Does the coming of the social sphere to the media. At their fundamentals, the field of media were thought to landscape differ from the one we left? We look at both from our present situation: as much be detached and independent from social activities. This is one of the core points at which as we imagine the horizon of the past in order to understand past works, we may imagine a media theory strictly separates itself from other related approaches, such as Bruno Latour’s horizon of coming possibilities. In the end it is us, writing and reading, who by imagination actor-network-theory. It is well known that one can describe any type of media as socially con- understand something about the present. Seen in hindsight from the possibilities ahead we structed. After all, technologies are invented, constructed, and built by humans. Therefore taking the media a priori seems to make a slightly unrealistic claim. However, considering the history of media, the claim can be supported by viewing the separation as an effect of a 8. This of course contradicts Jonathan Crary’s claim that the invention of photography was discursive break separating a discourse of technological invention from the social use later prefigured by a turn of attention: ‘My contention is that a reorganization of the observer occurs in the nineteenth century before the appearance of photography’. Instead the argument would run given to that invention. Historical evidence supports the claim that the discovery of a new the opposite way. It was the same use of technology that first created the conditions for the turn technology was never dependent merely on human desire or social need, but mostly hap- of attention towards the inner vision, as with Purkinje and Goethe, and then led to the random pened within a different discursive field before being more generally applied. The decisive discovery of photography by various inventors at the same time. See Jonathan Crary, Techniques step to bridge the gap between technical research and social practice required the figure of a of the Observer, Cambridge, Mass.: MIT Press, 1990, p.14. 9. This argument connects to a recent trend of materialist approaches within philosophy. Similar problems are extensively discussed, especially regarding the term arche-fossil, an artifact preceding all human perception, in Quentin Meillassoux, After Finitude, London: Continuum, 7. Kittler’s statement was that ‘Media determine our situation’. See Friedrich Kittler, Gramophone, 2008, p. 16. Film, Typewriter, Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1999, p.xxxix. 10. See Hans-Georg Gadamer, Truth and Method, London: Continuum, 1975, p. 270. 18 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 19 can not only conceive a possible work, but also look nostalgically back at our present. How but appears only behind the input and output of the circulation of information. Both data and clumsy and outdated will the coolest smartphone and the latest app appear when viewed 10 humans are embedded in a situation characterized by technological, economic, and politi- years from now? Perhaps this is what Maurizio Lazzarato means when he states: ‘We need a cal conditions. These constraints affect the ecology of communication, just as the climate nostalgia for the future’. 11 But this nostalgia should operate not within the realm of time, but conditions affect the natural environment. This comparison implies that climactic factors are within a sphere of possibilities. Our world creates relations of being that comprise a variety relatively impermeable to eco-systems, even though rare interdependencies might occur. of possibilities. 12 One can imagine these possibilities without relying on a concept of history. They remain possibilities, with no time-stamp, as options for an undefined future. This imagi- Reversible, Irreversible nation would allow us to turn a discipline of understanding hitherto solely preoccupied with The time of ecology differs radically from the modern idea of historical time, with its linear, things past, to engage with things to come. progressive movement. Uexküll subscribes to the historical model put forward by Leopold von Ranke, according to which each epoch stands for itself, and applies it to his own concept In constructing a possible world we may need to pay attention to an often overlooked factor. of an ecological system. 16 This claim cannot easily be transferred to technological environ- Whenever we watch a video, our eyes always tend to follow the moving object; the unchanged ments, as we see two distinct phenomena in relation to time and duration in this sphere. background is largely neglected. That is one of the reasons why a cut from movement to On the one hand, we do see progression in relation to technological developments. Moore’s movement escapes our attention. We have the impression of gliding smoothly over the visual law, according to which the quantity of transistors that fit on an integrated circuit will double disruption. The correlate to this attitude is the approach of trend-research, which focuses en- roughly every two years, is one of the most famous progressions. And even if his law does not tirely on moving targets. But in order to see the full picture, and to be able to project from the hold true indefinitely, it is safe to assume that computers will increase in processing speed, present to its future possibilities, all those parameters that remain unchanged are as worthy rather than slow down. On the other hand, the biological elements of the equation, such as of attention as are moving objects. the human body, can be taken as more or less unchanged. Environment Between these two sides are a field of rapidly changing phenomena, of which some engage An Ecology of Communication in a game of progress or at least claim to do so, others appear only temporarily, and others The term environment is not meant to evoke a strictly biological world, nor am I referring to remain stable. Some events are irreversible, others are reversible. Thinking in terms of revers- the current metaphors of bios discussed in relation to theories of bio-politics. Nor is it used ibility creates a very different idea of the future compared to the modernist myths of progress. because it is simply ‘one of the most expressive terms language currently has to indicate the A model of progress looks for irreversibilities only. But the imagination of a possible ecology of massive and dynamic interrelation of processes and objects, beings and things, patterns and communication must build on the balance of reversibilities and irreversibilities. matter’. 13 Instead, I want to propose to return to the notion introduced by the biologist Jakob von Uexküll in his model of ecology. 14 In his sense, an environment connects the physical Institutions and Economy and material conditions with the sensual perception and actions of a living being. The envi- Imposing a fixed structure on time is linked, on a macro level, to the administration of the ronment consists of a world full of constraints and possibilities, perceived by the senses and archive, and, on a micro level, to the division of labour. This has always been a matter of the memory of a living organism. An ecological system is not meant to create an unspecified institutions: the temple, the state, or the company. One might even reverse this relation, and interconnectedness, but has a very precise definition. 15 propose that institutions – both empires 17 and companies – were invented and could only exist as entities that structure and reign over time. Technical media can be seen to constitute an environment in which data of different types circulate almost as living beings, specified by codes, protocols, and formats, and by the type What has this point to do with online video? Video operates in time. But this time is not just of connection these establish with humans. The social sphere is not excluded from this world, there. It is created as an interwoven pattern of duration stretching over very different dis- tances. As much as the length of the feature film was something that emerged at a certain point in cinematic history, the historical model of the description of film and other arts itself 11. Maurizio Lazzarato, Videophilosophie, Berlin: b_books, 2002, p. 81. emerged at a certain moment in the past. Economic entities require a different approach 12. Of course, a model of that type includes a different idea of temporality, which relates back to very towards time than institutions such as the nation state. Whilst, for the latter, historical time is old models such as Nicolas of Cusa: Trialogus de possest, 1460. almost a precondition of its own existence, the company needs only to secure an operational 13. Matthew Fuller, Media Ecologies: Materialist Energies in Art and Technoculture, Cambridge, time that extends from investment to return. Mass: MIT Press, 2005, p.2. 14. For an introductory reading see, Jakob von Uexküll, Streifzüge durch die Umwelten von Tieren und Menschen / Bedeutungslehre, Hamburg: Rowohlt, 1956, p. 30. 15. With political implications, as Giorgio Agamben has shown in The Open, Stanford, CA.: Stanford 16. Uexküll, Streifzüge durch die Umwelt von Tieren und Menschen, p. 150. University Press, 2004, p.39. 17. S ee Harold Innis, Empire and Communication, Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1950. 20 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 21 From this basic relation derives a certain bias regarding content. Whilst the content of but we do need to be aware that the turn towards attention and participation is not some- the classical arts, as theatre, visual art or music, always had to legitimize itself against the thing that users all of a sudden voted for. Rather, it is an effect of an altered technical setup. historical horizon – and the disciplines of understanding formed part of this process of judgement – the capitalist and commercial arts were legitimized through their success on Aesthetics of Art the market. Both incentives clashed throughout the 20th century, leading to almost oppos- The production mode of art dates back to pre-industrial manufacturing, and managed to pre- ing aesthetic results. In the recent past a third model emerged, which followed neither the serve manual forms of 19th century production against the upcoming commercial culture. parameter of early 19th century state culture, nor the 20th century model of commercial Without the steady support of state-funded institutions such as the museum, the theatre, culture. or the opera this mode would most likely have vanished. The state did not only provide the economic basis for art, but also the ideological and discursive frame. In a state-run system, Aesthetics and Production ultimate value does not consist in marketable success, but in the admission of the author Production Modes and its work to the institutions of national cultural heritage. Many of the myths of modernism Describing the development of Hollywood Cinema, Janet Staiger identified three major ele- are built on the figure of the starving artist, who achieves fame and glory after their death. ments involved in what she termed the ‘Hollywood mode of production’. These were: ‘1) the Obviously, this story adapts Christian mythology to modern conditions. labor force, 2) the means of production, and 3) the financing of production’. 18 During the first four decades of the cinema industry, various modes replaced each other. Positions and At first, the moving image was not affected by the modernist conception of art, thriving in a professions such as cameraman, director, or producer imposed their own regimes upon the commercial environment. It was only during moments of crisis that the aesthetic value of art set. Out of engineering companies, cinemas, and distributors grew the larger institutions was emphasized and activated. On these occasions, the regime of modernism was extended running the business. The names of the screenwriter, of the company, of the actor, and of into cinema. The film d’art of early cinema borrowed plots from classical literature in order to the director are still advertised to the public, but mainly for marketing reasons. From short entice a better educated public. However, this movement quickly failed at the box office. We scenes, to staged events and chase sequences, narratives eventually turn into feature- are still waiting for something similar to happen on YouTube. However, the experimental films length movies. As Staiger’s model makes clear, technical changes were closely related to of the 1920s and 1930s which attempted to apply modernist aesthetics to cinema were more aesthetic and formal solutions. successful, at least viewed within the modernist framing of art. Directors such as Sergej Ei- senstein, Hans Richter, and Dziga Vertov figure significantly in canonical histories of cinema The possibility of comparing these early forms to the short formats of contemporary YouTube to this day. There are even cinematic histories that openly neglect commercial aesthetics and video is indeed appealing. But such a simple comparison would lead to false conclusions. restrict their view strictly to artistic modes of production. 19 History does not repeat itself on every level. The forces that drive history are comparable, insofar as they depend on basic technological means and human desires. Therefore, un- Lev Manovich attempts to transfer the operational mode of cinema to new media in general. covering patterns of repetition requires a degree of abstraction. It is possible to generalize ‘The theory and history of cinema’, he writes, ‘serve as the key conceptual “lens” though Staiger’s tripartite model of film production to online video, if we take ‘generalize’ to mean which I look at new media’. 20 In fact, Manovich does not consider cinema in general, but fo- reconsidering her patterns and figures, comprehending the modes in more general terms, cuses mainly on the experimental movie artists of the 1920s, such as Vertov. But that narrow extending their application beyond the historical example and, if necessary, adding param- focus overlooks one often disregarded fact: such movies were neither very successful, nor eters omitted due to the specificity of early cinema. did they have a great impact on the development of film aesthetics. They remain an isolated side-stream of film production, mainly addressed to an art public. Art and avant-garde mov- This project becomes even more urgent as business models based on reproduction are ies operate under the regime of history, which was inflicted upon art in the early 19th century replaced by economies of attention and participation. From the perspective of discursive and remained valid throughout the reign of modernism. Their aesthetic contradicts what media theory, the terms attention and participation do not arise independently, but rely on established itself as the dominant form, and is still evident in contemporary cinema. Instead, technological parameters. The focus on attention arises with a turn in the relations of sup- avant-garde film-makers relied on the available and well tested modern methods of painterly ply and demand, which has suddenly shifted the bottleneck of scarcity to the user’s side. abstraction and experimental style. And they achieved what they aimed for: no success in Participation, and what is often called Web 2.0, depends on improved computing power terms of revenue, but a secure place in the history of (art) cinema. on the server-side of networks. Thus, the terms participation and attention frame technical developments in anthropocentric speech. This is not to state that the terms are misleading, 18. Janet Staiger, ‘The Hollywood Mode of Production to 1930’, in David Bordwell, Janet Staiger and 19. For example Gilles Deleuze, The Time-image, London: Athlone, 1986. No surprise, from him Kristin Thompson, The Classical Hollywood Cinema: Film Style and Mode of Production to 1960, ‘the history of cinema is a long martyrology’, p. xiv. London: Routledge, 1988, p.89. 20. Lev Manovich, The Theory of New Media, Cambridge, Mass.: MIT Press, 2001, p. 9. 22 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 23 Aesthetics of Commerce scarcity of distribution, disappears. This could only be enforced by contra-factorial jurisdic- The commercial mode of production initially emerged with technical media and the possibil- tion and would lead in the end to a more or less complete control of web traffic. Fortunately, ity of technical reproduction. This holds true for the printing press used for books, and for the prospects for this attempt seem to be dire. The second way to handle the transition would etchings. But the technical media in the age of capitalist production unleashed the ultimate be to affiliate web culture parasitically with the present economy. This would allow for the productivities of this model only when gramophone and film turned music and images into development of new cultural forms, albeit under the condition and the pressure of mass- industrially produced goods. The basic aesthetic constraint of this mode consists in the ne- distribution under which the current wave of participatory activities would most likely suffer cessity to adapt to an industrial production scheme and to establish success in the market- tremendously. Instead of a user-generated culture we would see the rise of new dominant place. This concentrates cultural production upon popular forms, or generates the quest for commercial forms in the near future. This process of commercialization and adaptation can new popular forms. The pressure to concentrate on successful formats soon led to a process already be observed at work. In a widely discussed post, Dan Greenberg 23 presented his of aesthetic and formal homogenization. Nevertheless, it took more than 20 years until the strategies for the commercialization of online video. Next to an aesthetic that focused mainly movie industry stabilized into the dominant form of the feature-length film. It is probably not on re-adaptability and a quick emotional response, the video has to be embedded in a wider mere accident that this took roughly one generation: it seems that only after one generation network of links. This ‘linkability’ was regarded as the main source of success. This outcome has been completely socialized within a new medium can an appropriate and optimized seems to be the most likely, however, beyond those two already widespread modes, a third aesthetic response be found. alternative comes into play. This builds on the continuous feed of data from participating and active users, leading to a collaborative visual production. The now dominant Hollywood style of narration, with its smooth continuity, can be seen as a result of a process of adaptation intimately linked to the distribution system and the eco- Thus, the possibilities of online video can be envisaged in three exemplary forms, which nomic feedback given at the box-office. The system lacks the strong singular personality of all might exist in parallel. There will be the parasite mode, which might borrow from the the artist, even though the director imitates this figure to a certain degree. In contrast to the aesthetic of games and talk shows at the same time. Collaborative practice will be chan- artistic mode, whose results can be described very well along an impulse of distinction, the neled into a fixed time structure in order to create marketable data. The event will be one commercial mode is completely encompassed by a process of adaptation. of the few remaining points at which scarcity can be preserved. Therefore the event will be branded, and its time and image space sold to advertising companies. A second format will Aesthetics of the Link build on the increasing embeddedness of images in the real world. This process is facilitated After the breakdown of both models – that of a dominant history and of modernism on one by a growing segmentation of the image into a composite of various layers of metadata and side, and the economy of reproduced culture on the other – we might well be witnessing links. The contents of the images will be made accessible by symbolic encoding, such as another mode of production in the making. And, just as the commercial mode has not fully automatic tagging, face-recognition and other symbolic appropriations of the visual. Once we replaced the artistic mode, this new mode will not entirely replace the others. This new mode become accustomed to these images, it will be very difficult to recall a state when the visual follows the logic of the link. It creates value through links and it operates as a facilitator of world was not constantly warped by a layer of data. There remains the third possibility of a links. The only institution by which it is powered is the internet itself. So far it has had only a collaboratively created visual world. 24 This world would be built, like Wikipedia or the newer negative impact upon markets, and no perceptible impact upon the museum and art world. WikiLeaks, on the surplus-work of users. It will consist of a connected visual space, in which The inherent value would be characterized not by sales and revenue, but in the following narrative and authorship may manifest themselves occasionally when needed. Depending on formula: V=v,n,p, where V(value) is a product of ‘its performance and application (v); the the survival of the institutions of historical time, one might even return to a historicization of number of its multiplications and replica (n); the sharing rate of the value among the people this process in the name of art. involved in the process (p)’. 21 It is far from clear if this recent development eventually marks a transition to a different mode of production or will become a mere transient disruption to However, the coming images must not be left to the entrepreneurs and their quest for rev- the commercial mode, to be integrated within it at a later point. 22 enue. Today, almost any answer to the question of ‘what should we do’ is justified by eco- nomic purposes. Thinking about the future has, at least for certain classes, taken the form Three different options seem to be available under the present conditions of the link mode. of a business-plan. It decays into short-term visions which treat the future almost as a kind The first is the attempt to maintain the commercial model as its main source of revenue, the of fate which will inevitably lead us to the next business opportunity. In its urge to anticipate 21. See Matteo Pasquinelli, Animal Spirits: A Bestiary of the Commons, Rotterdam: NAi Publishers, 23. Dan Ackerman Greenberg, ‘The secret strategies behind many “viral” Videos’, TechCrunch, 22 2008, p. 96, in reference to Enzo Rullani’s Economia della Conoscenza, 2004. November, 2007, www. techcrunch.com/ 2007/11/22/the-secret-strategies-behind-many-viral- 22. As data seems to indicate, see Lev Manovich, ‘The Myth of user-generated content’, Lev videos/. Manovich blog, 23 November, 2010, manovich.net/2010/11/23/the-myth-of-user-generated- 24. S ee the section entitled ‘The Art of World-Making’ in Henry Jenkins, Convergence Culture, New content/. York: New York University Press, 2006, p.113. 24 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 25 the next direction of big money, trend research completely overlooks and neglects the fact fRames wIthIn fRames – wInDows anD that there might be another answer. Fortunately, this is not the only perspective on things to DooRs come. Once, the question of ‘what should we do’ fell in the domain of ethics. And therefore thinking about the possibilities of video must not restrict itself to exploitable trends, but may anDReas tReske also envisage a utopian perspective on visual possibilities, even if a vision of this kind may look almost as delusive as the beginning. Doors, windows, box office windows, skylights, car windows, mirrors, are all frames in frames. The great directors have particular affinities with particular secondary, tertiary, etc. frames. And it is by this dovetailing of frames that the parts of the set or of the RefeRenCes closed system are separated, but also converge and are reunited. 1 Agamben, Giorgio. The Open, Stanford, CA.: Stanford University Press, 2004. As Anne Friedberg stated in The Virtual Window, the frame within a frame or the shot Crary, Jonathan. Techniques of the Observer, Cambridge, Mass.: MIT Press, 1990. 2 Deleuze, Gilles. The Time-image, London: Athlone, 1986. within a shot is a ‘common figure’ in cinema. The moving image is formally split into parts, Foucault, Michel. The Order of Things: An Archaeology of the Human Sciences, London: Routledge, re-composed and re-centred through an additional act of framing, that is equal to an exag- 2002. geration. The ‘cadrage’ (framing) includes a second ‘cadre’ (frame) replacing the traditional Fuller, Matthew. Media Ecologies: Materialist Energies in Art and Technoculture, Cambridge, Mass: way of cutting to the object to be seen. The viewer does not enter the image by way of single MIT Press, 2005. ‘cadrages’; rather, a multiplicity is presented online and is constantly available; not one Gadamer, Hans-Georg. Truth and Method, London: Continuum, 1975. window, but a sum of windows. While split screens have historically been used to mark and Greenberg, Dan Ackerman. ‘The secret strategies behind many “viral” Videos’, TechCrunch, 22 No- separate spaces in cinema, frames within frames create a new element in the narrative or vember 2007, www. techcrunch.com/ 2007/11/22/the-secret-strategies-behind-many-viral-videos/. Innis, Harold. Empire and Communication, Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1950. fictional world. Jenkins, Henry. Convergence Culture, New York: New York University Press, 2006. Kittler, Friedrich. Gramophone, Film, Typewriter, Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1999. It has become evident that, in the past, frames as both objects and as concepts have influ- _____. Aufschreibsysteme 1800/1900, München: Wilhelm Fink Verlag, 1995. enced the way that people have perceived, communicated, and acted. In this short essay, I _____. Austreibung des Geistes aus den Geisteswissenchaften, Paderborn: UTB Einleitung, 1980. will attempt to extend theories of cinematic framing to the presentation of the moving image Lazzarato, Maurizio. Videophilosophie, Berlin: b_books, 2002. in digital environments and devices. Here again, my interest in the impact of the diverse Lovink, Geert. Zero Comments: Elemente einer kritischen Internetkultur, trans. Andreas Kallfelz, development of screens and the emergence of online video upon the composition and crea- Bielefeld: Transcript Verlag, 2008. Manovich, Lev. The Theory of New Media, Cambridge, Mass.: MIT Press, 2001. tion of moving images and narratives is focused upon the application of formal theoretical _____. ‘The Myth of user-generated content’, Lev Manovich blog, 23 November, 2010, manovich. approaches to existing forms of online video and the interfaces through which videos are net/2010/11/23/the-myth-of-user-generated-content/. embedded or presented. Do we need to reassess the conception of frames as windows or Meillassoux, Quentin. After Finitude, London: Continuum, 2008. doors when considering the position of the viewer in relation to online video? Does the act Müller, Corinna. ‘Variationen des Kinopgramms. Filmform und Filmgeschichte’, in Corinna Müller and of framing remain relevant to online video, or is it merely an outdated theoretical approach? Harro Segeberg (eds) DieModellierung desKinofilms, Munich, 1998. Pasquinelli, Matteo. Animal Spirits: A Bestiary of the Commons, Rotterdam: NAi Publishers, 2008. In his first book on cinema, Gilles Deleuze describes the cinematic frame as an information Staiger, Janet. ‘The Hollywood Mode of Production to 1930’, in David Bordwell, Janet Staiger, Kristin Thompson, The Classical Hollywood Cinema: Film Style and Mode of Production to 1960, London: system. As David Goldberg states, for Deleuze a cadre, or frame, in a film is a ‘set which has Routledge, 1988. a great number of parts, that is of elements, which themselves form subsets’. ‘Actors, loca- von Uexküll, Jakob. Streifzüge durch die Umwelten von Tieren und Menschen / Bedeutungslehre, tions, sets, lighting, sound, angles, durations and special effects all constitute the information Hamburg: Rowohlt, 1956. in the frame’, which ‘makes it legible, and something that bears potential meaning for the 1. Gilles Deleuze, Cinema I: The Movement-Image, London: Continuum, 2004, p. 14. 2. Anne Friedberg, The Virtual Window: From Alberti to Microsoft, Cambridge: The MIT Press, 2006, p. 200. 26 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 27 viewer’. 3 From the point of view of film-making, framing refers to the objects in a shot. When In essence, it is through cutting out that a shot is framed; the shot is the smallest unit of the setting up a shot, the frame includes a composed selection within its horizontal rectangle, film picked-out by the camera. 8 When setting up a frame in the process of film-making, one thereby excluding other elements. The act of framing results from the personal choices and must always deal with the energy inside and outside of the frame. By ‘energy’, I mean the conscious processes of the film-maker, and affects the audience’s cinematic experience. The graphical or visual tension produced by the relation of the objects to each other: their forms image presented onscreen is effected through the size and shape of the frame, its definition and shapes, their relative sizes and tones, their proximity to each other. Distance is a further of onscreen and offscreen space, among other factors: dimension. How will the object be placed? Will it appear to be close, or far away? What is the relation of the object on screen to the viewer in front of the screen? Whatever its shape, the frame makes the image finite. The film image is bounded, lim- ited. From an implicitly continuous world, the frame selects a slice to show us, leaving In film or television production the size of a shot is defined in relation to the human body. the rest of the space offscreen. If the camera leaves an object or person and moves Close-ups, medium shots and long shots are a set of precise points of cutting: a close-up elsewhere, we assume that the object or person is still there, outside the frame. Even always contains the head and shoulders of the subject, a medium shot cuts above or below in an abstract film, we cannot resist the sense that the shapes and patterns that burst the knees, and a long shot includes a full figure. German people involved with film sometimes into the frame come from somewhere. 4 refer to the medium shot as ‘American’, as the image border is exactly above the knee of the protagonist in the classic Western. Another kind of shot is called the ‘Italian’, as it shows The traditionally educated film-maker, a student of a film school or academy, will be taught only the eyes in extreme close-up, an image often used by Italian directors in the so-called to consider the frame as a window to the outside world – the world of the narrative, story, ‘Spaghetti-Western’. Of course, stylistic variations are always possible. fiction. Of course, the concept of the frame as a transparent window onto an external reality is deeply influenced by André Bazin. Although this concept has come under critical attack The more strongly an object is framed, the more it is separated, emphasized and focused. since at least the 1980s, the concept of the frame has been revivified not only by Deleuze, Whether a group of people is depicted in a single shot, as a whole, or whether the individuals but through our daily practice of conceiving of our interface with the world of information are depicted singly, in separate shots and angles, is a matter of dramatic significance. The as a window. 5 lines forming the rectangle of the frame can function to isolate each character, or not. For the film-maker, the problem of active framing is not what is inside the frame, but what is outside. When making a film, one is confronted by the question of how to fill this window. One be- The film-maker must create a frame that frames an outside – a world outside of the frame, in comes aware of the window itself, as it becomes filled with forms, shapes and objects which such a way that this outside world continues to exist beyond the lines of the frame. The sliced are themselves composed of other forms, shapes and tones. The film-maker wants the audi- frame not only refers to the existence of an outside, but also to its absence. ence to concentrate upon his or her specific arrangement, or composition. Sooner or later, however, the film-maker realizes that there is not only one window, but several. These win- Frames appear with the 15th century and with the development of one-point perspective. dows are similar or absolutely different. There is not one window through which to look at the Leon Battista Alberti conceived of the Renaissance framing system as a means to rationalize world, but a world full of windows – everywhere one sees windows, as already framed objects, vision through mathematics. One-point perspective was and is used to produce the illusion of a or objects to-be-framed. In his classic 1939 article, translated as ‘The Cinematographic Prin- three-dimensional world on a two-dimensional plane. Paintings become transportable objects ciple and the Ideogram’, Sergei Eisenstein offers a directive regarding the frame or window isolated from the walls around them. Ownership is declared for each painting. The framed ob- a film-maker is working on. 6 In this article, Eisenstein was very much influenced by his ject becomes a space of representation and a surface upon which the imagination works. The research into Japanese culture. According to Eisenstein, the Japanese film-maker would use frame of a traditional painting is a clearly defined border. The lines of a frame are the reason multiple shapes, rather than a single square, as a frame: ‘the pupil cuts out from the whole, with a square, and a circle, and a rectangle -compositional units: He frames a shot!’ 7 8. In this context, it is worth considering a point made in a footnote of Sean Cubitt’s The Cinema Effect: ‘In a note to Nizhny’s Lessons, Montagu comments on kadr, “This Franco-Russian word, etymologically connected perhaps with the graphic aspect of the shot, its composition and 3. David Goldberg, ‘EnterFrame: Cage, Deleuze and Macromedia Director’, Afterimage 30.1 (2002): compositional limits, must never be translated “frame” (Nizhny 1962: 169, n.35), distinguishing 8-9. in another note between ‘The “frame” of a shot, its borders within which it is composed on the 4. David Bordwell and Kristin Thompson, Film Art: An Introduction, New York: McGraw-Hill; 8th one hand; on the other the “frame” or single static image of which many compose the shot. edition, 2007, p. 187. Russians apparently sometimes use ‘rama’ (non-technically) for the second kind of frame, but 5. Thomas Elsaesser and Malte Hagener, Filmtheorie zur Einführung, Hamburg: Junius Verlag, they also use “vyrez” or “cut” for the section of the whole possible view-field extracted or “cut 2007, p. 48. out” by such a frame” (ibid.: 171, n.46). On the one hand, the cut acts on the plane of the 6. Sergei Eisenstein (1949), Film Form: Essays in Film Theory, New York: Hartcourt. Trans. Jay screen, isolating the scene depicted from what lies on the right or left, or above or below it. But Leyda, 1969. on the other, the cut is a slice through the z-axis or axis of vision perpendicular to the picture 7. Eisenstein, Film Form, p. 41. plane’. Sean Cubitt, The Cinema Effect, Cambridge: The MIT Press, 2005, p. 390. 28 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 29 that we experience most pictures as closed spaces; the image or picture exists only inside the Of course, from the perspective of a practitioner, the screen is graphically limited. But there frame. Images in magazines, on television, on the walls of our apartments, and in museums all are a variety of graphical techniques to break these constraints through positioning, size, have closed, non-extensive, non-transparent borders. As Bazin writes, if there is an impression tone and color inside the image or on the screen. The screen also breaks its boundaries of spatiality included in the framed image, then this spatiality points towards the inside: through object movements and directional shifts inside the frame. As a simple example, let us imagine that we see an object moving from left to right. When the object reaches the Space, as it applies to a painting, is radically destroyed by the screen. Just as footlights right-hand border, our eyes will immediately jump back to the left side of the image, because and scenery in the theatre serve to mark the contrast between it and the real world we are used to writing from left to right and stopping at the right-hand edge of the paper. If so, by its surrounding frame, a painting is separated off not only from reality as such the object moves from right to left, it takes the viewer longer to return to the image. If the but, even more so, from the reality that is represented in it. Indeed it is a mistake to object moves up, we continue to attend to the area above the frame, as this is always the see a picture frame as having merely a decorative or rhetorical function. The fact that region of our dreams; if the object moves down, we instantly jump back inside the frame. 12 it emphasizes the compositional quality of the painting is of secondary importance. We are tempted to compare the cinematic experience with our natural vision. In everyday The essential role of the frame is, if not to create at least to emphasize the difference life we can turn our heads or move in order to see beyond objects and borders. The frame between the microcosm of the picture and the macrocosm of the natural world in which of the cinema screen prevents us from taking this action and therefore forces us to imagine the painting has come to take its place. This explains the baroque complexity of the the outside the film. traditional frame whose job it is to establish something that cannot be geometrically established - namely the discontinuity between the painting and the wall, that is to A scene in Roman Polanski’s Rosemary’s Baby (1968) plays intriguingly with this limitation. say between the painting and reality. In other words the frame of a painting encloses a The film’s director of photography, William Fraker, recalls the scene in which Rosemary, who space that is oriented so to speak in a different direction. In contrast to natural space, is played by Mia Farrow, allows Ruth Gordon to use the phone in the bedroom. Fraker himself the space in which our active experience occurs and bordering its outer limits, it offers attempted to frame the shot from Rosemary’s position in the living room, as she looks through a space the orientation of which is inwards, a contemplative area opening solely onto an open door to the woman making the call. However, Fraker writes: the interior of the painting. 9 Roman looked through the viewfinder and said, “no, no, Billy. Move to the left”. I moved For Bazin, the edges of the cinema screen are not equal to the frame of a painting – rather, to the left until all I could see were her feet hanging over the edge of the bed. I thought they are analogous to the edges of a mask. In a similar vein, Noël Carroll differentiates pho- Roman was crazy until I saw Rosemary’s Baby in a theatre, and watched some 400 tographs from paintings in the following way: people in the audience leaning to the right as though they were trying to look around the door jamb to see what she was doing. 13 You can always ask, of an area photographed, what lies adjacent to that area, beyond the frame. This generally makes no sense asked of a painting. You can ask these questions The composition of this shot in Rosemary’s Baby builds a frame within a frame. Polan- of objects in photographs because they have answers in reality. The world of a painting is ski reduces the space inside the image to strengthen the visual effect. The additional act not continuous with the world of its frame; at its frame, a world finds its limits. 10 of framing becomes equal to an exaggeration. There are numerous examples of this type of frame-within-a-frame composition in key scenes in cinema. In Tystnaden (‘The Silence’, The distinction is clear. The moving image achieves its difference through the process of 1963), director Ingmar Bergman uses the figure of frames within frames. He films through screening. The screen is not like a canvas, rather, for Carroll and Bazin it is a piece of reality doorways, so that the vertical separations introduced by the doorways symbolize the emo- that does not exist at the time of the screening. Deleuze picks up on and actualizes Bazin’s tional distance between the sisters who are the film’s protagonists. The final scene in The central theory. For Deleuze, the frame is determined through the formation of sets or ensem- Searchers 14 presents the viewer with a similarly constrained image. With the camera inside bles. The image on the screen is extracted from the rest of the world spatially, but more espe- the farmhouse and Wayne outside, Wayne directs a final look back at the farmhouse – a look cially temporally. Shots express the qualitative change of sets. These sets divide and multiply. that also seems directed towards the spectator – before heading into the exposed landscape The movement-image is an image of changing space or space covered. 11 of the American West. Or, consider the shot in The Graduate 15 in which Mrs. Robinson seduces Ben Braddock. Her bent knee forms a triangle, a window through which we look 9. André Bazin, What is Cinema? Volume 1, trans. Hugh Gray, Berkeley: University of California Press, 1967, p. 165. 12. J ohannes Müller, unpublished lecture notes taken by Andreas Treske, Munich: HFF, 1992. 10. Noël Carroll with Jinhee Choi (eds) Philosophy of Film and Motion Pictures, Malden: Blackwell 13. Y azan Düd, ‘Kareler 2: Rosemary’s Baby’, Eylem Planı – Bildig˘ im Kadarının Anlatabildig˘ im Publishing, 2006, p. 70. Kadarı, http://www.eylemplani.com/kareler-2-rosemarys-baby/. 11. Gregory Flaxman (ed.) The Brain Is the Screen, Deleuze and the Philosophy of Cinema, 14. The Searchers (dir. John Ford, 1956). Minneapolis: University of Minnesota, 2000, p. 19. 15. The Graduate (dir. Mike Nichols, 1967). 30 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 31 at Ben, the focal point. In this case, the composition is not based on the imprisoning and Will Eisner describes comics as sequential art: ‘When part of a sequence, even a sequence isolating effects of vertical and horizontal lines. The common element in all these scenes is of only two, the art of the image is transformed into something more: The art of comics!’ 18 He that the frame within-a-frame both articulates and separates; facilitating a smooth transition elaborates upon the concept of a comic as a sequence of frames: between inside and outside. The fundamental function of comic (strip and book) art to communicate ideas and/or In addition to the frame-within-a-frame, the multiple frame and multiple screen formats are stories by means of words and pictures involves the movement of certain images (such able to juxtapose multiple points of view. As Friedberg notes, ‘While the single-screen mov- as people and things) through space. To deal with the capture or encapsulation of ing image offers multiple perspectives through the sequential shifts of montage and edit- these events in the flow of the narrative, they must be broken up into sequenced seg- ing, the multiple-frame or multiple-screen moving image offers the same via adjacency and ments. These segments are called panels or frames. They do not correspond exactly contiguity’. 16 In this context, a discussion of Mike Figgis’ 2000 film Timecode is essential. In to cinematic frames. They are part of the creative process, rather than a result of the this film, Figgis constructs an experimental narrative from a screen divided into four frames. technology. The story unfolds in parallel, with each frame showing different events in real time. The action culminates in a final scene in which all four frames, and all four narratives, come together. As in the use of panels to express the passage of time, the framing of a series of im- In the DVD version of this film, the viewer is able to interact with the film by choosing which ages moving through space undertakes the containment of thoughts, ideas, actions, frame will be accompanied by a soundtrack. In this way, sound opens up yet another dimen- and location or site. The panel thereby attempts to deal with the broadest elements of sion of the frames, as the viewer becomes aware of the way in which Figgis uses the sound dialogue: cognitive and perceptive as well as visual literacy. The artist, to be successful to guide the viewer through the four parallel narratives. on this non-verbal level, must take into consideration both the commonality of human experience and the phenomenon of our perception of it, which seems to consist of To this point, the discussion has remained within the context of the ‘classical screen’. And frames or episodes. 19 yet, modern visual culture is characterized by the existence of a virtual space enclosed within a frame, and situated within our everyday space. The frame, therefore, separates two coexist- For the comic artist, the panel is a device that controls the flow of narrative. The panel is a ing spaces. 17 While television, video, telephone and the internet converge, multiple frames container and a timer. Its border is an element of the visual language, the frame a structural proliferate. Single screen devices already embed multiple screens. In a way, it is only the support with an emotional function. And yet, the real border is the border of the page, the physical object that is single. A computer screen, a telephone, and a television each provide meta-panel that encapsulates the visual narrative as a whole: ‘Comic panels fracture both multiple frames through which to interact with sounds, images, or typographical elements. time and space, offering a jagged, staccato rhythm of unconnected moments. But closure These windows can collapse into a single moving image, or expand into a sequence of ad- allows us to connect these moments and mentally construct a continuous, unified reality’. 20 jacent multiple frames, either closely or loosely related to each other. A single image might be re-sized, so that it contains the dimensions of a full cinematic representation. The ar- A browser constructing an online video site is influenced by variables such as user choice, rangement of single windows or framed images might be arranged in a simple, left-to-right tags and comments. The single video is framed in such a way that it is viewed in relation to a reading order, or rearranged so as to simulate a three-dimensional space, from which one range of linked contents, as well as comments and quotations. It is framed to stay inside the can select with the tip of a finger. In 2010, most web browsers remain in a two-dimensional window. As a frame, the browser provides a closed context; an area with a rigid border. It is presentation. Online video is represented by key frames or images, each of which is selected, a clearly marked entrance. The digital window provides a filter to narrow the ever-expanding marked and extracted. These images act as summaries of, placeholders for, and links to digi- universe of moving images. That is, the design of browser windows has failed to confront what tized moving images. They are both tagline and proposal. Beside these key frames are other actually happens after a user enters the space – the possibility of gaining access to an ever- boxes, which link to related images or moving image content. It seems logical to analyse such multiplying number of windows. Some online video providers allow the user to look inside the browser windows in terms of their graphical content, and the principles of graphic design. video through image placeholders; others allow us to look at related preferences. New Apple Nevertheless, thinking cinematically enables us to account for the fact that the frames within Inc. applications use a graphical interface called ‘Cover Flow’, a sorting wheel of images in a a larger frame – the browser – are placed in a meaningful relationship of adjacency. This 3D presentational context (as I may call it here) not only moves us towards the images, but relationship might convey information, aesthetic pleasure, or both. To better understand how moves these placeholders or openings towards us. Flipping and tipping on images, book- this works, it might be helpful to consider another form of visual narrative – that of comics. marks, documents, or icons results in a leap of the graphical object or image representation 18. Q uoted in Scott McCloud, Understanding Comics: The Invisible Art, New York: Harper Collins, 16. Anne Friedberg, The Virtual Window: From Alberti to Microsoft, Cambridge: The MIT Press, 1994, p. 5. 2006, p. 202. 19. Will Eisner, Comics & Sequential Art, Florida: Poorhouse Press, 1985, p. 38. 17. Lev Manovich, The Language of New Media, Cambridge: The MIT Press, 2002, p. 99. 20. W ill Eisner, quoted in McCloud, Understanding Comics, p. 67. 32 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 33 as a window towards us and, even if this is not the case as yet, around us. Through the the possibilities inherent within these devices remain mere glimpses, already these devices interaction with the device the frame of each single image is technologically overwritten, as are able to detect how they are held, and can arrange the screened information space ac- our interaction simulates or replaces the movement of our head, as we seek to look around cordingly. The screen in real space merges with the controller interacting with the game the corner. Now, a single fingertip enables us to look through the doorway, to gain access, in world. a sense, to that which Rosemary was prevented from seeing. How to fill the space opened by such devices is still the question faced by their designers, As new applications and devices are developed, frames are multiplying. Cinema evolves from makers or producers. It seems obvious that the device and its location and usage will affect a flat space with only one direction. Familiar formats, such as the cinematic moving image, the forms it screens, plays, presents. Online video presents itself in small chunks. It will de- are just one element within new databases and digital object – that which is shaped, formed, pend on the technical capabilities of the network what kind of chunks of information – and a gestaltet. Rather than being destroyed, older formats will need to coexist, in a kind of modu- movie is a big chunk of organized information – the device opens to the fingertip. In conclu- lar, or set-like arrangement, with newer formats. In some ways, the merging of media has sion, I would like to cite a passage of Vilém Flusser’s work that I believe reflects powerfully been observable for a long time. For example, linear narratives increasingly open themselves upon this issue: to spatiality. The limits of the frame are not respected anymore. Rather, open structures are favoured. Television series such as Lost expand the narrative universe in multiple directions. Among other things, an image is a message. It has a sender and it searches for an addressee. Lost does not seek to answer only one question, it consists of an ever-expanding universe This search is a question of its portability. Images are surfaces. How does one transport of questions. Rather than distracting the audience, the confusion within this universe keeps surfaces? It all depends on the physical bodies on whose surfaces the images are affixed.... the viewer in front of the screen. Through continuous and intensive mediatization, various Recently, something new has been discovered. Disembodied images, “pure” surfaces, and forms increasingly influence each other. The lines between distinct media forms are blurring: all the images that have so far been in existence can be translated (transcoded) into images movies are based on video games and games on movies; the question of sequence becomes of a new kind. In this situation, the addressees no longer need to be transported. These pic- irrelevant when cultural forms become modular. tures are conveniently reproduced and transmitted to individual addressees wherever they might be. However, the question of portability is a little more complicated than it has been According to Peter Greenaway, ‘There is no such thing as a frame in the natural world – it is described here. Photographs and films are transitional phenomena somewhere between a man-made, man-created device’, and, he continues, ‘If the frame is a man-made device, framed canvases and disembodied images. There is, however, one unambiguous tendency: then just as it has been created, so it can be un-created. The parallelogram can go. 21 As images will become progressively more portable and addressees will become even more crude as it is, the system of one-point perspective became the ruling ideology, as I have de- immobile. 22 scribed in relation to painting and cinematic space. In this essay, I have been concerned with the way that new digital forms multiply frames or windows, and blur the distinction between presentation and reality. Technical images draw attention to the act of framing itself. These frames or windows and doors might be best characterized as openings. These openings can act like windows or doors, but can also be frames with closed borders. These borders block the ability of the image to extend into an imaginary space. Their direction is always towards the inside. In this way, the frame’s borders become decorative; an operation on a surface, a textured map, which is also an image. A final phenomenon that deserves mention is the increasing transportability of the moving image. New devices such as the iPhone, iPod, and in particular the iPad constitute mobile physical containers or bodies for the moving image, whereas the cinematic screen has always been a geographically fixed location. And, whereas the analogue 35mm film of a single movie is about 30 kilometres long and weighs several kilograms, the mobile digital device can not only store several movies, it can access an enormous cinematic library. The iPad directs the viewer towards a multiplicity of meaning beyond the simple play function. Although many of 21. Peter Greenaway, Cinema Militans Lecture 2003, 28/09/2003, http://petergreenaway.co.uk/ 22. V ilém Flusser, Images in the New Media, in Andreas Ströhl (ed.) Writings, Minneapolis: essay3.htm. University of Minnesota Press, 2004, p. 70. 34 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 35 RefeRenCes weB VIDeo anD the scReen as a meDIatoR Bazin, André. What is Cinema? Volume 1, trans. Hugh Gray, Berkeley: University of California Press, anD GeneRatoR of ReaLIty 1967. Bordwell, David and Kristin Thompson. Film Art: An Introduction, New York: McGraw-Hill, 2007. RoBRecht VanDeRBeeken Carroll, Noël and Jinhee Choi (eds) Philosophy of Film and Motion Pictures, Malden: Blackwell Publishing, 2006. Cubitt, Sean. The Cinema Effect, Cambridge: The MIT Press, 2005. Deleuze, Gilles. Cinema I: The Movement-Image, London: Continuum, 2004. Düd, Yazan. ‘Kareler 2: Rosemary’s Baby’. Eylem Planı – Bildig˘ im Kadarının Anlatabildig˘ im Kadarı, In order to learn more about web video, this article does not begin with its peculiarities, but http://www.eylemplani.com/kareler-2-rosemarys-baby/. tries to grasp its cultural backdrop by considering the screen as a virtual invader in our daily Eisenstein, Sergei. (1949) Film Form: Essays in Film Theory, New York: Hartcourt. Trans. Jay Leyda., 1969. lives, which sometimes even seems to assume control. It aims to challenge the claim that the Eisner, Will. Comics & Sequential Art, Florida: Poorhouse Press, 1985. audiovisual screen of television, cinema, video, and web video is but a window onto the world. Elsaesser, Thomas and Malte Hagener. Filmtheorie zur Einführung, Hamburg: Junius Verlag, 2007. A screen is not a neutral display of fact and fiction in addition to what a person can experi- Flaxman, Gregory (ed.) The Brain Is the Screen, Deleuze and the Philosophy of Cinema, Minneapolis: ence on their own behalf. Rather, it has a massive effect on the constitutive relation between University of Minnesota, 2000. a viewer and the world she or he lives in. It manipulates this relation in a double manner: it Flusser, Vilém. Images in the New Media, in Andreas Ströhl (ed.) Writings, Minneapolis: University of mediates our perception of reality, and it generates another reality in a new, mediated envi- Minnesota Press, 2004. ronment. Early film spectators once believed that they could become infected when they saw Friedberg, Anne. The Virtual Window: From Alberti to Microsoft, Cambridge: The MIT Press, 2006. Goldberg, David. ‘EnterFrame: Cage, Deleuze and Macromedia Director’, Afterimage 30.1(2002): 8-9. sick people on the screen; yet the days when the screen was clearly misunderstood to em- Greenaway, Peter. Cinema Militans Lecture 2003, 28/09/2003, http://petergreenaway.co.uk/essay3.htm. body real objects are long gone. Today, the screen is no longer something special or strange Manovich, Lev. The Language of New Media, Cambridge: The MIT Press, 2002. ‘out there’, but rather something close to us, and everywhere. The screen has become hu- McCloud, Scott. Understanding Comics: The Invisible Art, New York: Harper Collins, 1994. manized, it is now accepted as an ordinary part of our everyday environment. Because of this shift in the locus of our psychological perception, the screen becomes immanent and ubiquitous, and hence more influential. As a familiar object, the screen invades our existence both radically and constantly, and yet its influence passes unnoticed. At the same time, the screen is evolving into new technological forms that generate a remarkable and eye-catching reality of their own, a new world. Web video plays a significant part in this evolution. The Screen as Mediator Eclipsing, Interpassivity and Truth-procedures What do we take as real nowadays? Ideally, an analysis of the influence of audiovisual media on our perception of reality should be based upon a comparison between our perception be- fore and after the rise of audiovisual media. Of course, such an approach is problematic, due to the difficulty of retroactive reconstruction of past perceptions of reality. 1 What we do know, however, is that a general feeling of detachment has become predominant today: experienc- ing ‘reality’ includes the experience of the loss of reality – that is, the lack of a transparent, undeniable and convincing manifestation of reality. In what sense does the screen, as that which inserts itself in-between subjects and their en- vironment, create a loss of reality? In its innocent version, the screen is but a ‘window on the world’ that provides the viewer with audiovisual material, containing facts as well as fiction. Put differently, it is an extension of man that displays representations and interpretations of 1. From a philosophical perspective, every perception of reality is ‘mediated’ in terms of embodiment, common worldviews, personal opinions, etc. In this article the term ‘mediation’ primarily revolves around the impact of audiovisual media. 36 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 37 the world we live in (facts), as well as visualizations of other people’s fantasies (fiction). The his 2006 documentary The Pervert’s Guide to Cinema, the cinematic screen is not a blank problem with this definition is that the screen does not just provide additional information; slate onto which we project our dreams and fantasies; it is a dark netherworld that shows it is not a neutral supplement to what we experience with our own senses. On the contrary, the viewer what to fantasize about and how to think. It is the screen that moulds the subject, the doubling of visual representation implies severe conflicts and competition between the teaching it what to love, what to hate, and what to desire. The ultimate consequence is the personal and artificial. Rather than just representing our world, audiovisual media radically shift from the active citizen taking part in life to the passive spectator locked into the screen. mediates our perception of reality, including our perception of ourselves and our relation to The problem with such a spectatorial mode is that, even in interim off-screen periods, we others. To a large extent, the screen dictates how we perceive reality. begin to look at our world from the outside in. A first illustration of how the screen acts as a mediator can be termed eclipsing: the over- A third illustration of mediation concerns the function of audiovisual media as a ‘truth proce- shadowing of experience by the artificial experience provided through audiovisual media. The dure’. Whereas eclipsing concerns the transformation and augmentation of natural percep- screen exposes us to places we have never visited, so that when we actually do visit these tion, and interpassivity describes the delegation of agency, this third process addresses our places, such encounters initially seem unnatural, alienated, or fake. 2 The experience feels trust of the screen as an authority. That which is sufficiently visible within the news media is wrong because we are confronted with a double vision: the information we detect immedi- seen as that which both exists, and is true. Conversely, what is not mentioned in the media is ately with our senses versus the conceptualizations we recall from audiovisual media. Hence, not only forgotten and ignored, but also considered doubtful. After all, if it really happened, the screen has made it largely impossible for us to experience famous places and people as why is it not in the news media? Therefore, news media are not just reporters but are also they are: that is, unmediated. 3 privileged indicators of what really happens, thereby creating their own Photoshop reality, and not only in a literal sense. 5 A second result of mediation is that which Slavoj Žižek and Robert Pfaller have termed ‘interpassivity’. 4 This concept refers to the latent manipulation of the viewer. As an example From a political perspective, understanding the news media as a truth procedure is highly of interpassivity, Žižek often refers to canned laughter on television shows, which both decide significant. It is for this reason that most political conflicts turn into media battles. In such for the viewer what is funny, and stand in for our own laughter. The viewer, having delegated cases, the media are not only indicators but important actors. A splendid documentary essay their agency to the media, remains completely passive. Audiovisual media such as television addressing this issue is Johan Grimonprez’s Dial H-I-S-T-O-R-Y (1998). 6 The film portrays a not only reassure the viewer that the world is (still) out there; they also provide a means to history of plane hijackings through the visual bombardment of a montage of found television delegate or even dispense with personal activity and responsibility. As Žižek demonstrated in images. Amongst other points, it shows how the earliest hijackings were used as a symbolic action to call attention to a political struggle. As the voiceover states, hijackings gradually became more and more aggressive in order to increase their impact, so that ‘0ne has to 2. The video artist Marine Hugonnier made a nice documentary essay on this issue called The get killed in order to get noticed by the media these days’. Considering that this video was Last Tour (2004), a fictional documentary about the closing of the natural park around the Swiss released four years before 9/11, its visionary character is impressive. Given the increasing im- Matterhorn. The idea is to shut down this mountain area and give it back to our imagination. portance of political visibility in the news media, the Twin Towers attack seems to be the logi- In this way, after some time, it might be possible again to purely experience this area without cal next step. It is provoked and propagated by the same media that fully controls its iconic spontaneously recalling touristic postcard-images that eclipse our personal perception with depictions of a Disney-like theme park. For an extract of the video see, http://www. marinehugonnier.com/. 3. Eclipsing is not exclusive to audiovisual media. Texts, novels or drawings also have an eclipsing 5. On the initiative of the conservative Fox News TV-commentator Glenn Beck, thousands of people function with respect to personal experience. However, the abundance of mass media gathered in front of the White House in Washington on August 29th, 2010 for what was meant to visuals obviously generates such an overall impact that eclipsing becomes an explicit and be a ‘restore honour rally’. Paradoxically, Beck billed his event as ‘non-political’ despite the fact widespread phenomenon. Also, in the case of text, we gather descriptions and ideas rather than that Tea Party celebrity Sarah Palin was the central guest. This event not only nicely illustrates straightforward visual representations and constructions. When textual information conflicts with that news media are a truth-procedure; they not only manipulate the news but are also capable the actual sensual information obtained in our encounters with people, situations or places that of creating a new reality that corresponds with their insinuations. The magic power of the news we have not previously experienced, we normally (ideally?) adopt a ‘scientific’, empirical stance media: words become images, images become a state of affairs. Strangely enough, despite the and adjust our opinions to overrule the previously formed images. Such conflicts (which actually many things that go wrong today, hardly any good cause can mobilize protesters any more. But only ‘eclipse’ in a metaphorical sense) are clearly different from audiovisual eclipses because the Fox TV’s agitators can easily motivate lots of people to rally for empty issues (who is against latter largely obstruct an encounter with the initial, unmediated phenomena and thus impede honour anyway?) with the underlying goal of raising an audience for themselves (and to show sufficient falsification afterwards. on television how this audience is against the current government, unfortunately, without really 4. See Robert Pfaller, ‘Interpassivity and Misdemeanors: the Analysis of Ideology and the Žižekian knowing what that government really stands for). Weeks later, there finally came a counter Toolbox’, International Journal of Žižek Studies, 1.1 (2007): 33-50; and Slavoj Žižek, ‘The protest. But this pro-Obama rally was also initiated by media celebrities: the TV comedians Jon Interpassive Subject’, Centre Georges Pompidou, Traverses, 1998, http://www.lacan.com/zizek- Stewart and Stephen Colbert. pompidou.htm. 6. The film can be seen online on http://www.ubu.com/. 38 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 39 recollection: we all recall the same images of the impact. At the same time, we often wonder: to ‘attend’ the online streaming of the lectures in-between times; we watch web commentar- is this real, or is it Hollywood? Paradoxically, iconoclasm as a possible, critical strategy for the ies upon art exhibitions instead of visiting them ourselves; at birthday parties we allow online viewer to resist such media indoctrination is no longer an option here, for the subject already clips of people singing ‘Happy Birthday’ to sing for us; we put forward our views of political concerns a tabooed political and ideological iconoclasm. and social issues on vlogs while failing to act directly in the real world; we allow YouTube gags to replace our own jokes. In short, while Web 2.0 invites us to ‘immigrate’ to virtual worlds, Web Video as a Catalyst of the Virtual first via funky avatars and later with our Facebook ego-profile, real-life interaction is delegated Audiovisual online applications such as vlogs, webcams, podcasts, and user-generated vid- to a virtual substitute. eo websites intensify the mediating impact of the screen, shifting it into a higher gear. Let us then consider web video’s impact on the three phenomena discussed above. The phe- The fact that ever more people feel less inhibited about communicating personal information nomenon of eclipsing is intensified by web video reports – abundant, easily accessible, and on the internet reinforces this virtualization. Whereas a vast amount of early web video was largely free of charge – in a twofold way. In the global, unique and ungovernable spread of posted with nicknames and showed pets, cars, babies and so on, many people have turned an enormous number of images, a huge amount of new visual information is produced about the camera around, and are literally broadcasting themselves. Despite the active ‘lean for- persons, places and events that were heretofore unnoticed or ignored. Put differently, web ward’ attitude of editing, uploading, sharing, poking, connecting, replying and updating, our video enhances the representation of the multiple aspects of our daily lives in a recorded ver- digital presence entails a vast amount of interpassivity: first-order experience is postponed, or sion, and hence increases the reach of the shadow the virtual casts over the real. But there even replaced by virtual activity. The younger generation is particularly vulnerable to aliena- is more. The novelty of web video is of course the opportunity to ‘Broadcast Yourself’, which tion and detachment, as demonstrated by the Hikikomori, who are socially withdrawn Japa- generates a multitude of personal recordings on similar topics. For example, the web allows nese youths. This is not only because young people are the largest consumers of online con- access to multiple travel logs of people visiting the same destinations; thus, a variety of ama- tent, but because they have not had the chance to experience a truly non-digital life – unless, teur recordings of the same places of interest, accidents, concerts and other spectacles. 7 that is, their education included ‘digital detox’ days in order to avoid a complete loss of the This personalized multiplicity might prima facie be understood as an antidote to the phe- real feelings of living. nomenon of eclipsing, as it substitutes the singular iconic image with a multitude: a diverse database of information that clashes with the stereotypical media icon. For instance, instead However, as with eclipsing, the many-sided applications of web video not only stimulate the of the typical picture postcard image of the pyramids, we now have thousands of images, shot processes of interpassivity, but generate a whole new realm. Take the phenomena that might from every possible angle and at almost every moment of the day, and always including other be labelled as ‘digital shrink syndrome’, so well illustrated in the video work Because We Are people within the image. Nevertheless, this democratizing multitude enforces rather than Visual (2010) by Belgian artists Olivia Rochette and Gerard-Jan Claes. By means of a collage neutralizes eclipsing, as the image of the pyramids increasingly tends to coincide with the of found vlog-footage, the artists depict a beautiful parataxis of the motivations for vlogging: virtual imaginary generated by tourism and mass media. Put differently, because this multi- the urge to be seen; the thrill of being part of ‘the media’; the wish to be in touch with a virtual tude becomes so familiar to us, the authentic political, religious and social aura possessed by community; the need to complain to or argue with the anonymous ‘big other’; self-realization. significant places threatens to disappear behind the iconic image. The site becomes a place The artists also, however, depict the extent to which the webcam serves both as social sub- for sightseeing and nothing else: a three-dimensional picture, totally absorbed into our public stitution and as therapy. Another girl tries to prove her love for her girlfriend by expressing culture of spectatorship. 8 her emotions in daily vlogs. This visual version of the love letter expands its psychological complexity: besides the attempt to convince the beloved, and to convince oneself of one’s Web video also advances the phenomenon of interpassivity. To give just a few examples: in- powers of seduction, there is now the anonymous web community as a witness. The digital stead of travelling to congresses and conferences for ‘live’ participation, many people prefer other is no longer just witness, but the actual audience that allows the vlogger to narcissisti- cally demonstrate oneself as a passionate being. Here, the role of the beloved switches from the subject matter of the love letter, to an occasion for the lover to gain control. Instead of 7. A video work that nicely illustrates this personalized multiplicity is The Final Countdown (2010) of becoming lost in the desire for someone else, self-love increases. The beloved takes no part the Belgian artist Koen Theys. It consists of a collage of YouTube clips featuring people replaying this famous pop tune. While every recording of the band Europe is omitted, the diversity of in the vlog, either because she is unaware of it, or because she does not exist. These are found footage remains extraordinary: parents filming their kids that vainly try to master a music cases of interpassivity because they lead the virtual event to become the main goal, while instrument, play-backers performing in front of their webcam, music band rehearsals, orchestras the real life situation is reduced to an alibi. The virtual event gains independence from life: playing a classical performance for a wide audience, etc. it turns into an artificial, yet psychologically necessary, structure that creates its own reward. 8. The shift from public place into pictorial monument could be linked to the notion of simulacra. However, as will be discussed in the next part, there is a crucial difference. A simulacra is ‘a Finally, we confront the phenomenon of the truth-procedure. Obviously, amateur videos (al- copy of a copy’, a self-referential piece of reality created by audiovisual media, as an example. beit broadcast on television or available online) have a massive effect on media and politics By contrast, cases of eclipsing involve an epistemological shift, e.g. from an authentic place into 3D imaginary. – one need only think of Osama Bin Laden’s video messages, amateur footage of ‘terrorist’ 40 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 41 act upon it. This is exactly why the institutional power of Wikileaks (and all the attention it gets from other news media) is so important, and also why it is so heavily under attack. It is simply too hard to deal with it on one’s own. Instead, we indulge in the spurring movement of the web: we keep on clicking, investigating, searching for new information, until we forget what it was that we discovered. 9 We tend to ignore the uncomfortable truth. Or we resign ourselves to it, as one of the many dissonances of life. For the most part, our browsing attitude seems to prevent us from putting two and two together: we gather bits and pieces of information, but forget to come to a conclusion. In a way, the surfer’s experience often mimics CCTV. We are constantly observing everything, eve- rywhere, but the incentive to reflect properly and respond accurately to what we are seeing remains absent. Despite the attempts of activists to organize grassroots movements, such as web communities fighting for web neutrality, and committed Facebook groups, the collective level remains virtual, a big but blind mob. Thousands of page views, yes, but nothing else – just an anonymous collection of individuals that silently share some information. As a result, world leaders such as President Bush and his ‘weapons of mass destruction’ or his denial of the U.S. Army committing torture can fool the public by claiming that ‘further investigation is needed’, even while the damaging information is out in the open on the web. World leaders Still from Because We Are Visual (2010). Courtesy of artists Olivia Rochette and Gerard-Jan Claes. and business oligarchs get away with their deceptions because there is no genuine collec- attacks, or the incriminating documents on WikiLeaks. Whereas documentary film seems tive response, only dissent between believers and non-believers. For many years, activists to have lost its truthfulness in the era of docusoaps, mockumentaries and reality television, denounced the funding given by the Total Oil corporation to the military junta in Burma. Here amateur video often retains a nostalgic air of a truthful visual document. Footage such as the is a clear-cut case for activism which would normally be quite effective; almost everybody assault of Rodney King, which provoked the Los Angeles riots, has the air of an uncut and is against this brutal dictatorship, and we all can easily take action by means of a boycott shocking reality, especially when we find such footage ourselves among the sea of videos on of Total Oil. Nonetheless, because of the abundance of news information, commercials and the web. What is special about web video documents is that their credibility depends on the entertainment programs, the activist potential perished within a kind of collective amnesia. 10 viewer’s willingness to accept their authenticity, as there is no guarantee that they are not The ‘good cause’ is shouted down by the clamour of the mass media. In sum, as a democra- staged or manipulated. Authenticity, then, become a matter of personal belief. In spite of their tized medium, web video takes part in a process of the virtualization of truth. Ultimately, this authority, we often distrust professionals paid by news services. Conversely, we are willing to leads to a situation of schizophrenia: a lot of hard facts circulate freely, but on an individual believe amateurs because they are people just like us. In this respect, there is a crucial shift basis it is hard to accept them as such. The mediation of truth seems to have shifted from in the way the screen functions as a truth-procedure. The critical viewer developed a healthy manipulation, to fragmentation, and finally to castration. suspicion of television networks – because we were dependent on their authority, mistrust became an important strategy. We learned to ask: What do they want us to believe? Are they The Screen as Generator holding back something? Is there an important lobby involved that tries to conceal informa- From Document to Simulacra tion for the viewer? In the case of the web, however, the truth is often not just ‘out there How can the screen generate its own reality? First of all, screen images are in themselves new somewhere’; it is often simply there, repeatedly, right in front of our eyes. features: they are newly created elements that invade our world and provide virtual exten- The problem is that such encounters became a subjective matter. For instance, when we bump into a confronting web video report, this ‘truth’ is not revealed to us on a public level, as 9. Thomas Elseasser has developed a clarifying analysis of the web user’s paradoxical state of in the case of television. Despite the fact that a lot of companions online might have discov- consciousness: ‘Right next to the euphoria and epiphany, then, there is the heat-death of ered the same information, its disclosure is not genuinely ‘public’ as, due to the solitariness of meaning, the ennui of repetition and of endless distraction: in short, the relentless progress of this experience, a collective response largely remains absent. Despite the frequently success- entropy that begins to suck out and drain away all life’ See Thomas Elsaesser, ‘“Constructive ful and important ‘power to the people’ ideology of the web, there is usually no actual outcry Instability”, or: The Life of Things as the Cinema’s Afterlife?’ in Geert Lovink and Sabine Niederer in which we can take part: no demonstrations in the streets, no journalists continuously (eds) Video Vortex Reader: Responses to YouTube, Amsterdam: Institute of Network Cultures, investigating and reporting the issues at stake. Because of the lack of collective response, we 2008, p. 30. 10. For more information: see the documentary Total Denial (www.totaldenialfilm.com) or go to are usually unable to really accept the disclosure of the confronting information, let alone to video.google.com/videoplay. 42 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 43 sions. Concerning the ontological status of these images, it is important to recall the radical shift from seeing the image as a document to seeing the image as a simulacrum. In the early days of cinema, a film image was often conceived as a document of reality, it contained a ‘true piece of reality’. 11 With the rise of video in the 1960s, the naturalist view returns with respect to amateur footage. Since Sony introduced the first handheld camera, the 1967 Portapak, a huge amount of amateur film has been shot, with the intention of creating a testimony of real life, by which I mean our daily reality, rather than the reality shown on film or in television. Since the early years of video, many artists have used the handheld camera in an attempt to expose mass media manipulation, for example by making guerrilla-TV, which is broadcast to a counter-public sphere. Or they used the handheld camera to explore the so-called ‘extra-medial’ – that is, life excluded from the big events in the news media, those left aside in remote areas and back alleys. However, partly because of successful movies such as the Blair Witch Project (1999), the amateur image has completely lost the privileged status of documentary evidence. Mean- while, all audiovisual images have become invested with the aura of animation. In the last decades, the omnipresence of the television image in particular has given rise to a common belief that film footage is not, and cannot really represent reality, since it is too self-referential. Johan Grimonprez. Still from Looking for Alfred (2005). Courtesy of Zapomatik/Film & Media Umbrella. Rather than reality, the image refers only to other images and interpretations. Plato’s concept of the ‘simulacra’ is often employed to emphasize this newly autonomous status of images. a tendency arising within the fine arts in the 1990s. 13 According to Bourriaud, in this decade Whereas philosophers such as Friedrich Nietzsche and Jean Baudrillard ascribe the nega- artists became ‘prosumers’: they consume in order to produce. In the very act of prosuming, tive meaning of a distorted or lost reality to the term, Gilles Deleuze has foregrounded the artists are ‘semionauts’ that travel through different worlds of meaning. In a contemporary positive dimension of the simulacra, as a vehicle of ‘becoming’ that is able to create new culture saturated with meaningful images, artists are like DJs that appropriate existing styles, extensions of reality. 12 In a similar vein, Nicolas Bourriaud’s essay ‘Postproduction’ discusses cultural spheres, and images. They make their own playlists by means of cutting, pitching and cross-fading between images and meanings. An excellent illustration of this tendency is Johan Grimonprez’s 2004 video Looking for Alfred. Although this work does not display any found footage, the images evoke the iconography of Alfred Hitchcock’s films, by using his 11. It would be a clumsy reduction to state that early cinema in general takes the film-image movies as a backdrop. They reveal the uncanny, authentic, and elusive spirit of Hitchcock by as a document. The French cineaste Georges Meliès, for instance, became famous for his means of afterimages that comment on his movies, or even seem to take revenge upon them. experiments with the magical hocus-pocus potentiality of the film medium. Early cinema also includes many other examples of experiments with phantasmagoria and a so-called ‘cinema of attraction’. On this point, see Tom Gunning, ‘The Cinema of Attractions: Early Film, Its Spectator From Hyperreality to Emulation and the Avant-Garde’ in Thomas Elsaesser and Adam Barker (eds) Early Film, British Film While images come to constitute their own reality, they also influence off-screen reality. This Institute, 1989. It could be argued, on the other hand, that these ‘attractions’ were so effective brings us to a second illustration of how the screen acts as a generator. I have mentioned thanks to the fact that the cinema-image had an enigmatic aura of realness in those days. the phenomenon of eclipsing, which is an effect of the multitude of media that shape and Furthermore, the factual objectivity of a film-image was often taken for granted in the days of filter the original event so that we can no longer experience it in an unmediated fashion. In early cinema, which is clearly no longer the case in our contemporary post-cinema era. This philosophy, such epistemological twists may be referred to in terms of hyperreality, particu- naturalist view is, for instance, prevalent in the theatre work of Erwin Piscator from the 1920s. larly in reference to Jean Baudrillard’s restricted and negative articulation of the concept in Putting the screen on stage, for Piscator, results in playfully letting real life enter uncut into the fictive spectacle in the playhouse. According to this view, the film image not only represents but ‘Simulacra and Simulations’. In Baudrillard’s view, the world we live in has been replaced by 14 also incarnates reality. Today, staging the screen, in the plays of the Wooster Group for instance, a copy world, a generic Disneyland, where we seek simulated stimuli. Two distinctions within clearly has another function: the film-image becomes a scenographic prop, a walk-on, a fictional the concept of hyperreality are relevant to my argument. protagonist in the play. 12. S ee Friedrich Nietzsche, ‘Reason in Philosophy’ in Twilight of the Idols, 1888, http://www.handprint.com/SC/NIE/GotDamer.html#sect3; Jean Baudrillard, ‘Simulacra and Simulations’ in Mark Poster (ed.) Selected Writings, Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1988, 13. Nicolas Bourriaud, Postproduction: Culture as Screenplay: How Art Reprograms the World. New http://www.stanford.edu/dept/HPS/Baudrillard/Baudrillard_Simulacra.html; Gilles Deleuze, York: Lukas & Sternberg, 2001. Difference and Repetition, Columbia: Columbia University Press, 1968. 14. Jean Baudrillard, ‘Simulacra and Simulations’. 44 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 45 Firstly, according to Baudrillard, the term hyperreality denotes the difficulty of distinguishing architect Lars Spuybroek, 17 whose sculptures are to be understood first and foremost as between reality and fantasy. However, since the depictions displayed by audiovisual media virtual entities: the digital concept has ontological priority. The actual buildings are illustra- are not just fantasy but also include much accurate information as well as interpretations and tions or instantiations of virtual spaces. Whereas simulations, as an authentic expression in commentary, the fundamental tension is of a different order. The combination of the natural a fake setting, result in a truth without reality, an emulation produces a new reality, a reality perception of reality, the mediated perception of reality through the screen and the familiarity without truth. That is, it is not truly there. Or rather, it is there only as a diversion of the virtual with realms of simulacra, results in the perception of reality as a hyperreality. This inevitably in physical space. impedes a return to unmediated perception (eclipsing) but it does not imply that hyperreality is mere semblance in the form of an inflated version of reality. On the contrary, experiencing From Virtual Reality to AR/MR hyperreality can equally be an intensified and thus a very real experience in which explora- Besides simulacra and emulations, the screen may also be transformed into new modes tion, recollection and imagination come together, and open up dimensions of perception that of reality thanks to new media developments. As objects, the cinema and television screen would otherwise be impossible to access. In this sense, hyperreality is the experience of a have literally been invading our everyday world for decades. Whereas the audiovisual screen kind of super-reality in which a plenitude and diversity of reality are present. 15 has become an ordinary, and even a vintage, object in our screen culture throughout the years, contemporary post-cinema developments revive the 19th century pre-cinema fasci- Secondly, Baudrillard includes certain constructed objects and events within the concept of nation for phantasmagoria. Throughout the history of technology, the ‘shock of the new’ hyperreality, such as Disneyland, which mimics fiction, or places such as Las Vegas or Du- has followed its own trajectory: the thrill of a ghost story has evolved from Chinese shadow bai, which are intended to substitute for fantasy and imagination. In this way, Baudrillard not play to magic lanterns; 18 the Eameses’ multi-screen architecture to Virtual Reality. 19 As new only places the exceptional similarity of these superficial places in a gloomy and moralistic technologies give rise to an all-encompassing screen that includes the television tube, the perspective, he also compares two radically different dimensions: our modified perception of computer display, and the telephone among many others, the image frees itself from the reality as a result of audiovisual media, and the materializations that are inspired by audio- traditional 2D screen. Whether it is due to small, built-in versions installed in all sorts of visual media. These reproductions of virtual entities are literal illustrations of how the screen devices or to mega projections on façades of urban buildings, screens become increasingly acts as a generator. They are attempts to create a reality that is more familiar, more ‘real’ than mobile. The development of CAD software and graphics hardware enables the construction real, in the sense that it more closely resembles the reality we know from the screen. So, of computer-simulated environments that allow us to navigate inside an image by means of whereas Baudrillard argues that simulations such as Disneyland demonstrate that reality is head-mounted displays, for example. Subsequently, the audiovisual image can be resur- becoming a fiction, the exact opposite is taking place: fiction is becoming real. Stated differ- rected in our surroundings by means of spatial holograms or interactive projections, hence ently, the virtual produces a surplus of reality. In this respect, it is significant that Disneyland creating a post-virtual reality. was constructed by film producers and set designers rather than architects. I will discuss three ways in which the invasion of images that have escaped the monitor What is special about such entities (the fake and real things generated by the screen) is their screen manifests. Firstly, there are the developments in ubiquitous and mobile technology ontology: they begin as simulations of virtual objects and become emulations, which compete that are sometimes referred to as Web 3.0. If Web 2.0 stands for social software, the third with reality instead of copying it. Emulations can therefore be understood as offering resist- generation covers, among other things, the development of new digital utilities like iPhones, ance to imitation, instead pursuing the creation of something radically new. In this respect, domotics, search engines, smart cctv, wear-cams, and lifecasting. Due to these applications, they embody an alternative reality situated between the virtual and the real. Or, we might say the web will seem to colonize ever expanding territory of our daily world by means of wander- that they produce a surplus from that which is simultaneously really there and truly virtual ing screens. At the same time, the traditional screen has become scattered and duplicated, by nature. Although the intention to create emulations can be found throughout art history, as have its images. A second development is that of so-called augmented reality (AR). As a contemporary emulations embody extra dimensions. 16 A good example is the design of Dutch combination of the physical world and computer generated data, AR is a layered reality in which the screen disappears into the environment and vice versa. AR represents a radical turning point with respect to audiovisual media considered as virtual invaders. If the rise of 15. A good example to illustrate this is the video work Plot Point (2007) by artist Nicolas Provost. This piece consists of footage that is randomly filmed in the streets of New York without any staging or acting. Thanks to montage and the addition of audio, however, Provost manages to 17. For images see www.nox-art-architecture.com. create a specific cinematic suspension. As a result, the video is completely penetrated with 18. For an instructive overview see, Tom Gunning ‘The Long and the Short of It: Centuries of the atmosphere of popular movies and police series. Nonetheless, what we see is not just the Projecting Shadows, From Natural Magic to the Avant-Garde’ in Stan Douglas and Christopher streets of New York as a familiar film set but a city that discloses itself in an updated version, Aemon (eds) Art of Projection, Ostfildern, Germany: Hatje Cantz, (2009), pp. 23-36. demonstrating how the originality of reality easily exceeds what we know from fiction. 19. F or more information see, Beatriz Colomina ‘Enclosed by Images: the Eameses’ Multiscreen 16. As an example, recall the installations of the Japanese artist Ryoji Ikeda (www.ryojiikeda.com) or Architecture’ in Stan Douglas and Christopher Aemon (eds) Art of Projection, Ostfildern, the digital paintings of Robert Seidel (www.robertseidel.com). Germany: Hatje Cantz, (2009), pp. 36-57. 46 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 47 webcams transforms the living room from a private place into a public film set, with AR both rendered obsolete – only image and meaning count. Second, doubled forms become equiva- public and private space becomes a 3D blue screen for a plethora of virtual features. Future lent. This is apparent in the case of self-made web video remakes. From the perspective of developments of AR include computer screens that are gesture or eye-operated, so that the individual, a re-editing or re-enactment of a web video might become more valuable and control icons and program windows appear as virtual devices in real space (3D Web) or as authentic than the original, not only because it is personalized, but because it contains extra interactive 3D virtual objects with adjustable shape and appearance. layers of meaning. Appropriation and reproduction are creative acts that allow the singular to overcome the universal. So-called mixed reality (MR) represents a third development in the audiovisual media land- scape. MR could be described as a new, synthetic environment with mixed objects and sub- A brilliant illustration of this process is Zachary Oberzan’s theatre performance Your Brother, jects, partly physical and digital. MR differs from AR not only because the layers are mingled, Remember? (2010). As aptly described in the accompanying text of the play, but because new features might pop up. For example, MR often involves hidden objects that Oberzan splices and dices home videos, Hollywood film footage and live performance. are made visible by means of machine-eye vision, such as visual images in surgery that make As kids in rural America, Zachary and his older brother Gator loved making parodies of use of medical scans, or visual images used in military warfare that are based on data from their favourite films, most notably Jean-Claude Van Damme’s karate opus Kickboxer, night vision equipment. Such high-tech devices do not generate analogue reproductions but and the notorious cult film Faces of Death. Twenty years later, estranged from his register data and present it in coded visualizations. Often, the interactive system employs a family, Zack returned to his childhood home to re-create these films, shot for shot, as GPS application which restricts its operational use to a particular location. In other words, precisely as possible, but now seen through a twenty-year lens of emotional and physi- like global positioning, MR can be omnipresent, which makes it difficult to distinguish from cal wear and tear. 20 un-plugged reality. The virtual and the real become as one, generating 3D visibility in which digital features interact with audiovisual recordings. Therefore, MR takes the transforma- At the end of the performance, after the audience have viewed a sparkling mix of remakes, tion of the ‘lay-back’ television watcher from ‘lean-forward’ web surfer a step further. Such either live on stage or on video, they are presented with the startling video of Jean Claude van immersive, generative and ubiquitous devices provide an opportunity not only to actively Damme re-enacting Zachary’s story. Suddenly, the order is reversed: the subjective survived explore, but to modify, expand and create a new environment. This shift generates a radically and lives on. In cases like these, Baudrillard’s looming phantom of the simulacra seems to new psychological condition: instead of withdrawing into a television or computer monitor, have been superseded by the individual’s compulsion to copy. The urge for repetition and as a kind of Cartesian cocoon through which we live daily life from a secure yet uninvolved redundancy, the so-called Freudian death-drive, here clearly functions as a vital and primal distance, we are challenged to become inventive actors within a mixed reality in which we force of survival. have individual and instant access to numerous applications. This new psychological condi- tion inevitably triggers a fusion: the experience of presence in an AR/MR confluence requires The phenomenon of hyperreality can also be extended to web video. Of course, the abun- a hands-on agency that is not compatible with the rational and passive (self-)reflection of an dance of web video enhances the experience of our daily lives as a layered reality, replete observer. AR/MR agents eventually become one with robot vision and take part in the crea- with citations and references to our audiovisual culture. However, web video also triggers the tion of a mediated and mixed world. phenomenon of hyperreality in a medium-specific way. The format of web video consists of small viewing boxes accompanied by dynamic information, such as intruding para-images, In conclusion, not only is the screen poised to disappear into the environment, we will also flickering hypo-text, and pop-ups. Hence, as a medium, web video encourages a new mental tend to become absorbed into the new pictorial environment generated by the expanded condition in which attention is spent upon monitoring heterogeneous and ephemeral infor- screen. A notion such as the passion for the virtual clearly connotes something different in mation. The viewer needs the skills to skip irrelevant information and avoid distraction. At the this newer context. The laid-back enjoyment of escapism in a clean virtuality, containing no same time one needs to be aware of details and momentary features. In short, the viewer’s kernel of the real, now seems to be counterbalanced by the excitement and anxiety of the perception amounts to a vigilant, personal montage and assemblage of data and codes. inescapable fusion of the real and virtual. This enigmatic amalgamate is invading our environ- This new condition implies a radical shift from what might be termed centralized attention ment, and we are about to be locked into it. to subtextual reading, both visual and literary. Given the many hours we spend online, this acquired condition of motley concentration is not easily dispensed with when we are offline, Web Video as a Response, and an In-between as we easily adopt a similar attitude of omitting and editing data according to our current In closing, let us return to web video. Concerning simulacra as self-referential entities, the needs and interests. This often results in a bizarre state of being in which we enjoy a kind of web in general, and web video in particular, intensify the culture of the copy, for it provides self-determination, gifted with a hopeful power to resist the art of manipulation, but at the risk its users free access to an immense database of ready-to-use information. Shareware, open of becoming lost in a disconnected and solitary live world. source software and digital piracy bring about the multiplication of duplicates, mutants and mashups. In this way, the intrinsic relationship of ‘original’ to ‘imitation’ is weakened, in a two- fold sense. First of all, in a digital realm, the significance of the initial material instantiation is 20. F or more information and to see the trailer visit: www.zacharyoberzan.com. 48 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 49 be exchanged for permanent live streaming on wandering screens, and, thanks to the new application Facebook Places, you can share where you are and who you are with in real- time using your mobile device. In 2007, Google Earth was launched, with the enthusiastic promise that the satellite-function will soon provide up-to-date and full coverage. In 2008, the TruVision T-5000 T-Ray Camera, capable of seeing through clothing and certain kinds of material infrastructure, was released for private sale. According to the promotional website, 21 the T5000 is compact, rugged, portable, easy-to-use and ‘completely safe’. But what if this technology is combined with our public CCTV infrastructure, let alone an online platform like Google Earth? How then, will the full exposure of our private life be averted, if it turns out that the technical devices at our disposal really are so ‘compact’, ‘portable’ and ‘easy-to-use’? In short, sooner or later, every user will become socially and psychologically confined within a complex mixed reality. But to end on a positive note, once we have become ‘imprisoned’, the same mixed reality could very well also bring some relief. Take Mohamed Bourouissa’s ex- perimental fiction film Temps Morts (2009). The film represents a correspondence between two people, one who is imprisoned and another who is not, as a montage of mobile phone registrations. With this film, Bourouissa presents a hopeful prospect: thanks to new media, detention is counterbalanced by a free and intensive circulation of communication, including images and clips of a world ‘outside’. Still from Your Brother, Remember? (2010). Courtesy of artist Zachary Oberzan. Finally, web video is also a significant in-between in the overall evolution towards a mixed reality. The ability to ‘Broadcast Yourself’ is not only blurring the distinction between private and public, it connects people together in a public and virtual realm. And it does so in an incessantly increasing manner, constantly breaking down the limitations of time and space. For instance, vlogs can already be transformed in a kind of life-logging, Skype-sessions can 21. w ww.TruVision.com. 50 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 51 RefeRenCes the DIVX eXpeRIence Baudrillard, Jean. ‘Simulacra and Simulations’, in Mark Poster (ed.) Selected Writings, Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1988. VIto campaneLLI http://www.stanford.edu/dept/HPS/Baudrillard/Baudrillard_Simulacra.html. Bourriaud, Nicolas. Postproduction: Culture as Screenplay: How Art Reprograms the World, New York: Lukas & Sternberg, 2001. Colomina, Beatriz. ‘Enclosed by Images: the Eameses’ Multiscreen Architecture’ in Stan Douglas and Christopher Aemon (eds) Art of Projection, Ostfildern, Germany: Hatje Cantz, (2009), pp. 36-57. Since the launch of Napster in 1999, more than 10 years of the diffusion of file-sharing Deleuze, Gilles. Difference and Repetition. Columbia: Columbia University Press, 1968. platforms have radically altered the modalities of distribution, and the fruition of cultural ob- Elseasser, Thomas. ‘“Constructive Instability”, or: The Life of Things as the Cinema’s Afterlife?’, in jects. 1 From this standpoint, the question that arises for me is: How is aesthetic perception Geert Lovink and Sabine Niederer (eds) Video Vortex Reader: Responses to YouTube, Amsterdam: Institute of Network Cultures, 2008, pp. 13-33. affected by the altered distribution and production of cultural materials exchanged in P2P Gunning, Tom. ‘The Long and the Short of It: Centuries of Projecting Shadows, From Natural Magic (peer-to-peer) networks? I believe that this issue can be approached from two points of view: to the Avant-Garde’, in Stan Douglas and Christopher Aemon (eds) Art of Projection, Ostfildern, first, these practices seem to preclude new forms of aesthetic experiences that I have termed Germany: Hatje Cantz, 2009, pp. 23-36. ‘disturbed’; second, it is also possible to observe an increasing taste for imperfection in the _____. ‘The Cinema of Attractions: Early Film, Its Spectator and the Avant-Garde’, in Thomas El- broader media system. By identifying the historical premises of these two developments, I saesser and Adam Barker (eds) Early Film. British Film Institute, 1989. want to trace the distinguishing features of the new aesthetic sensibility being formed before Nietzsche, Friedrich. ‘Reason in Philosophy’, in Twilight of the Idols, 1888. our very eyes. This analysis is dependent on a series of examples, each of which leads me to http://www.handprint.com/SC/NIE/GotDamer.html#sect3. Pfaller, Robert. ‘Interpassivity and Misdemeanors: the Analysis of Ideology and the Žižekian Toolbox’, the hypothesis that a taste for imperfection is growing in all fields of visual culture, including International Journal of Žižek Studies, 1.1 (2007): 33-50. cinema, art, pornography and advertising. As we credit truthfulness only to imperfect images Plato. The Sophist. http://philosophy.eserver.org/plato/sophist.txt. and sounds, we have increasingly developed a sort of generalized distrust of the cold perfec- Žižek, Slavoj. ‘The Interpassive Subject’, Centre Georges Pompidou, Traverses, 1998. http://www. tion of the cultural industries. lacan.com/zizek-pompidou.htm. Imperfect Cultural Objects Watching a movie downloaded from the internet offers a wide range of experiences. There are countless grades of quality available, all of which are strictly dependent on the processes a aCknowledgeMents particular video file has gone through in order to be made ready for downloading and sharing in a digital environment. To make things clearer, it is necessary to make a distinction between The author would like to thank the editors for their helpful remarks and Chris Chemerchak for proof- files realized directly from an original support, such as Screener, DVD-Rip, Disk image, or reading. Special thanks are offered to Johan Grimonprez, my colleagues of the Royal Academy of HDTV-Rip, and the so-called cam. In the first case, what we usually have is a simple copy Fine Arts (KASK), University College Ghent (i.e. Hilde D’haeyere, Edwin Carels) and Dominiek Hoens of material already in a digital format, which has been compressed through special codecs (Jan Van Eyck Academie, Maastricht) for the inspiring discussions. so as to be able to fit into the often limited bandwidth of a domestic connection. Camming is completely different: cam files are realized by recording screen images with a camera. Most of the time, cams are videos recorded by a compact digital camcorder inside a movie theatre, but there are many other different, and more imaginative, modalities. 2 Cams are the product of a remarkable chain of processes intervening between analogue and digital formats. In fact, even if the shots are captured on film, editing and post-production now take place in a digital format. Subsequently, the digital images are re-converted to film, so 1. This paper is adapted from a talk given at Video Vortex 4 (Split, 21-23 May 2009) and the research on the aesthetics of web forms which has resulted in my book, Web Aesthetics: How Digital Media Affect Culture and Society, NAi Publishers, Rotterdam and Institute of Network Cultures, Amsterdam, 2010. 2. S ee Wikipedia for a fuller definition and description of cams: http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Cam_ (bootleg). 52 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 53 that they can be distributed and screened in cinemas – cinemas in which ‘pirate cameras’ internet is a familiar product of the ‘home cinema’ phenomenon. What distinguishes watch- record the screened images, thus returning them to a digital format. This ‘stolen’ recording ing a movie downloaded from the web from other domestic formats such as DVD or Pay TV is later compressed into a file small enough to be shared over P2P networks. While there is is the overall drop in quality of the experience. The cost of the compromise between quality not time, here, to discuss the heroic cinema-goer who ‘conquers’ the film by producing a and file size becomes clear to the individual when they actually play downloaded content. We personal copy of it, we should at least take a moment to credit him or her with contributing to might say that the less a user ‘pays’ in terms of time downloading a file, the more they will pay the distribution of cultural forms. What is important, when discussing cams, is to understand when watching it, due to the interference caused by the loss of data. And we keep on sharing the role of qualitative variables other than film compression modalities. More specifically, let’s ‘corrupted’ digital materials even while perfectly aware of their inevitable – we might even say, consider two factors in depth. First of all, the quality of the recording, which largely depends necessary – imperfection. on the camera used, its position in the movie theatre, and the degree to which the camera can be held steady. The second factor is the presence of extraneous noise in the recording, The absence of barriers to the free flow of cultural digital materials seems to have become a which will be present unless the recording can be made through a direct connection to the more important value than the quality of the aesthetic experience itself. In this light, I believe audio source. Otherwise, the sound will be conditioned by the circumstances of the field we should ask: What is the value of a disturbed aesthetic experience? There are many theories recording, including the diffusion and refraction of sound waves by the physical architecture linking the sense of beauty to the presence of imperfection as an escape from insignificance, of the cinema. When watching a movie downloaded from the internet, the quality is always triteness, or indifference, as is the case in the work of the Lithuanian-French semiologist Al- compromised by the file compression. When watching a cam, however, there are an even girdas Greimas, 3 for example. However, if we look to the past for historical precedents to help greater number of overlapping levels – far more than the creators of the film could have us understand present phenomena, we encounter real problems. What is new about the be- conceived or planned for. haviours in play here prevents any direct connection with previous experience. I would like to suggest, therefore, that we need to focus on the concept, rather than the agents, of distur- Disturbed Aesthetic Experiences bance. If we think of the 19th century, and the disturbance to aesthetic enjoyment caused by One variable is the position of the camera inside the theatre. Obviously, a lateral position results industrialization, the birth of the metropolis, and the presence of masses of people, we quickly in a rather unusual spatial perspective, especially with respect to the classical central framing understand how familiar the concept of disturbance is within the history of aesthetics. As we model, which we have inherited from painting, the cinema, television and computer screens. know well, and as Baudelaire so wonderfully demonstrated, 4 the unease caused by the din According to this classical model, the spectator is ideally positioned centrally with respect to of the modern city is also a source of inspiration, and even constitutes the opportunity for a the item they are viewing. The lateral position which distinguishes some cam videos is usually new form of art. Following in Baudelaire’s footsteps, one author who clearly understood the considered the result of random factors, such as the cammer arriving too late to the cinema transformations triggered by modernity was Walter Benjamin, who developed the ‘theory of the to take a centrally located seat. What must be emphasized is the extent to which these factors shock’; German poet Rainer Maria Rilke also attended to the unbearable noise and chaos of the are outside the control of the film’s director, and are instead the result of an external point of metropolis – Paris, in his case. 5 However, considering the artistic avant-garde of the previous view upon the film. Another level superimposed on the film is the background noise which century, it is the Futurists that undoubtedly offer the most interesting insights into the aesthetic characterizes many cam videos. Generally speaking, audio quality depends on the positioning value of disturbance. I am thinking, here, of the importance given to noise in Futurist music, of the camera’s microphone towards the loudspeakers in the theatre. And yet, however well it and more particularly of the painter Luigi Russolo’s position. As expressed in L’arte dei rumori is positioned, the effect will be quite similar to placing one’s head inside a box – the refraction (The Art of Noises), 6 Russolo’s thesis is that the multiplication of machines entails an increase of sound within the cinema produces a constant echo, which gives rise to the sense that the source of the sound is moving continuously closer to, and away from, the listener. The most striking aspect of the sound is, however, the background noise that mingles with the film’s 3. Algirdas J. Greimas, De l’imperfection, Périgueux: Pierre Fanlac, 1987. audio: laughter, handclapping, coughing and the ‘Shushes!’ one often hears at the cinema. 4. Baudelaire writes: ‘I was crossing the boulevard in a great hurry, splashing through the mud in the midst of a seething chaos, and with death galloping at me from every side, I gave a All these disturbances become part of the digital file which will be shared from computer sudden start and my halo slipped off my head and fell into the mire of the macadam. I was far too frightened to pick it up. I decided it was less unpleasant to lose my insignia than to get my to computer through a P2P connection. They are intrusions that, blended with the original bones broken. Then too, I reflected, every cloud has a silver lining. I can now go about incognito, work, create a new work. On the one hand, this could be taken to give rise to a feeling that be as low as I please and indulge in debauch like ordinary mortals. So here I am as you see, one is watching the film inside a cinema. On the other hand, cams may be read in light of exactly like yourself’. Charles Baudelaire, Perte d’auréole, 1865, trans. ‘Loss of Halo’, in Charles their intrinsic potential to superimpose original empathetic elements onto the film itself. This Baudelaire, Paris spleen, trans. Louise Varèse, New York: New Directions, 1970, p. 94. is a new unicum, in which individual authorship and collective authorship blend together in a 5. R ainer Maria Rilke, ‘Gong’ (1925), in Stephen Mitchell (ed. and trans.) Selected Poetry of Rainer completely random way – these new factors are unpredictable and unintended, yet unique, Maria Rilke, New York: Random House/Vintage, 1989, p. 282. signs of a specific time and place. Here, I will focus my attention on the moment of fruition 6. Luigi Russolo, L’arte dei rumori, Milan: Direzione del Movimento Futurista, 1913; The Art of Noises, trans. Ben Barclay, New York: Pendragon, 2005, available at http://www.thereminvox. of cultural products shared on the internet. Domestic viewing of a film downloaded from the com/article/articleview/117. 54 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 55 in sources of disturbance, and a concomitant increase in our ability to distinguish between a opt for the model of fluidity. This scenario highlights a breach in society with respect to aes- multiplicity of noises. Rather than being simply imitated, Russolo insists that we must ‘combine thetic enjoyment itself. On the one hand, there is a more or less large group of individuals who them according to our imagination’. 7 Clearly, for Futurists, disturbances are both a constitutive can have access to aesthetic experiences that strive towards perfection. On the other hand, element of artistic practice and of the aesthetic experience itself. Another Futurist, Giacomo there are an increasing number of people who are obliged to cope with disturbed experiences. Balla, translates the concept of sound in visual terms, combining with and superimposing a We are, therefore, witnessing new mechanisms of inclusion and exclusion with important dif- broken line onto a curved one, so as to produce a ‘line of speed’. This solution, along with the ferences from the recent past. Traditionally, the poorer classes have simply been excluded from analogy between painting and music, are echoed in the work of Wassily Kandinsky. In his 1926 full access to culture. The digitization of cultural products and their proliferation on the internet work Punkt und Linie zu Fläche (Point and Line to Plane), Kandinsky specifically refers to the seems to complicate this reality. As long as they have a broadband internet connection, less dissonance between a curved line and a broken one, seen as an element of irregularity, of wealthy people have a greater opportunity to access cultural products, even if those products breach, of interference- basically, an element that interrupts perceptual continuity. 8 are more imperfect due to amateur processes of reproduction and archiving of digital data. Disturbed Aesthetics and Society Here, we face a reality that has many problematic aspects. P2P networks, along with other At this point, it should be clear that the concept of a disturbed aesthetic experience is not forms for the distribution of ‘pirated’ material, allow the cultural industries to spread the domi- new at all. While admitting, as Lev Manovich claims, 9 that interference resulting from selec- nant cultural model to people and communities who might otherwise have been excluded tive compression will tend to disappear as technology evolves, we must consider that we are from it, whether because of their social position, or because they have freed themselves from currently faced with two different models of digital cultural production: on the one hand the the slavery of television for the sake of more modern addictions. At the same time, an oppos- ‘model of perfection’ represented by those digital supports, such as CD, DVD and Blu-Ray, ing force emerges: through P2P networks and those practices linking to what are laughably that promise the best possible quality in terms of reproduction and archiving of digital data; on termed ‘non-authorized copies’, small dissenting minorities are given access to new and im- the other, the ‘model of fluidity’ which puts the value of exchangeability before that of quality. portant forms of cultural production. Since these products have been created to oppose, or Such models assume, in addition, two politically antithetic positions: adhering either implicitly at least have been conceived outside the dominant moulds or ideologies, such products are or explicitly to market rules; or the total denial of those same rules. systematically excluded from the major film distribution and international television networks. Within this struggle, it appears to be economic factors that play the most significant role. In Being able to access non-authorized sources allows us to hear voices alternative to those fact, the cost of the more ‘noble’ or better quality supports leads large numbers of people to which bombard us from the mainstream. It also allows us to stay in touch with our cultural memory, over and above those rare occasions when a window opens in the traditional media and allows us a glimpse of something worthwhile. If I want to see a film by Lang, Vertov or 7. Russolo, L’arte dei rumori. Buñuel, why should I have to wait until some under-financed minor local film festival manages 8. See Wassily Kandinsky, Point and Line to Plane, trans. Howard Dearstyne and Hilla Rebay, New to organize a retrospective once a year? Indeed, why pay $20 to Amazon to watch the film, York: Dover Publications, 1979. I discuss the subject of disturbance in aesthetic experience at when I can simply type the director’s name into eMule’s search area, and see what other users length in Web Aesthetics: How Digital Media Affect Culture and Society, have posted for sharing? In addition, video pirating can play an important role in encourag- 9. Manovich writes: ‘rather than being an aberration, a flaw in the otherwise pure and perfect world of the digital, where not even a single bit of information is ever lost, lossy compression is the very ing the production of independent videos. As Tilman Bäumgartel reports, this is the case in foundation of computer culture, at least for now. Therefore, while in theory, computer technology South East Asia where there has, in recent years, been an incredible explosion of independent entails the flawless replication of data, its actual use in contemporary society is characterized by productions. 10 loss of data, degradation, and noise’. Lev Manovich, The Language of New Media, Cambridge, Mass.: MIT Press, 2001, p.55. Manovich, with the words ‘at least for now’, refers to a near future A New Aesthetic Sensibility in which new compression techniques will further limit the loss of data, or alternatively, the speed It is perhaps possible to radicalize the symmetry between digital tools and independent pro- of the connections will make it unnecessary to compress a file before sharing it on the internet. ductions. The hypothesis I would like to verify is that the use of digital tools in relation to In commenting on my presentation of an original core of this essay, during the international conference Video Vortex 4 (Split, 21-23 May 2009), Manovich pointed out that technology is, cinema, and the consequent lowering of product quality, are not necessarily a consequence today, close to offering the transmission of video with a quality that tends to perfection through of the small budgets of young independent directors. Rather, I believe we are in the midst faster internet connections. However, these projects are still at an experimental level, and therefore have no impact on a significant mass of users and, even when they do, it is easy to imagine that they will create a new kind of digital divide between people (primarily U.S. citizens) 10. Tilman Bäumgartel, ‘Media Piracy and Independent Cinema in Southest Asia’, in Geert Lovink and admitted to the benefits of these new technologies and Third World users that will continue for a Sabine Niederer (eds) Video Vortex Reader: Responses to YouTube, Amsterdam: Institute of Network long time to exchange imperfect materials. Ultimately, until this scenario is realized in practice, Cultures, 2008, p. 266. See also Tilman Bäumgartel, ‘The Culture of Piracy in the Philippines’, in we will continue to share ‘impure’ digital materials, recognizing the inevitability, almost the Shin Dong Kim and Joel David (eds) Cinema in / on Asia, Gwanju: Asian Culture Forum, 2006. necessity, of this imperfection. Available at: http://www.asian-edition.org/piracyinthephilippines.pdf. 56 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 57 of a new aesthetic positioning – one which, as usual, is picked up by the antennae of artists preference for DV over the traditional film camera makes sense as an attempt to be closer to before becoming obvious to all. 11 The first point to make is that, if economics were the only reality - obviously not to reality itself, but to reality as it is appears to us through the media, factors in play, we could not explain why several important European directors have made and through digital media in particular. As it is the only reference we have, this reality should use of low-cost digital technologies when they had the economic means to be use the most not be subject to judgement, but must be imagined and lived to the full, in the sense that its sophisticated analogue technologies. Of course, one might object that in the most emblem- images must in some way be reproduced. atic case, that of Dogma 95, the decision to flexibly interpret the ninth rule (that is, to see Academy 35mm film as the standard solely for film distribution), was dictated by the need to Brian De Palma’s Redacted (2007) explores the ‘non-truthful truth’ of video and film im- respect the third rule, which holds that shooting must be done with handheld cameras (not ages, and offers valuable reflections upon many of these points. Its brief opening sequence exactly an easy task with the heavy 35mm). One might thus be tempted to dismiss von Trier, is paradigmatic: a smooth camera movement descending from above (a classic cinematic Vinterberg, or Kragh-Jacobsen’s choices to shoot in digital format as merely the result of the image) is overlaid with the recording date (a classic handycam image). Following this is a more manageable DV. One could also object that, in the case of the Blair Witch Project 12 or title in a semi-professional graphic, while the colloquial voiceover of a soldier (who is also the more recent Cloverfield 13 it is only a narrative expedient. One could also talk of a purely the film’s protagonist) states that he is the author of the recording itself; after which a highly stylistic exercise in the case of Giuseppe Bertolucci’s Probably Love. 14 Indeed, we could amateurish tracking shot ends with the protagonists looking collectively into the camera; continue indefinitely to provide reasons for directors’ decisions not to use film, even when and finally with a freeze-frame. . As this incipit demonstrates, the film is something like they could afford to do so. However, I believe it is quite clear that these are all conscious aes- a Hollywood milk-shake of DV footage, YouTube fragments, wannabe documentaries and thetic choices, which have nothing to do with the finances available to the production. In my indie parodies. What is particularly worth noting is De Palma’s ability to capture the phe- opinion, it is only by accepting the fact that both independent and mainstream directors are nomenon which has so radically modified the aesthetic perception of film viewers; he plays opting to use DV cameras and other low-level technologies with respect to international film at alternating and superimposing classic cinema aesthetics with the DIY aesthetic that has standards as an explicitly aesthetic choice, that we can begin to understand the motivations exploded along with the global spread of digital video cameras. De Palma is fully aware behind such decisions. of the present dominant aesthetic. In fact, the very theme of the film, which is the war in Iraq, makes this play of alternating and superimposed aesthetics necessary, as the absolute Certainly, there is a broad fascination with everything digital. Perhaps, however, this is also untrustworthiness of embedded journalists has made it normal to look for bits of ‘real’ truth an attempt to produce images which resemble those that are increasingly shaping the tastes only in that unofficial footage ‘grabbed’ by brave reporters, often at risk of their own lives. At of the general public. Indeed, the contemporary visual landscape is constituted by YouTube this point, we are used to attributing truthfulness only to low-resolution images, such as the videos, films downloaded on P2P networks, television news footage from around the globe, grainy, blurred images from a mobile phone or from a tiny hidden video camera. De Palma the Islamic terrorist propaganda videos shown on Al-Jazeera, the Twin Towers footage shot demonstrates that he is fully aware of all this, and he stages an intelligent representation of on amateur video cameras by shocked bystanders, homemade porn videos posted by jilted our present circumstances. lovers, and by the wobbly images produced by the millions of webcams pointing, it seems, at everyone, everywhere, these days. Contemporary media art testifies to precisely this evolution of aesthetic taste. Here, we might consider Julien Maire’s Low Resolution Cinema (2005), a project which presents an Thus, we have a visual landscape characterized by low-resolution images, which are some- abstract vision of the geographical space of Berlin. 15 Using various techniques, including times jumpy, sometimes grainy, and almost always badly lit. This is indeed a disturbed land- drastic resolution reduction, images are decompressed and projected into 3D space. This scape, but one much closer to life than the images depicted in the glossy perfection of the is achieved by a special projector using two black and white, half-broken Liquid Crystal medium of film. Immersed for hours on end in this continuous flow of low-resolution images, Displays (LCDs), so that only the upper or lower part of the image is visible. The LCDs con- it is inevitable that our aesthetic tastes will be affected. Before our very eyes, a new aesthetic stantly move back and forth, towards and away from the projector’s light source – which sensibility is being formed: one which favours speed, immediacy and realism over refined itself alternates between back and forth movements. The effect produced by this complex perfection; the documentary attitude over fiction; Lumière over Méliès. In sum, directors’ technique is of images so de-stratified that they evoke the scrolling lines of code seen in The Matrix trilogy, or the tight printing of characters produced on the scroll of a dot matrix printer. In Low Resolution Cinema, the perfection of cinema film images becomes a blurred 11. A s Marshall McLuhan stated: ‘The artist picks up the message of cultural and technological memory, but the magic of cinema, that prodigious illusion produced by moving images, challenge decades before its transforming impact occurs’. remains absolutely intact. Marshall McLuhan, Understanding Media: The Extensions of Man, New York: McGraw Hill, 1964, p. 65. 12. T he Blair Witch Project (dir. Daniel Myrick and Eduardo Sanchez, 1999). 13. Cloverfield (dir. Matt Reeves, 2008). 14. Probably Love (dir. Giuseppe Bertolucci, 2001). 15. See: http://julienmaire.ideenshop.net/project5.shtml. 58 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 59 Victor Liu’s Delter (2002) offers us an explicit magnification of the rough nature of images in tion). In my opinion, these forms of production occupy a central position because they dis- digital movement. 16 Liu produced software able to extract the data between two frames of rupt a model of sexuality based on the obsessive repetition of inconsistent narrative routines. an MPEG video. By visualizing only the inter-frames, the objects of the images that form the Slavoj Žižek summarizes the formula effectively: a plumber knocks at the door of a lonely, video become deleted, leaving only a weak trace, a phantom of the movement that was there. sexually provocative woman who, after her sink has been fixed, suggests that there is another In this project, Liu therefore exposes the data structure that accomplishes the process of hole that needs to be fixed. 21 In its display of stolen private moments, and the rare forms of compression. He reveals a scheme that was created to be read and interpreted by machines artistic pornography, amateur pornography restores the connection with the imagination that alone. By observing this structure, it is possible to observe the phenomenon of man becom- has been censored by mainstream pornography. In these cases, viewers are stimulated to ing machine (the last stage of our aim of replacing it), through the reconstruction of the whole try and imagine a narrative line that links what they see with what precedes that moment. movement in the images deprived by Delter of their own objects. They are therefore free to imagine the life of the protagonists, the events that took place before the explicit act they are witnessing. In other words, they are using their imagination. Another interesting project is Swedish artist Anders Weberg’s Unpixelated (2009). The idea Such realities function as important antagonists to the porn industry’s attempt to crystallize behind this artwork arises from the fact that in Japanese porn, it is required by law (article an aesthetic of desire. 175 of the Japanese Penal Code) that the male and female genitalia be blurred to obscure it from sight. The pixellation or mosaic blurring of the sexually explicit area is referred to as As with news of the war in Iraq, the user of pornographic material seeks a little bit of truthful- bokashi. Hence, in Unpixelated, Weberg utilizes software that reconstructs the blurred area ness in low-resolution, amateur digital videos. As the feeling is that high-resolution porn vid- on censored pornographic films, returning it to its original state. Once this software is applied, eos are too distant from reality, the industry seeks to regain its market share by imitating the a mosaic blur is then applied to the rest of the image, leaving only the once censored pubic amateur aesthetic – thereby reinforcing the trend towards disturbed aesthetic experiences. It hair or genitalia to be viewed clearly. 17 is possible to state that the praise of imperfection is increasingly the zeitgeist. Our time credits truthfulness only to imperfect images and sounds, developing a sort of generalized distrust of A Taste for Imperfection the cold perfection of the cultural industries, in fields as diverse as cinema, the news media, If the analysis of these works seems to support the hypothesis that a taste for imperfection new media art, and advertising. is spreading within all fields of visual culture, further confirmation comes from the rise of a new rhetoric based on the ‘aesthetic of imperfection’ in the field of advertising. One example is the Saatchi & Saatchi advertising campaign for Maryland Cookies: ‘Imperfect, but you love them’. 18 Another is the Italian campaign for the new BMW series 5 ‘Nessuno è Perfetto’ (No- body is Perfect), which shows the car being admired by a woman with a large nose and an- other with a chipped tooth. 19 Yet another example is the touching praise of small flaws which make a person perfect in the ‘Beautifully Imperfect’ campaign, financed by the Singapore Ministry of Community Development, Youth and Sport. 20 I have deliberately chosen cases from disparate areas of culture in order to demonstrate clearly the business world, too, is attempting to appropriate the concept of the truthfulness of flaws. The desire for irregularity, for the breaking of symmetry, characterizes the spirit of our times. If it is this that the public views as ‘authentic feeling’, we should not be surprised if communication experts try to dress their messages and products in a cloak of authenticity. However, any analysis of pirated cultural products shared on the web is incomplete without an analysis of one of its statistically dominant forms: pornography. It is worth highlighting that the internet enables access to a striking number of materials for amateur production (whether they are shared with the approval of their creators and producers is another ques- 16. http://www.n-gon.com/delter. 17. http://www.unpixelated.org. 18. http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=vusmtmBRLWU. 19. h ttp://www.youtube.com/watch?v=8NvBrsW17fM. 21. S lavoj Žižek in, The Pervert’s Guide to Cinema (2006) by Sophie Fiennes. A two-hour 20. http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=4I3ZmNKYma0. documentary scripted and presented by Žižek. 60 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 61 RefeRenCes ReGaRDInG the seX, LIes anD VIDeotapes Baudelaire, Charles. Perte d’auréole, 1865, trans. ‘Loss of Halo’, in Charles Baudelaire, Paris spleen, of otheRs: memoRy, counteR-memoRy, trans. Louise Varèse, New York: New Directions, 1970. anD mystIfIeD ReLatIons Bäumgartel, Tilman. ‘Media Piracy and Independent Cinema in Southest Asia’, in Geert Lovink and Sabine Niederer (eds), Video Vortex Reader: Responses to YouTube, Amsterdam: Institute of saRah késenne Network Cultures, 2008. _____. ‘The Culture of Piracy in the Philippines’, in Shin Dong Kim and Joel David (eds), Cinema in / on Asia, Gwanju: Asian Culture Forum, 2006. Greimas, Algirdas J. De l’imperfection, Périgueux: Pierre Fanlac, 1987. Manovich, Lev. The Language of New Media, Cambridge, MA: MIT Press, 2001. According to Belgian painter Luc Tuymans, ‘with the appearance of new technologies, you McLuhan, Marshall. Understanding Media: The Extensions of Man, New York: McGraw Hill, 1964. always get a pornographic element. There’s always a desire to relate in a physical way to Rilke, Rainer Maria. ‘Gong’ (1925), in Stephen Mitchell (ed. and trans.) Selected Poetry of Rainer these technologies’. 1 Last year, when I read a terrifying story in the newspaper about a girl Maria Rilke, New York: Random House/Vintage, 1989. that killed herself after her ex-boyfriend sent nude pictures of her to classmates and friends, Russolo, Luigi. L’arte dei rumori, Milan: Direzione del Movimento Futurista, 1913; trans. Ben Barclay, I recalled Tuymans’ statement. We might take the net genre of ‘ex–girlfriend revenge movies’, The Art of Noises, New York: Pendragon, 2005. which are sad imitations of celebrity sex-tapes, of which Paris Hilton’s P2P (peer-to-peer) hit is probably the most famous example, as an extreme example of how our viewing is affected by shifting parameters of intimacy and remembrance. These 21st century pop videos are simultaneously shocking, touching and fascinating; exhibiting a bizarre mix of tenderness and cruelty, familiarity and exposure. And yet, this kind of user- generated content is rather typical for the increasingly ‘mobile’ internet. Rather than circulating on open platforms such as YouTube or Vimeo, these videos are sent between the portable communication devices of people who know each other. Even if they are published on the net, these videos are taken offline before the mainstream media picks up on the controversy. What is found online are soft porn imitations of ex-girlfriend revenge movies, the origins of which remain obscure. Robert Devriendt, Victimes de la passion, 2010, Courtesy Galerie Baronian-Francey en Galerie Hervé Loevenbruck. These imitations are imagined experiences of authenticity. They include normal girls in Amer- ican living rooms, wearing girlie underwear and stripping, dancing, shaking, and imitating MTV clips. Sometimes, the girls talk back to the camera, often after being encouraged by the cameraman/boyfriend, who stays out of the frame. The suggestion is of a close bond between girl and cameraman, one of trust and playful desire, which is reinforced by the low-resolution webcam quality and the hand-cam shakiness. The attractiveness of these images arises from their suggestion of authenticity, and the pleasure of voyeurism. And yet, the promotional ban- ner of a porn website makes the set-up all too clear: these living rooms are also porn sets; the girls porn actresses; their lovers bullies. In this way, we live the mise-en-scène of the everyday as a production line of appropriated media performances. 1. Jan Braet, ‘“Wat hab je nu Geschilderd?” “Niks!”’, in Knack, 13 May, 2009. 62 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 63 The MPEG4 cell phone circles of teenagers are interesting sites of investigation because find in this new situation? What does it mean to look at your own posted private images? Can they point to contemporary ways of viewing and remembering. They reveal the way in which the current craze of amateur activity also be explained as a longing for the loss of ‘familiar the contemporary meaning of transgression depends upon the degree to which networks viewing’? And finally, can the renewed closure of networks provide what we are looking for? are open or closed, and on the control and ownership of distribution channels. However, distribution continues to interact with the power of the image – both its morality and memory- Susan Sontag and ‘Mystified Relations’ function. If amateur images are at the nexus of this dynamic between economic and social In her classic work On Photography, 2 American philosopher Susan Sontag concluded with a relationships, ex–girlfriend revenge movies are even more radical points of convergence. To call for ‘an ecology of images’, censuring the visual stimuli with which a consumerist society think adequately about the contemporary networked image, we need to go beyond classical assaults us. Twenty five years later, returning to the subject of visual representations of war concepts of cinematographic identification and activist politics of participation. and violence in Western culture, Sontag admits to the futility and impotence of her earlier demand. Soon after it was published in 2003, Sontag’s Regarding the Pain of Others became The Amateur Exception a key text for art students. 3 In this later work, Sontag makes a sinister parallel, demonstrat- What happened between browsing through our family albums at home, and clicking on Face- ing how the Western gaze was determined by representative programs of suffering and war book images in our offices? Before they were put on the internet, amateur images constituted in Western art history. Sontag makes it clear that this analysis extends to photography in an exceptional 20th century viewing experience. When an image is put online, this excep- general: in the end, ‘images of cruelty’ exemplify the act of ‘looking’ itself; the subject/object tional quality is lost. relation in each image entails a voyeuristic stance. Multiplication is a key feature of the photo- Although it might seem outdated in relation to 21st century user-generated content, Son- graphic image. As we all know, just as Wal- tag’s focus on the viewing experience and the distributive principle of photography continues ter Benjamin predicted, the industrialized to be relevant to network culture. In essence, Sontag’s work is an attempt to describe the distribution of photographic images had a mainstream Western viewing experience, which is defined by the worldwide distribution of major impact on 20th century art. Through media images. Sontag described how the Western television viewer is disconnected from the the publicity of print, news media and tel- suffering of the people depicted in media images, leading to a conflict between watching evision, it became a mainstream, everyday and acting that causes apathy and frustration. 4 Sontag puts the very existence of any bond experience to look at pictures of people one between the viewer and the subject of the image, including that of empathy or identification, did not know. Each photograph thus holds into question. Instead, the relation the viewer has to media images is analysed in terms of Mekhitar Garabedian, M.VERDONCKLAAN, 2003, video the promise of total exposure and distribu- distance and indifference. According to Sontag, we simulate a spatial relation between viewer projection, DVD, 8’40’’. With Vergine Karaguezian, sound tion, and of a separation between the sites and victim where there is none, a mystification that is immoral: ‘The feeling of being present by 80000 (Kwinten Callens). Courtesy of the artist and hoet bekaert gallery. of filming and viewing. with the suffering of others, made possible by images, suggests that there is a connection between faraway victims and the viewer: this is mystification of what we really can do’. 5 In the mass communication media of the 20th century, amateur images subverted this in- dustrial principle of photography. Although private photos could be as exposed and heavily Sontag also denounces the ‘immorality’ of images which lead to the de-subjectification of distributed as other images, they often stayed locked away in closets, albums and purses. what is depicted. Quoting Virginia Woolf‘s description of a corpse in a Spanish civil war The relation we had with these images was strong and intimate. We knew the people and photograph, which could be equally taken for a woman or a pig, Sontag points to the fact the places in the picture, and the people who took the photograph. From a contemporary that suffering victims are powerless because they are unknown and nameless. In our visual standpoint, 20th century amateur photography and film stand out as the last possible inti- culture, only celebrities are known by their names; all others are degraded to representatives mate and authentic viewing experience possible. These media suspended the total exposure of their race, age, profession or ethnicity. 6 It is thus clear that each photograph, due to its of the photographic image; the meaning of amateur images was this unfulfilled promise of potential for distribution, has the power to make the subject it depicts into an anonymous distribution. object. As Sontag writes: User-generated content and social networking sites such as Facebook ‘corrected’ this situa- tion. Today, amateur images no longer represent an exception to the photographic principles of multiplication and distribution. Let’s say that the situation was ‘normalized’ into a state of 2. Susan Sontag, On Photography, New York: Farrar, Straus & Giroux, 1977. total exposure. This raises several questions. Can there be intimacy in the viewing experience 3. S usan Sontag, Regarding the Pain of Others, London: Penguin Books, 2004. once amateur images have entered into the public space? Most of the time, our connection 4. S ontag, Regarding the Pain of Others, p. 97. 5. S ontag, Regarding the Pain of Others, p.105. to the people and places in these pictures is entirely random. What kind of intimacy do we 6. Sontag, Regarding the Pain of Others, p. 59. 64 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 65 The more faraway, exotic or unknown the place is, the more we will be confronted with ing. Should we conceive of this process as the creation of endless possibilities for recognition recognizable death people, suffering and dying in a direct way... . We want to see fara- and familiarity, or is this better described in Sontag’s words, as ‘a mystification of what we way suffering. We don’t want to see suffering that is near. The other is somebody who really can do’? is seen, not somebody who sees. 7 Roland Barthes’ Counter-memory In this sense, undistributed analogue family pictures might be seen as the ‘negatives’ of news Amateur pictures were exceptional in terms of memory: as the only photographs that could media images. The intimate experience of viewing family albums or home movies contrasts actually be memories, they served to connect pictures to real experiences and places. This sharply with Sontag’s description of the voyeuristic viewing experience entailed by war pho- was not true for most other photographic images. The lack of memory which goes with most tography. photographs stands in the way of an intimate viewing experience. Yet it seems that a picture will do everything it can to give rise to a feeling of familiarity within the viewer. The potential Although amateur images no longer constitute an exception to the photographic paradigm for distribution inherent within the photographic medium comes with another consequence: of exposure and distribution, most of us act as if nothing has changed. Facebook profits that of counter- or blocked memory. from this fiction of shared intimacy by turning a circle of friends into a pool of voyeurism and exposure. Such images result in a kind of simulated familiarity. These new shades of access, According to French philosopher Roland Barthes, photographic images are to a certain ex- exposure and closure within private and public spheres are far from the intimate experience tent able to redirect, add, rewrite or replace memories. 8 Thus, Barthes’ radical concept of of viewing 20th century amateur images. It is precisely this ‘suspended voyeurism’ that was counter-memory states that photographic images are able to simulate proximity to reality, or at stake in the public debate regarding the ‘do’s and don’ts of Facebook. indexicality, and are able to block remembrance: the counter–memory –image points to the fact that you remember something you did not experience. When the image starts to behave The Dos and Don’ts of Facebook like a memory, it is simulating the missing link between what you see and what you remem- At a certain moment, one could hear discussion on streets, trains and in bars regarding the ex- ber, and between the contexts of viewing and filming. hibitionism and voyeurism of making private pictures visible to colleagues and half-strangers. What is fascinating is the way in which the shooting, uploading and viewing of 21st century Sontag’s concept of the mystified relation between television viewer and war victim may be internet users is balancing the effects of the multiplication of viewing contexts. New production articulated with Barthes’ concept of counter-memory. Whereas Sontag condemns the fiction and distribution technologies, including lighter and cheaper cameras and free, fast and easy of the relationship between subject and object posited by the viewing of the photographic im- editing software and internet platforms helps to reunify the locales for filming and viewing. age, Barthes foregrounds the power of the image to give rise to a memory of what the viewer did not experience. Even while such imaginative mechanisms became implicated with the Sontag has discussed the democratizing majority of viewing experiences, amateur pictures preserved the authenticity of viewing a impact of 1960s film technology, which al- photographic image. Uploading private pictures puts an end to this unique situation. lowed war photographers using light, port- able and cheap cameras to come closer to When the real experiences behind user-generated content are injected with the fictions of their subjects. Without the close-ups and ‘blocked memory’ and ‘mystified relations’, the inevitable result is a voyeuristic playground. ‘on the spot’ images these cameras made Now that they can be viewed by millions of strangers in a single click, amateur pictures have possible, Sontag points out, the impact of lost their exceptional power to create an intimate viewing experience as a ritual of remem- photographs of the Vietnam war on Ameri- brance. It is to be expected that images will increasingly manipulate our own highly personal can public opinion could never have been memories of daily life; one can already see people assuming poses and cameras viewpoints so powerful. For Sontag, however, this they recall from films and other media. In the case of image recognition technology, memory closeness nevertheless creates imaginary becomes completely defunct. Jasper Rigole, Paradise Recollected, Single Channel video, relations between objects and subjects that 8mm-film transferred to video, 33min, 2008. block the progress towards real intervention. We can see private images of strangers, and strangers can see our own private images. Without the connection to memory, it is impossible to predict how an image will be viewed. One might say that contemporary technologies have lead us to a similarly ambiguous situa- As Sontag states, ‘There’s no way to know what the effect of a picture will be’. 9 Is the current tion. Democratic recording and editing technologies do reunify the acts of viewing and film- 8. Roland Barthes, Camera Lucida: Reflections on Photography, trans. Richard Howard, London: Vintage, 1993. 7. Sontag, Regarding the Pain of Others, p. 69. 9. Sontag, Regarding the Pain of Others, p. 121. 66 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 67 ‘archive fever’ a way to deal with these anxieties? Or are we done with ‘the question of like- The photographic principle of ‘blocked memory’ also plays a part here. Ambiguous access ness or unlikeness’? 10 Did the loss of these exceptional viewing conditions set loose the last entails confused functions of remembrance. Lack and presence of memory define the mean- hidden controversies of the photographic medium? ing of these visuals. The schoolmates of the girl have no memory of the scene, but they knew the girl. While being filmed, the girl must have been filled with fear of a future interpretation, Sex, Lies and Videotape a future screening by uninvolved viewers. Meanwhile, the porn surfer querying ‘ex-girlfriend In recent years, there has been a tendency for the increased closure of networks, as users revenge movies’ remembers the media controversy, and maybe his own amateur tapes, but have become more reflective regarding what to share online, and with whom. At first glance, has never seen the girl who is being imitated by the porn actress. this might seem to return us to the authentic, intimate viewing of amateur pictures in the previous century. For example, the countless MPEG4 and JPEG files of friends, family and Ex –girlfriend revenge movies present themselves as the cruellest form of memory. Images lovers exchanged over mobile phone networks seem to stay very much ‘in the family’. There intended to constitute highly intimate memories end up symbolizing blackmail, betrayal and is, however, no turning back; the transfer of images between camera, personal hard drive, revenge. Perhaps these are, in the end, closer to traces and testimonials of reality than the and network will come to seem ever more natural and instantaneous in the future. nostalgic fictions that were their original intent. They are images without memory. As Jean Baudrillard writes: ‘Today it’s the real and not the map whose vestiges persist here and The highly personal testimonials produced in the early days of YouTube have given way to the there in the desert’. 11 According to the French philosopher, it is no longer necessary to kind of informational trash that one experiences as a dense, endless, fragmentary hallucina- look for manifestations of the virtual – we should, rather, be attentive for traces of the real. tion. Newsreels, film trailers, porn teasers and other second-hand media are received on the Ex-girlfriend revenge movies seem to be both a violent eruption of the real, and rituals of same platform as educational films, as personal and private content departed for platforms remembrance dedicated to the loss of the real. such as Facebook. Meanwhile, the concomitant of the proliferation of networked media de- vices is a heightened awareness of privacy. Users begin to adjust and limit access to their Outro: Alternatives to Simulation? uploaded photos, and make their content more difficult to find. We become better trained in This analysis has been grounded in the cultural moralism that has reigned over postmodern the mise-en-scène of our media performance and presence on the net, playing our roles for art theory since the 1960s, extending from Guy Debord’s sharp, situationist, and anti-capital- an anonymous and imaginary global public. ist analysis of the ‘society of the spectacle’ and Jean Baudrillard’s theory of the Simulacrum. Both theorists conceived of a society in which the explosion of photographic images leads Ex-girlfriend revenge movies also demonstrate the impossibility of returning to the past. The the signification of images to dominate all other forms of meaning, irrevocably distorting our increasing closure of networks is subverted by its own means, as teenagers remix all the relationship to reality. In an analogous but distinct way, Sontag’s conception of the immorality ingredients of contemporary viewing into a dangerous cocktail. Ex-girlfriend revenge movies of a mystified, simulated relation between a viewer and a victim polarizes reality and its simu- tear apart the most intimate viewing experience one can imagine: a girl undressing in front lation. Debord’s, Baudrillard’s and Sontag’s images of a passive and frustrated viewer is con- of the boy she loves. tinued by contemporary network theory, in which the user is also depicted as subordinated to dominant ideological and commercial powers. For example, Geert Lovink has described the Ex-girlfriend revenge movies represent the fulfilment of the photographic promise of distribu- loneliness and narcosis entailed by social networking platforms. 12 tion. As secret ‘wallet pictures’ of a naked girlfriend are made available to a broader public, they become de-subjectified; the object of a voyeuristic gaze. However, the relations between Is it possible to frame user-generated content differently? In Le Spectateur Émancipé, subject and object are not mystified as they are in the war photography discussed by Sontag. Jacques Rancière opposes the polarized separatism that characterizes theories of contem- In the case of ex-girlfriend revenge movies, the immorality lies precisely in the fact that the porary experience. Instead, he puts forward a concept of an emancipated, active viewer. 13 His viewers of the images do know the girl in some way. When the privileged access that one ‘desimulation’ is based on a critique of contemporary theatre and performance. The French person (the boyfriend) has to the image is extended to a selection of ‘acquaintances’, the philosopher claims that the democratic potential of the physical gathering of spectators and pact of the filming is broken. The exception previously constituted by the amateur situation players is overestimated. In fact, he points out, theatre makers such as Artaud and Brecht is perverted by its own conditions. Just as Sontag claims, the distance between viewing and were developing stage strategies to break the illusive immersion of the theatre viewing experi- filming context does not allow a sentimental relation, so it is immoral to suggest that it does. ence to stimulate this revolutionary dimension of the gathered crowd. And yet, Rancière sees The meaning of this image lies in the altering of a viewing experience from radical familiarity, to a radical, incestuous kind of voyeurism. 11. Jean Baudrillard, Simulacra and Simulation, trans. Sheila Faria Glaser, Ann Arbor: University of Michigan Press, 1995, p. 197. 12. See for example: Geert Lovink, Zero Comments: Blogging and Critical Internet Culture, London: 10. F lorian Schneider, ‘Theses on the Concept of the Digital Simulacrum’, in Anselm Franke (ed.) Routledge, 2007. Animism (Volume 1), Berlin; New York: Sternberg Press, 2010, pp. 54-56. 13. J acques Rancière, Le spectateur émancipé, Paris: La Fabrique éditions, 2008. 68 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe theoRy & aesthetiCs 69 no solution in the techniques of ‘distance’ and ‘suppression of distance’ they used. As an RefeRenCes alternative, Rancière proposes a model in which democratic emancipation is not based on Barthes, Roland. Camera Lucida: Reflections on Photography, trans. Richard Howard, London: the group gathering but on the individual trajectory or narrative of everyday experience. He Vintage, 1993. believes that freedom is located in the very capacity of the viewer to associate and dissociate: Baudrillard, Jean. Simulacra and Simulation, trans. Sheila Faria Glaser, Ann Arbor: University of Michigan Press, 1995. L’emancipation comme réappropriation d’un rapport à soi perdu dans un proces- Lovink, Geert. Zero Comments: Blogging and Critical Internet Culture, London: Routledge, 2007. sus de séparation. (...) C’est dans le pouvoir d’associer et de dissocier que réside Rancière, Jacques. Le spectateur émancipé, Paris: La Fabrique éditions, 2008. l’émancipation du spectateur, c’est -à -dire, l’émancipation de chacun de nous comme Schneider, Florian. ‘Theses on the Concept of the Digital Simulacrum’, in Anselm Franke (ed.) Ani- spectateur. 14 mism (Volume 1), Berlin; New York: Sternberg Press, 2010, pp. 54-56. Sontag, Susan. Regarding the Pain of Others, London: Penguin Books, 2004. _____. On Photography. New York: Farrar, Straus & Giroux, 1977. In addition, Rancière writes that, L’emancipation commence quand on comprend que regarder est aussi une action qui confirme ou transforme cette distribution des positions. Le spectateur aussi agit, comme l’élève ou le savant. Il observe, il sélectionne, il compare, il interprète. C’est ce que signifie le mot d’émancipation: le brouillage de la frontière entre ceux qui agissent et ceux qui regardent, entre individus et membres d’un corps collectif. 15 In the abilities of the spectator to look and show, and in the intermingling of spectators and producers, Rancière sees emancipative power. This point of view deserves further analysis. How much of the ‘spectator’ remains in the paradigm of the ‘user’? What kind of new relations between viewing, acting and thinking are out there? 14. Rancière, Le spectateur émancipé, p.23. Author’s translation: Emancipation, as a reappropriation of the relation with oneself, is lost in a process of separation. (...) The emancipation of the spectator resides in its ability to associate and dissociate, in other words, the emancipation of each of us as a spectator. 15. Rancière, Le spectateur émancipé, p.19. Author’s translation: Emancipation begins when one understands that looking is also an act confirming or transforming the distribution of positions. The spectator also acts as a pupil or as a scholar. He observes, selects, compares and makes interpretations. That’s what the word emancipation means: the interference of the borders between those who act and those who look, and between individuals and members of a collective. 70 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 71 oBjets pRopaGés: the InteRnet VIDeo as thorization of peers. Likewise, as they foster another, distributed regime of creation, internet an auDIoVIsuaL foRmat videos call upon a different regime of visuality. GaBRIeL menottI The Low Resolution Film Festival: A Research Methodology Since not every audiovisual form found on the web shares the same paradigm or codification, one might wonder to what extent it is possible to specify a format based on the characteristics of the medium. This was one of the primary concerns in the conception of the Low Resolu- tion Film Festival, a competitive exhibition of internet videos organized by the Brazilian film The boundaries of an audiovisual language are commonly defined by their platform of society Cine Falcatrua, and held in December 2005. The strategies employed in the Festival inscription, as in film or video. These physical underpinnings prescribe certain operations constituted the original subject of this research. of production that are a product of determinate elementary characteristics of the medium. However, as different audiovisual media converge, the practices they foster become min- Cine Falcatrua (Portuguese for ‘hoax’ or ‘scam’) originated as a film society in the end gled. Even though some traditions of production persist, works made for cinema, home of 2003. The group was formed by undergraduate students of the Federal University of video, television broadcast and even mobile phones can now be manufactured in virtually Espírito Santo, who organized free weekly screenings of audiovisual works – mostly feature the same way, using very similar technologies. As we adopt digital technologies for media films downloaded from the internet, months before they were released in Brazil. In June production, what really seem to set the boundaries of an audiovisual format are the dynam- 2004, this activity led to a cease-and-desist notice issued by Brazilian film distributors, ics of consumption, understood not only as a particular viewing regime, but as the whole along with a lawsuit against the University for copyright infringement. From this point on, structure of diffusion employed – intentionally or not – into bringing the work to the public. even though it did not suspend its ‘pirate’ screenings, Cine Falcatrua began to organ- This could be a crucial signal that, as media theorist Vilém Flusser states, it is the mode of ize events and workshops that explored other aspects of the dispute between traditional distribution that transforms a work into a praxis. 1 Otherwise, we may be engaging with the cinema and new media ecologies. The Low Resolution Film Festival was one of the first more systemic notion of materiality proposed by N. Katherine Hayles: ‘an emergent prop- of these events. erty created through dynamic interactions between physical characteristics and signifying strategies’. 2 Celebrating the ‘almost-anonymity’ of the internet and proposing to ‘map all its original con- tent and blame the guilty ones’, the Festival might seem an unusual tool for the exploration of Nonetheless, platforms of inscription are losing the specificity entailed by a particular me- internet video. By 2005, when the Festival was held, video competitions focusing exclusively dium, and the system of diffusion and consumption is being transformed. Any parameter on online content such as Fluxus 4 and Anima Mundi Web 5 had been in existence for five defined by the platform of inscription can be reformed by the interface of consumption. years. However, contrary to events constituted by web-based exhibitions, the Low Resolution The place where this process can most easily be grasped is the World Wide Web, where Film Festival proposed to screen internet videos in the offline structure of a conventional the most diverse audiovisual pieces are transformed into ‘internet videos’ and subjected to movie theatre. Within this architecture, the internet video would be isolated and framed in the the dynamics of digital social networks. The horizon of these networks, we might say, is the same way of the fictional short, video art or any other standard format, and could therefore Internet phenomenon: ‘the propagation of a digital file or hyperlink from one person to others be defined in relation to them. ... organically, voluntarily, and peer to peer, rather than by compulsion, predetermined path, or completely automated means’. 3 The decision to use this distinctive form of presentation for web video constituted the core strategy of the Low Resolution Film Festival. By placing unauthorized internet content in di- This essay attempts to characterize the internet video as a format in and of itself, typified not rect conflict with the hyper-regulated cinematographic institution, the festival emphasized the by a specific language or subject, but by its particular logic of distribution. This logic operates inherent characteristics of the format of internet video. The few parameters stated in the call as a succession of détournements, which take an audiovisual form out of its original context for works concerned conditions of authorship and awarding, and the only explicit restriction and push it ever forward, re-signifying it progressively. This progression transforms excerpts was against ‘screeners or Hollywood blockbuster CAM recordings’. Besides that, any video of feature films, home videos, and other pieces into autonomous works, based on the au- was valid within the normal limitations of the medium: the material should be found on the web, and should be sent for pre-selection by email. 1. Vilém Flusser, Towards a Philosophy of Photography, trans. Anthony Mathews, London: Reaktion Books, 2000, p. 53. 2. N. Katherine Hayles, My Mother was a Computer, Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 2005, p. 3. 3. The definition is from Wikipedia: ‘Internet Phenomenon’, http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Internet_ 4. FLUXUS, http://www.fluxusonline.com. Phenomenon. 5. A nima Mundi Web, http://www.animamundiweb.com.br. 72 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 73 Among the participating works, there was a clear predominance of video remixes (musical and information is disturbed. The precarious movie image is suggestive of a degree of dis- or not), homemade performances (re-enactments, lipdubs, stunts) and out-of-context ex- order between the layers of the circuit: whether it is the public audience or the video image, cerpts of movies, television shows and adverts – all forms of production favoured by the wide something is out of place. availability of digital equipments for video capture and editing. This material, which might be termed an online genre, suddenly exists in the contemporary media ecology, due to the However, just as it restricts the size of the video file, limiting its resolution and promoting a fact that the network does not pose the same formal, legal and economic resistance of the kind of aesthetics of compression, the web medium also defines the structure in which the established media channels. video is shown. Normally, such a video will be viewed through a video player software window or portable media player viewfinder, small frames in which the low-resolution is not obvious. In general, the festival’s program was unpretentious, and accepting of amateurism. Even Thus, the difference between the web’s and the cinematographic film’s platforms of distribu- though both characteristics prevailed within internet video at that time, they certainly do not tion seems to erase the difference between their respective versions, and the circuit disorder represent the limits of the medium. Certain works prepared with a lot of technical expertise in web video is not clearly perceived. by professional creators could only become public by way of the internet. Good examples are The Mashin’ of the Christ (2004), 6 by the musical group Negativland, and O Destino de By transmitting web videos on the ‘big screen’, the Low Resolution Film Festival aimed pre- Miguel (2005), 7 made by young employees of the Globo Network. The former is a music cisely to accentuate the singular aesthetic qualities of film and web video. Enlarged on the video that uses scenes from Passion movies, while the latter is a short film entirely made ‘silver screen’, the low-resolution image appears as a description of its constitutive process; of scenes of the feature Shakespeare in Love (1998), re-edited and redubbed by famous far from the analogue outline of a figurative scene, it appears as an uneven field of colour Brazilian actors. The expenses involved in distributing such pieces through traditionally blocks – which is precisely how the compression algorithm organizes the video information. regulated channels makes them unfeasible. Besides, there would be a huge unevenness This is similar to looking at a television screen under a magnifying glass; instead of viewing between the volume of real production involved and the juridical marathon to negotiate im- an enlarged image, we receive its analysis – a reticule of coloured points. age licensing. 8 The other way the festival attempted to foreground the physical restrictions that the web Works which use the internet as their means of distribution have to conform to the constraints medium imposes upon video was by organizing its competitive categories according to a of the medium – if not actively, at least as a collateral effect of their online propagation. fictitious ‘kilobytage’. 9 Referring to the size of the video files in kilobytes, this classification Nowadays, when the medium restrictions are looser and even HD (high-definition) videos are is a parody of the traditional métrage, the length of a film in meters. As the métrage enables streamed, it is more difficult to notice such effects. Nevertheless, they were clear in 2005, the duration of the projected movie to be calculated, it is an important means of organizing when normal Brazilian connection bandwidth did not exceed 256kbps. As a national produc- films both within the theatre program and the film projector’s reels. Yet, this volume makes tion, O Destino de Miguel is highly representative: the film version found on the internet is no difference on the internet. A web server is not limited by the number of hours of moving compacted to a very low resolution (160x120 pixels) in order to allow online dissemination. image it can stock up, but by the amount of data it can store and transmit. Thus, the time We might argue, then, that this work is completely different from a supposed DVD variant, or that matters on the web is precisely that of transmission, a direct function of bandwidth a working file, which would have normal NTSC resolution (720x480 pixels). and file size – which in turn, is defined both by the length of the video and its resolution. As bandwidth and the duration of the video are the most determinate parameters in this opera- Each version of the movie causes a particular effect on the audience, and these effects are tion, the best way to optimize web video distribution is precisely by reducing its resolution: a in some measure determined by the restrictions of their platform of distribution. The higher longer video can occupy proportionally less data, and thus be transmitted faster, if its frame resolution of the DVD allows for a more transparent image. Allied to the proficient voice dub- size is smaller. Hence, the data size is the main reason why the restriction of resolution plays bing, O Destino de Miguel possesses a professional aura, so that the film could pass for an a signifying role in the existence of web videos. Therefore, it was defined as the classifying official parody of the original Shakespeare in Love. The low-resolution version, on the other criterion for the participating works. hand, foregrounds the processes that are constitutive of the image. As the pixels and com- pression artefacts become apparent, the normal separation between dynamics of materiality Found Forms, Propagated Information Certainly, in a movie theatre, the internet video is in laboratorial condition. Its usual dynamics of consumption are destabilized; as these dynamics overlap with a video’s mode of produc- 6. ‘The Mashin’ of the Christ’, http://www.negativland.com/mashin. tion, they define a good deal of the work’s significance and value. After Duchamp, it could be 7. ‘O Destino de Miguel’, http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=Tsa5id0Ywb8/. said that internet videos are objets trouvés within the media ocean, re-found each and every 8. In this regard, J.D. Lasica uses the example of Jonathan Caouette’s Tarnation (2003), a documentary whose production cost no more than $220. After paying for the rights of music and video clips so that the film could be commercially released, this figure rocketed to $400,000. See J. D. Lasica, Darknet, New Jersey: John Wiley & Sons, 2005, p. 84. 9. A criterion that is also particular to demoscene competitions. 74 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 75 time they are watched. However, what differentiates a web video within the information land- where it is termed ‘leeching’. However, in general, leeching is precisely what happens: the scape is not the combination of an artist’s gesture with the legitimizing power of the gallery general public does not care about forwarding information for its own sake, not because it environment, but the amazement that a spectator can feel as they watch a video. As viewers is opposed to it, but because it is not committed to. The user simply adopts the stance of a re-transmit the video to others, the substance of the video is transformed into continuous normal spectator. flux – something like an underwater current, indifferent to tidal forces. The agency through which a work passes each time it is forwarded is a positive one: not to By and large, internet videos share the condition of that which Duchamp termed a ready- retain, but to let flow. In this sense, internet videos are distinct from readymades, as every- made object. What defines their autonomy is a procedure of clipping and remediation, which day objects distinguished by the pedestal upon which they are placed, and by a definitive has a lot to do with the potential for convergence of digital information networks. Most videos gesture. While the readymade’s figure stands out against a profoundly altered background, are nothing more than audiovisual fragments extracted from other channels and thrown onto an internet video is the result of the constant reconfiguration of figure and background by the internet. In their natural environment, the video goes unnoticed: Maldita Cachaça 10 is the small, recurrent gestures of a multitude of users. Such images appear less as forms than just another bizarre news report; Vaca Matrix 11 one among many scenes of the feature film as information, and their function is eminently phatic, as they constitute their channel and Kung Pow! Enter the Fist; 12 Nintendo 64 Kid 13 is simply the domestic record of a Christmas maintain their public at the same time. celebration. However, as they are extracted from their original channels and propagated through the unauthorized pathways of the internet, these fragments acquire another nature. A Regime of Dissolved Authority Just as the new framing reshapes the video’s meaning, it also affects the very disposition It seems remarkable that some works are, in an almost accidental way, able to overcome of the audience towards it. The public begins to regard the fragment as an individual form, successive layers of spectatorial inertia in order to become massive phenomena. Such phe- distinct from its usual context. Likewise, the role of the audience is changed, as it becomes nomena do not conform to the dispersed topography of the web. Quite the opposite: they responsible for the dissemination of the images. contest such topography, creating a spatial norm where there are only plateaus, islands, and deteriorated terrains. In other words, the internet video describes the striation of the network Upon finding a video on the internet, the spectator is immediately presented with the possibil- structure. Such a way of occupying the medium is characteristic of computer viruses, which ity of distributing it further, by attaching it to an email, embedding it in a website, or creating spread from one network to another, infecting terminal after terminal. This similarity in be- another link. 14 In a medium that lacks sanctioned channels, and in which every user is a haviour has lead to the characterization of popular internet videos as ‘viral’. However, there is potential editor, this is not a frivolous decision. To propagate an internet video is substantially a very important difference between viruses and viral videos: the mechanism for propagation different from recommending (or not) a blockbuster to your acquaintances. Within the tra- of the virus is part of its nature, embedded in its code. A worm will forward itself automatically ditional cinematographic circuit, personal campaigns do not have much power against the to all the contacts of the contaminated individual’s email, in spite of the recipient’s decision. broadcast or film industry’s multi-million dollar marketing budgets, unless they are mired in The propagation of a video depends on the conscious action of the original recipient, and their own institutions, such as journalism. If one spectator pretends that a movie does not their will to become a transmitter. exist and hides it from his restricted social circle, the movie will still be available for viewing in multiplexes everywhere. In contrast, internet users actually carry out the distribution of a Whatever it may be that motivates this action, it seems far too contingent to be systematized, video. As they forward it, they create a particular circuit within a larger network. As the video especially in a work of this length. Nonetheless, it should be clear that this motivation is not can be better perceived in P2P (peer-to-peer) architectures such as the BitTorrent protocol, inherent within the video piece or the channel, but within the user. The transmission of an the public is not just the final receiver of information, but also constitutes its very carrier. internet video does not occur passively, by osmosis. It depends on the conjoined – albeit Moreover, the viewer wields an active function in this transport structure – just as in a game disarticulated – action of a series of agents. This more generalized procedure characterizes of Chinese whispers. By choosing not to retransmit the video received, a user enfeebles its the internet video as a format. It is not a discursive practice but an assertive one, worthy of circuit of distribution, partially neutralizing the dissemination of the work. This kind of deci- the title of curator, who endorses and revalidates the work. Even so, we could say that it is no sion receives its share of disapproval from the file-sharing communities’ code of conduct, less authorial than the original détournement that created the work in the first place, which it mimics in each stage. As she propagates a video, the user reframes it, accentuating its importance and increasing its presence. It is these successive re-framings that will produce 10. Maldita Cachaça’, http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=Fk8cdaarjNs. the medium’s procedural gestalt. 11. ‘ Vaca Matrix’, http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=39dn9meNqHA. 12. ‘Kung Pow!’: Enter the Fist (dir. Steve Oedekerk, 2002). In this manner, the authorship of an internet video becomes diluted throughout the proc- 13. ‘ Nintendo64 Kid’, http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=pFlcqWQVVuU. ess of its distribution. The more it spreads, creating precedents for remixes, mashups, and 14. It is interesting to notice how the practice of forwarding as a form of curating/indexing is also alternative versions, the more the video becomes a collective, almost folkloric manifestation. becoming crystallized in the increasingly popular platforms for social bookmarking (del.icio.us) and tumblelogging (StumbleUpon, Tumblr). One person might make an animation, send it to their friends, and find it a few days later in 76 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 77 a public discussion forum – its distribution completely beyond the maker’s control. At this medium for audiovisual works, the definition of internet video as a process that describes its stage of the process, the term ‘author’ is a complete misnomer; the original creator suddenly own informational distribution still holds true. The online work and its author seem to be occupies the position of yet another spectator. Within this process, the role of transmitters is increasingly fixed within standard channels of distribution. In a platform such as YouTube, all so important that they assume a vague position of authority over the works. This authority is videos are linked to the user who publishes them, and this user is in turn is linked to other more easily perceived if we refer to the Low Resolution Film Festival in 2005, a time when users, either as contacts or subscribers. Therefore, the main location of these works is in the title of ‘internet video-maker’ was such a dubious one that I have been obliged to place it the user’s page, which can be classified by a distinctive status such as director. The system in quotation marks. The creator of a given video is sometimes inadvertent, but almost never creates logs of activity, and any dispute over originality can be resolved by referring to pa- acknowledged: the only reference to the origin of the work is to the channel through which rameters such as the date of upload or the number of views. The platform, then, results in a it became public – often, popular indexing directories such as BoingBoing, 15 Fark, 16 or the certain degree of stabilization of identities. Brazilian Kibeloco. 17 In this context, the legitimacy of audiovisual material depends on the density of its casting, which is peered rather than broad. Digital networks follow a very pecu- As it accumulates metadata such as tags, comments and replies – in other words, as it liar logic of popular authentication. Even the Google algorithm, which functions as an online becomes intertwined with the platform’s own informational structure – a video is further North, is driven by it: a website gains search relevance the more it is linked by others. localized. This can be extended to diegetic references to the platform’s interface (resulting in meta-linguistic works such Dave dancing at my bday party); 22 as well as to the creative As this mechanism collides with those of established channels, ‘internet celebrities’ appear employment of its video database (for example, in the mashup project ThruYou); 23 its user within the pages of important New York newspapers. A classic collision is that of William community (as in the lonelygirl15 web series); 24 or interactive possibilities (as in the infa- Hung, a rejected contestant of television show American Idol. In 2004, the video of his failed mous Interactive Card Trick). 25 In all of these cases, the video becomes inextricable from its audition appeared online, was viewed by millions of viewers, and made him more famous original location, as any displacement would disrupt the work’s particular significance and than he would have had he won the show. 18 Afterwards, Hung returned triumphantly to behaviour. The experience of lonelygirl15, for example, could never be conveyed without the traditional media, received a recording deal and released three albums. Ironically, his suc- illusion of intimacy created by the closeness to its user-character. In the same way, it would cess was provoked by the same images that the producers of American Idol had employed be pointless to download Interactive Card Trick, a work that resorts to YouTube’s in-video to dishonour him. Extracted from its original context, the video became a mechanism that hyperlink possibilities, and watch it in a conventional media player software – or, worse yet, transformed the failed singer into a celebrity. There is no doubt that the same sequence of in a Film Festival. The only effective way to propagate such videos is as a direct, online link images had become a different thing. to their URL. Therefore, it is effectively impossible to remove the videos from their original context, as they carry their context with them. The Low Resolution Film Festival attempted to apply this dynamics of authentication to the cinematographic milieu. According to the festival’s regulations, it was not necessary to be the Embedding the videos in another webpage does not isolate them from a platform such as author of a video to send it to the competition: it sufficed to take responsibility for it – a term YouTube – quite the contrary. The image is overlaid by the site’s watermark, advertisements, that possesses a significant degree of uncertainty. If more than one person sent the same and links to other videos in its database. It is as if, through the embedded video, the whole video, it instantly became a collective work. What was being judged were not individual crea- of YouTube infiltrates a separate webpage. In this way, the invasive platform reinforces its tions, but different ways of exploring the internet. authority over the works; an implicit form of control that is made explicit by its capacity to ban user accounts, take videos offline and block the access of certain countries. Could it be that Regimes of Active Visuality the fixed characteristics of these platforms constitute the specificity of the medium, a kind of In the years that followed the Low Resolution Film Festival, the increase of bandwidth, the subgenre of internet videos? Or have the platforms as a whole attained the status of concrete creation of lighter video codecs such as Adobe Flash Video, and the growing popularization technical objects, from which the awareness and value of individual pieces of work can no of services such as YouTube, 19 Google Video 20 and Vimeo 21 have begun to crystallize online longer be detached? 26 One could presume that either hypothesis indicates the evolution of audiovisual practices into an almost regular circuit. As the internet is turned into a widespread online media away from an unstable visuality into a new form of spectatorship. However, early modes of engagement with internet video were equally medium specific. The regime of dis- 15. BoingBoing, http://www.boingboing.net. 16. F ark, http://www.fark.com. 22. ‘ Dave dancing at my bday party’, http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=pVm_HJ_ax8o. 17. K ibeloco http://kibeloco.com.br. 23. Thru-you, http://thru-you.com. 18. ‘William Hung She Bangs’, http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=Zcc8dTqflh8. 24. LonelyGirl15, http://www.lg15.com. 19. Y ouTube, http://www.youtube.com. 25. ‘Interactive Card Trick’, http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=tbEei0I3kMQ. 20. Google Video, http://video.google.com. 26. Gilbert Simondon [1958], On the Mode of Existence of Technical Objects, trans. N Mellamphy, 21. V imeo, http://www.vimeo.com. London: University of Western Ontario, 1980. 78 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 79 solved authorities still characterizes another important platform for online media distribution: ter example would be Punho dos Brothers, 37 a drawing of a fist made of ASCII characters, the 4chan image board. 27Based on the Futaba Channel, 28 4chan is a popular Japanese posted in user scrapbooks of the Orkut social network. It comes accompanied by a statement forum for image sharing. It was launched in October 2003, a couple of months before the explicitly ordering the receiver to ‘forward it to five brothers’, or else they ‘would be no brother’ term ‘Web 2.0’ was first published. 29 Currently, 4chan receives at least 1.5 million unique (sic). This is dynamic information, meant not only to be seen, but also propagated. Indeed, visitors a month. 30 In spite of being older than YouTube, it still retains a very loose regime of the process generated a number of variants, such as Hadouken dos Brothers and Luís XVI authority and participation. A striking difference between the sites is that there is no need dos Brothers, with the same purpose. to register to use 4chan, allowing users to post images straight away in any of its 44 boards. The images are published in the order of upload, creating a linear flow of threads that defies From these examples, we can conclude that the particular paradigm foregrounded by the random navigation. In any case, the platform does not hold long-term archives: most of the Low Resolution Film Festival remains a significant reference point for the investigation not boards are limited to eleven pages and, as soon as a thread reaches the bottom, it disappears only of online platforms, but of media in general. The circumstances of early internet video completely. 31 and the 4chan image board show that there is a correspondence between the dissolution of authority and the engagement of the public with the processes that constitute the channel. These restrictions lead to the site’s simplicity of use and very high refresh rate. Having no These situations entail different forms of mediated experience and objects, which should not database or community structure such as profile pages, 4chan exists as a lively arena of be analysed according to the parameters used to judge more stabilized conditions, in which information. In minutes, the content of a board might have changed completely. Some im- the distinction between the channel and the operations of the user are clear. ages persist – but if they are always about to disappear, and the only way to make them endure is by bumping their thread, reposting or recreating them, to what extent should they The peculiarities of internet videos acquire very different meanings if they are approached be considered stable forms? Not surprisingly, a great deal of internet ‘memes’ – such as not as inherent characteristics of ‘viral’ works, but as a result of the dynamic engagement of a LOLcats, 32Rickrolling, 33 and the Advice Dog 34 – originated in 4chan. However, in this natu- public with technique. To illustrate the contemporary relevance of such dynamics, it is worth ral environment, such folklore should not be considered auto-replicating, wide-spreading mentioning that 4chan’s creator Christopher Poole (‘moot’) was voted the most influential information. These images and their variations consist of nothing less than the very activity person of 2009 in TIME magazine’s traditional election, beating the likes of President Obama of the users as they participate in the channel. The lack of a registration requirement creates and Oprah Winfrey. 38 To show how these dynamics disrupt our normal criteria of judgment an additional difference between 4chan and other platforms for online media distribution: and critique, it is essential to point out that the result of TIME’s election was caused by an in 4chan, complete anonymity is the rule, not the exception. Hence, there are no individual exploitation of the voting system by 4chan’s anonymous users. 39 Therefore, when we are images or authors, just the channel; no community, just a public. The authority of 4chan au- aware of the concurrence between media paradigms, the difference between them can be thority is not imposed in the same way as YouTube’s, since it is the very activity of the public illuminated – as the Low Resolution Film Festival attempted to do. When we ignore the con- that secures the channel’s integrity. The anonymous masses produce 4chan as they inhabit currence, we run the risk of being seriously mislead and owned – just as TIME magazine was. it, by viewing, transforming and reposting images. Once again, we are confronted with an essentially phatic form of mediated experience. This regime of visuality becomes clearer in the nature of images such as the Rage comics 35 and Tenso sequences, 36 which are not intended solely to be viewed, but transformed and reposted. Their significance arises from this particular mode of propagation. An even bet- 27. 4 chan, http://www.4chan.org. 28. 2 chan, http://www.2chan.net. 29. Eric Knorr, ‘The Year of Web Services’, CIO, Dec 15 2003: 90. 30. Joshua Benton, ‘How 4chan shows the challenge of monetizing a big online audience’, Nieman Journalism Lab, 17 Feb 2009, http://www.niemanlab.org/2009/02/how-4chan-shows-the- challenge-of-monetizing-a-big-online-audience. 37. ‘Punho dos Brothers”: conheça os mais divertidos, 31. ‘FAQ’, 4chan, http://www.4chan.org/faq. http://virgula.uol.com.br/ver/noticia/lifestyle/2009/03/25/119623-punho-dos-brothers-conheca- 32. ‘ I Can Haz Cheezburger?’, http://encyclopediadramatica.com/Lolcats. os-mais-divertidos. 33. ‘Rickroll’, http://encyclopediadramatica.com/Rickrolling. 38. ‘ The World’s Most Influential Person Is...’, Time Magazine, 27 April, 2009, 34. ‘Advice Dog’, http://encyclopediadramatica.com/Advice_dog. http://www.time.com/time/arts/article/0,8599,1894028,00.html. 35. ‘ RAGE’, http://encyclopediadramatica.com/FU. 39. P aul Lamere, ‘Inside the precision hack’, Music Machinery, 15 April, 2009, 36. [ TENSO], http://sites.levelupgames.com.br/FORUM/RAGNAROK/forums/t/337660.aspx. http://musicmachinery.com/2009/04/15/inside-the-precision-hack. 80 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 81 RefeRenCes fRom a puLL-Down scReen, foLD-up Benton, Joshua. ‘How 4chan shows the challenge of monetizing a big online audience’, Nieman Jour- chaIRs, a Laptop anD a pRojectoR: nalism Lab, 17 Feb, 2009, http://www.niemanlab.org/2009/02/how-4chan-shows-the-challenge-of- the DeVeLopment of cLIp kIno scReenInGs, monetizing-a-big-online-audience. woRkshops anD RoLes In fInLanD Flusser, Vilém. Towards a Philosophy of Photography, trans. Mathew Anderson, London: Reaktion Books, 2000. anDRew GRyf pateRson Hayles, N. Katherine. My Mother was a Computer, Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 2005. Knorr, Eric. ‘The Year of Web Services’, CIO, Dec 15, 2003. Lamere, Paul. ‘Inside the precision hack’, Music Machinery, 15 April, 2009, http://musicmachinery. com/2009/04/15/inside-the-precision-hack. Lasica, J. D. Darknet, New Jersey: John Wiley & Sons, 2005. Simondon, Gilbert [1958]. On the Mode of Existence of Technical Objects, trans. N. Mellamphy, The pull-down screen, the fold-up chairs, the sound-system, laptop, projector and popcorn London: University of Western Ontario, 1980. were all placed in the public underground passageway, in the hope of coaxing people out of ‘The World’s Most Influential Person Is...’,Time Magazine, 27 April, 2009, http://www.time.com/time/ their usual pathways, and encouraging them to sit down and watch video clips they might arts/article/0,8599,1894028,00.html. have never seen before. The billboard proclaiming ‘Jii Hutikka’s Clip Karavaani!’ was the be- ginning of ‘Clip Kino’ in Helsinki: a self-organized social event consisting of screenings held in public spaces. Yet the event did not feature full-length or even short films, but video clips and documentaries found online. Since this event in 2007, described above, I have initiated and facilitated similar events. This activity was and is motivated by my interest in participatory and social processes as an artist- organizer, and as a pedagogue of online and digital media culture. Between 2003 and 2005, I was involved in developing a pioneering online media-sharing platform called Aware, 1 and in designing and coordinating workshops encouraging people to upload images and videos to a shared database. Since 2005, the online environment for video has changed immensely. I have observed the nascent practices I explored earlier developing into mainstream practices – with venture capital, good interface design and technical prowess – to become an aspect of millions of people’s everyday sharing, productive and consumptive media experiences online. As a facilitator who had organized workshops about media uploading and sharing, my interest in online media shifted towards an awareness of what is going on ‘there’: what you, I, they, and we are watching online; opening up discussions related to online media, copy and remix culture; but also in how to create a space for different groups to encounter each other, and reflect upon their practices and interests. Currently, online websites such as Viral Video Chart 2 rank and keep track of videos in countless embedded posts to blogs, while curated video clip features now regularly occur in specialist media magazines and newspapers, for example in the U.K. newspaper The Guardian. 3 In response, artists and media researchers have formed new specialist forums for engaging and researching online video. Within my own field of interest, that of critical me- dia culture, was a mailing list and a travelling conference initiated by the Institute of Network 1. John Evans, Markus Ort, Andrew G. Paterson and Aki-Ville Pöykiö, Aware platform (2003-2005, offline since 2006), Helsinki, http://apaterso.info/projects/aware/aware_schematic.pdf. 2. ‘Viral Video Chart’, Unruly Media (2006-), London, http://viralvideochart.unrulymedia.com/. 3. ‘Joy of Six’ sport-clip series / ‘Clip Joint’ movie-clip series, Guardian Online (2007-), http://www.guardian.co.uk/sport/series/joyofsix, http://www.guardian.co.uk/film/series/clipjoint. 82 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 83 Cultures in Amsterdam. The series of conferences named Video Vortex 4 began in 2007, and approximately 15 to 20 clips representing a very heterogeneous interpretation of the theme shared Clip Kino’s aim of bringing together varied perspectives and practices: artistic, aes- were played at each event. One member of the group lined up the video in the player, another thetic, research-oriented, reflective, exploratory, and experimental. Of course, an essential adjusted the volume to suit. In the second and fourth Clip Karavaani events, a large white part of understanding what is ‘there’ online is watching video clips. In 2007, I imagined Clip cardboard image of a pointing hand diverted passersby into the unusual fold. The audience Kino as a screening event that could bring people together to watch and come to understand for each event was about 10 to 20 people, and there was free popcorn for everybody. online video. The following elaborates the development of Clip Kino, from that roll-down screen onwards, charting many of the different venues, contexts, themes and organizational The Clip Karavaani screenings followed a tradition of grassroots, specialty cinema clubs, forms which have moved Clip Kino towards a shareable set of roles, guidelines and ambitions and video activist screenings 8 using distributable formats such as Super-8, VHS and DVD that may be adopted and adapted by others. formats. The ‘one night only’ nature of the Clip Karavaani events, including the forever-absent vagabond director Jii Hutikka, imparted a circus-like theatricality to the proceedings. The Clip Karavaani, November 2007 group’s consideration of the relationship between context and content meant that Clip Kara- During the ‘Self-organising and Networking’ course I was teaching at the MAA Art School vaani bore similarities to the ‘Social Cinema’ project by Neil Cummings and Marysia Lewand- (Taidekoulu) in Suomenlinna, Helsinki, 5 I gave six students an assignment. Inka Jurvanen, owska, albeit at a smaller conceptual and technical scale. During the London Architectural Emilia Liljeström, Sera Martikainen, Marianne Mäkelin, Mikko Mällinen, and Tessa Siira were Biennale in 2006, the Social Cinema project ‘turned unbuilt spaces into auditoria’, so that asked to create an almost zero-budget ‘clip-kino/micro-cinema’ event to take place in public ‘films about, set in, or commenting on London and its architecture were stunningly projected space, as part of the Valon Voimat (Forces of Light) Festival, held in November 2007. Over upon the city itself’. 9 the 10 years it had been in existence, Valon Voimat had aimed to ‘research the urban space and its use during the darkest period of the year’, promoting site-specific urban interventions, Outdoor screenings, often held as part of festivals or summer seasons, operate outside of the specifically involving ephemeral and static light installations, fire-arts and mixed-media club usual cinema, room or social hall context. A good example of the success of this model has events. 6 That year, the festival was focusing on site-specific works held near the city’s single been Rooftop Films in New York. 10 However, unlike these cinematic social events, the con- underground metro line. tent screened during Clip Karavaani consisted solely of video that could be freely downloaded from popular media sharing platforms. 11 The screening list emerged from the video sharing Within this context, the student group formed a project called Clip Karavaani. They created database, according to a simple keyword search. Videos were returned according to the a fictional master of ceremonies called Jii Hutikka (Finnish for Joe Tipsy), who despite never tags they had been given, and then according to the subjective choices made by individuals turning up for the events, had interest in hobo/nomadic lifestyles, caravanning, elk-hunting within the organizing group. What was shown in public was not determined by ownership or and avant-garde films. The theme chosen for all the Clip Karavaani screening events was by negotiation of access rules, but by a search-engine and a subjective process of selection. ‘road movies’ and, behind the guise of Jii Hutikka, the students crafted an aesthetic, home- brew style of communication for a series of four ‘cinema on the road’ events, that took place Seeders N Leechers R Us, January-March 2008 over a one week period in three different locations: an underground metro passageway, a Clip Kino emerged from a residency application I made in March 2007 to Eyebeam Art and private design studio, and a public media library. 7 Technology Center, New York, 12 in which I proposed to facilitate a space for young people to show and celebrate online content. Fortunately, the application was accepted, and the To yield clips for presentation, the group entered the term ‘road movies’ into video sharing project Seeders N Leechers R Us ran between January-February and May 2008. 13 Eyebeam website databases, such as YouTube and Internet Archive. The screenings were curated by was known for its progressive youth program, such as the Digital Day Camp, After-School the group collectively nominating clips, which they then rated and edited into a screening Atelier and Girl’s Eye View activities for middle and high school students. Since 2000, these order. Some clips were played according to the context of the location, such as the ‘helsinki metro sunset’ clip in the underground passageway; others, such as the ‘kerouac reading on the road’ clip, followed each event. Ripped from their original online viewing platform, 8. ‘How To Do A Video Screening’ (last updated 2004), Video Activist Network, San Francisco, http://www.videoactivism.org/howscreen.html. 9. Neil Cummings and Marysia Lewandowska, Social Cinema project, The London Architectural Biennale (2006), London, 17-24 July, 2006, http://www.chanceprojects.com/node/37. 4. Video Vortex (2007-), http://networkcultures.org/videovortex/. 10. Rooftop Films (1997-), Brooklyn NYC, http://rooftopfilms.com/about_history.html. 5. Andrew G. Paterson, Self-organising and Networking MAA Course, Taidekoulu MAA, Helsinki, 11. V ideovideomaker websites, Wikipedia, October-December, 2007, http://orgcult.wikidot.com/selforg. http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/List_of_video_sharing_websites. 6. Valon Voimat Festival (2007), Helsinki, http://www.valonvoimat.org/archive/HTML_2007/. 12. Andrew G. Paterson, Residency Proposal to Eyebeam Art and Technology Center (2006), New 7. Emilia Liljeström, Sanna Martikainen, Marianna Mäkelin, Mikko Mällinen, & Tessa Siira, ‘Jii York, http://apaterso.info/projects/seedersnleechersrus/eyebeam-proposal.html. Hutikka’s Clip Karavaani’ project, Valon Voimat Festival, Helsinki, 21-28 November, 2007, 13. A ndrew G. Paterson, ‘Seeders N Leechers R Us’ project (2008), Eyebeam, New York, http://apaterso.info/projects/clipkaravaani/. http://apaterso.info/projects/seedersnleechersrus/. 84 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 85 activities had brought together artists, youth, and New York’s dynamic cultural forms, such different hip hop or gang representations of New York. During this event, one of the audi- as remix, fashion and hip-hop. Experts in new media and technology, and in hacker, sustain- ence members asked a student, ‘Did you contact the video clip uploaders about whether ability issues and open source culture in particular, were thrown into this mix. 14 This context, it was ok to screen their video?’ The answer (‘no, we didn’t because...’) managed to satisfy with reference to critical U.S.-based cultural and legal reformism, activism and education in the questioner, and indicated to me that the student had gained a level of online media copyright issues was used to develop the Clip Kino concept. 15 literacy. The Seeders N Leechers R Us project extended the pedagogical aspect that had given rise to Clip Karavaani, in order to tackle the debates surrounding copy, file-sharing, The aim of the Seeders N Leechers project was to explore peer-to-peer (P2P) culture in col- and sampling cultures, and which helped to shape my future and current pedagogical laboration with young people, with the title of the project taken from BitTorrent 16 protocol: the activity. slang terms for key roles in P2P file-sharing refer to the original uploader who provides the original file as a ‘seeder’, and the downloader who ‘leeches’ the content from the network. Kirjasto 10, February-December 2008 The BitTorrent protocol is also a form of encoded cooperation: when you begin download- After the Clip Karavaani project’s choice of venues, Kirjasto 10 public library 17 in the centre ing a file, you are also by default helping others, by making the file more easily available to of Helsinki appealed as a location in which we could hold regular screenings. The library them. My hope was that the workshop, exploring and sharing of video clips between us as a focused on music and media, had installed audiovisual presentation facilities, and promoted group, would give us the roles of being ‘seeders’ and ‘leechers’ of content, shared through itself as a place ‘for consuming, creating and displaying culture’. 18 Having conferred with the face-to-face interaction. Library’s staff, I began a program of screenings in 2008 in the Kirjasto 10 venue entitled Clip Kino Helsinki. 19 Although there was no budget for these events, as a library user, I was al- On arrival in New York, I structured a program of events for the teenage students-in-res- lowed to use the facilities without charge. On all occasions except one, I invited contacts and idence at the centre: Tahj Banks, Glen Moore, and Jayquan Harris from Brooklyn, and colleagues to arrange 40-60 minute-long screening of video clips on a theme of their choice. Wandy Marcano from the Bronx. All had attended the previous year’s Digital Summer Camp Between video clips, the volunteer ‘guest-host’ curators 20 were expected to contextualize the workshops at Eyebeam, were aged between 17 and 19 years old, and were given a student clip, or explain their reason for selecting it. salary for attending Eyebeam twice a week after school. Each week, for a period of two months, we held one ‘leech’ screening in between two ‘seeding’ workshop sessions. These Different themes were presented which were either geographically and socio-culturally spe- sessions sometimes included other artist residents of Eyebeam, and involved discussion of cific (Australia-New Zealand, New York, Eastern Europe); media-specific (music representa- media awareness, local and youth representations in online video, copyright, remix, and tions, subtitled clips); genre-specific (youth, avant-garde art videos, animations, anarchist creative commons approaches to media, P2P networks, and how to organize a screening clips), or based on the topic of online media politics. 21 In many cases, the audience was event. Furthermore, we shared links to videos, which we watched together in physical- determined by the theme or the curator selected. When I couldn’t find someone to make an material space. Over my period of residency, this process of exchange shifted from one that event—almost no one replied to the open call for ‘guest-hosts’—I curated the event myself, was initiated by me to one that was increasingly about the students sharing material with me, in order to keep up with the negotiated calendar of events with the library. and then to others in Eyebeam. I also knew that I was operating in a legal ‘grey-zone’, and was uncertain as to how I should The outcome of the workshop process was a Clip Kino screening event called Teen Mashup, publicize these events. In early-to-mid 2008, it was not clear to me whether it was legal to of which all the content was curated and arranged by the teenagers. As the title of the event suggests, the screening consisted of videos chosen according to the teenage students’ in- terests, and represented homemade music production, shock magicians on television, and 17. Kirjasto/Library 10 (2005-), Helsinki, http://www.lib.hel.fi/kirjasto10. 18. K . K. Salminen Lämsä, & M. Repo, ‘Library 10 and meetingpoin@lasipalatsi: New Kinds of Library Services in Helsinki City Centre’, Scandinavian Public Library Quarterly, No. 4. (2005): 14. Research in Education Project Archive, Eyebeam Art and Technology Center (2000-), New York, 20-23, http://www.splq.info/issues/vol38_4/vol38_4.pdf. http://eyebeam.org/research/education. 19. Andrew G. Paterson, ‘Clip Kino Helsinki’ project (2008-), various locations, Helsinki, http:// 15. F or the background to these issues, see: Fair Use & Copyright Resources, Centre for Social clipkino.info/ or http://apaterso.info/projects/clipkino/. Media (2005-), American University School of Communication, Washington DC, http://www. 20. Clip Kino Helsinki guest-host curators at Kirjasto/Library 10, between February- December, 2008: centerforsocialmedia.org/resources/fair_use/; Lawrence Lessig, Free Culture: The Nature and Projekti Sosiaalikeskus (FI), Joanne Richardson (RO), Wojtek Mejor (PL/FI), ‘Orgcult’ Students at Future of Creativity, London: The Penguin Press, 2005, http://free-culture.cc/; Free Culture: Stadia Polytechnic: Toni Niemisalo, Akseli Virtanen Joni Happonen, Juhana Lindström, Santeri Students for Free Culture (2003-), http://freeculture.org/; Kenneth McLeod, Freedom of Pakkanen and Teemu Lipasti (all FI), Špela Semion (SI/FI), Kari Yli-Annala (FI), Ann Morrison Expression: Resistance & Repression in the Ages of Intellectual Property, Minneapolis: University (NZ/FI), Eyebeam Students-in-Residence: Tahj Banks, Glen Moore, Wandy Marcano, and of Minnesota Press, 2007, http://www.freedomofexpression.us/. Jayquan Harris (remote, all US), Guild of Bonsai Hackers (UN/FI), Sonja Baumer (remote, US), 16. Seeder and Leecher definitions on BitTorrent vocabulary, Wikipedia, Andrew Paterson (SCO/FI). http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/BitTorrent_vocabulary. 21. Clip Kino Helsinki Archive webpage, http://apaterso.info/projects/clipkino/archive.html. 86 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 87 show videos located on a proprietary/privately-owned platform such as YouTube in a public the value of a summary event at the end of each year of activity, reflecting upon the issues of institution. 22 What might be the social norms of behaviour in Finland within this age of au- organizing or presenting online video as public-use. diovisual copyright? 23 For this reason, the Clip Kino Helsinki events were promoted within a trusted network of contacts via email, although the library also promoted the events on their In May, a Clip Kino event was held within the ‘Emerging Media Practices and Environments’ webpage, electronic noticeboards, and information desks. Not surprisingly, attendance was symposium 28 at the University of Art and Design Helsinki. This occasion clearly made the low: sometimes as little as 3 people attended, but occasionally the audience numbered over case for the Clip Kino format as a research tool. As part of their doctoral research, Sanna 20 when the event was advertised especially well. In terms of audience numbers, the most Marttila and Petri Kola curated a screening with the theme ‘Open Video’, using clips to il- successful event at the library (22 people) was Wojtek Mejor’s presentation on the theme lustrate their argument. 29 A common feature of Clip Kino events is what might be called a ‘Animation from the East’. 24 Mejor designed a poster for the theme, and placed them at all ‘broken screening’: rather than a non-stop reel of video, there are gaps for context, introduc- the city’s ‘free’ advertising locations. 25 tion, comments, and opinions from both selector and/or audience to encourage the use of the format as a research and discussion tool. In reflection, Martilla and Kola emphasized the At the end of the project, my thoughts as a facilitator-producer were centred upon promo- value of co-curating a screening to investigate the field of inquiry, and of the dialogue involved tion: firstly, upon how to attract people to attend the events themselves; and secondly, upon in selecting and ordering video in the service of an argument or ‘illustration’ of their research. how to encourage people to attend a library for a screening event. There were many related questions: Who is the person curating the screening? (I hoped this person attracted some A third opportunity arose later in the year, when I was invited to present within an exhibition friends, peer-group). How interesting is the theme? (I hoped the theme could attract a group called Todellisuuden Taju (A Sense of Reality) at Hyvinkää Art Museum. 30 Curated by art- of people interested or curious to attend a screening about it). What were people coming to ist Teemu Mäki, the exhibition contained artworks both within the art museum and situated see? (I didn’t wish to reveal the titles via email or links that people could just look up online around the town centre, and included several public performances. The curatorial theme at home instead of attending). After facilitating 11 Clip Kino events at Kirjasto 10, despite the asked philosophical and political questions about our everyday lives: How do we actually low attendance and publicity, I learned these were all important questions to keep in mind live? What really happens? How ought we live? My self-defined challenge for the invitation when organizing and promoting a Clip Kino event. was to select clips for a Clip Kino event around a theme suggested to me by Mäki’s curatorial statement: ‘Hyvinkää on ‘poikkeuksellisen tavallinen’ suomalainen pikkukaupunki’ (Hyvinkää Emerging Media Platform, January 2009 is an ‘abnormally normal’ Finnish town). I searched online video sharing sites for examples By the end of 2008, I decided not to continue with the events in Kirjasto 10, choosing to focus of the location-specific (Hyvinkää), and concepts of ‘normal’ and ‘abnormal’. At the public upon other projects. I did accept invitations present the Clip Kino format in other contexts, screening event, with laptop, data-projector and speakers, I presented my selection to a which allowed the platform to develop. The first invitation to present a Clip Kino event outside small audience in the art museum: a mix of representations of place, but also of different Helsinki came in March 2009, and I was invited to organize an event in the Tampere suburb subcultures online which ‘spun off’ from what I found, where I searched, what I linked to, of Pispala. As part of the Vilkkari Off Film Festival, a self-organized event by the autonomous and what I imagined before arriving to Hyvinkää for the first time. 31 This event illustrated cultural centre Pispala Contemporary Art Centre, 26 I presented a session reflecting upon the the potential for the Clip Kino format to augment formats such as that of an exhibition with development of Clip Kino, and a ‘best of’, of the videos I had seen. 27 This indicated to me a layer of content that draws upon the broad range of the online media environment. In this case, there were mingled images of art installations, motor-sport, death metal and pop vid- eos, documentaries of everyday life, commercial advertisements, and avant-garde art videos. 22. Since I learned with support and guidance of Heikki Poroila, Information Specialist (Music), HelMet / Vantaa Library, about the legal context in Finland of such screenings. The following Towards the end of 2009, a new venue was found for Clip Kino Helsinki. The Ptarmigan Art statement was made available from December 2008: Andrew G. Paterson, ‘Clip Kino Helsinki Space, in the Vallila region of Helsinki, aims to ‘house ideas that exist outside of the realm of Legal Navigations’, 11.12.2008, http://clipkino.info/extra/clipkino_legal_fi_english_111208.pdf. the traditional and provide a space for adventurous and challenging scenarios. Whether it be 23. V ille Oksanen, Five Essays on Copyright in the Digital Era, Helsinki University of Technology/Turre Legal, Helsinki, 2009. http://www.turre.com/publications/. 24. W ojtek Mejor, ‘Animation from the East’ Clip Kino event, Kirjasto 10, Helsinki, 28 May, 2008, http://clipkino/hosts/wojtek-mejor.html. 28. Emerging Media Practices & Environments Symposium, ARKI Research Group, Lume TV Studio, 25. Wojtek Mejor, ‘Spreading Posters in Helsinki’ Google Map (2008), University of Art and Design Helsinki, 27-29 May, 2009, http://arkisampo.uiah.fi/emerging/. http://maps.google.com/maps/ms?ie=UTF8&hl=en&msa=0&msid=101316200690604386308. 29. P etri Kola and Sanna Marttila, ‘Open Video’ Clip Kino event, Lume TV Studio, Helsinki, 25 May, 00044e0c75ccf18c595a8&t=h&z=13. 2009, http://clipkino.info/hosts/emerging_arki-taik.html. 26. Vilkkari Off Film Festival (2006-), Pispalan Nykytaiteenkeskus (Pispala Contemporary Art Centre), 30. T eemu Mäki (curator), ‘Todellisuuden Taju’ Exhibition, Hyvinkää Art Museum, Hyvinkää, 12 June http://www.hirvikatu10.net | http://www.pispala.fi/vilkkari-off/. – 30 August, 2009, http://www.todellisuudentaju.com/. 27. Andrew G. Paterson, Clip Kino Pispala: Places of Communication, Pispala Nykytaiteenkeskus, 31. Andrew G. Paterson, ‘Clip Kino Hyvinkää: Todellisuuden Taju’ Clip Kino event, Hyvinkää Art Tampere, 7 March, 2009, http://www.clipkino.info/hosts/hirvikatu10.html. Museum, Hyvinkää, 30 July, 2009, http://clipkino.info/hosts/hyvinkaan-taidemuseo.html. 88 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 89 performance, visual art, or interactive work, we hope for Ptarmigan to be a home for challeng- event. She shared an eclectic range of clips, including soldiers dancing like Michael Jackson, ing, innovative projects’. 32 The first Clip Kino event there was guest-hosted by Jon Irigoyen in performance art parodies of Britney Spears, real life journalism on the ‘Dog Girl’, and Judith November 2009, with the theme of ‘Cyberpunk’ 33. Ptarmigan’s random collection of second- Butler’s feminist theory of performativity. Later in the summer, Pispala Contemporary Art hand chairs, the pull-down screen, laptop and borrowed data-projector, reminded me of Jii Centre organized and curated a Clip Kino event with the theme of the Boreal Forest. 37 The Hutikka. It seemed to me that his imaginary wanderings with Clip Karavaani, dreamed up by works selected included clips from popular Hollywood films, activist promotions, machinima, Taidekoulu MAA students two years previously, had come full circle. The exciting little venue and forest workers’ own recordings of their use of the machinery of the forest industry. This of Ptarmigan, half-public and half-private, was a good place to situate Clip Kino for a while. ‘Forest 2.0’ event included a jury who were invited to give comments and feedback upon the Over the years, the different screening venues had only partly suited the format. But the selections, encouraging other comments from the audience. The process of video selection, mix of people who turned up to appreciate Jon’s cyberpunk selection seemed about right: a and one machinima clip in particular, were the inspiration for the organization’s ‘SecondFor- mixture of friends, ‘learned’ enthusiasts, associates of the art space, some regular Clip Kino est’ project, a Second Life model of a Finnish forest, and a virtual setting for discussion about attendees, and some people who were merely curious the use of South-Asian migrant labour for berry picking in Finland. Multicultural Viewing, January 2010 The multicultural agenda, which supports In January 2010, Clip Kino Helsinki received its first sustained funding to produce events, multiple points of view, was manifest in two thanks to a successful application to the Finnish Arts Council’s multicultural arts fund. As workshops held in Helsinki during 2010: grant applicant, I proposed to begin a new program of Clip Kino events in Helsinki over one involved a youth centre and Finnish the year, which would bring together different cultural and sub-cultural backgrounds, and teenagers of mixed backgrounds, another explore different themes and content. Furthermore, as in the case of Ptarmigan, the as- involved asylum-seeking residents of an sociations of the host organization would bring guest-host screening curators with different inner-city refugee reception centre. 38 The agendas to the platform. The first event took place in March 2010, as part of the ‘Herbologies/ first event was a three month workshop Foraging Networks’ program of the Pixelache Festival. 34 At Ptarmigan, Nina Nordström and and screening series called Katalyytti- I curated an event on the subject of ‘foraging’, either as finding wild food in the countryside, clips, which explored online media cul- or dumpster diving in the city. ture, as seen and found in video sharing ‘Forest 2.0’ Clip Kino event by Mikko Lipiäinen and websites, 39 with eight young Finnish men. Markus Petz, with invited jury and audience at Ptarmigan, In April, Ptarmigan’s London-based artists-in-residence Model Court showed scenes from Working with Nuorten Toimintakeskus (the Helsinki, July 2010. films with legal themes, which inspired their practice of documenting and engaging with Happi Youth Activity Centre) as a paid freelance youth worker, my objective was to find real life court representations. 35 Model Court had often presented their work in the format of video cultures that could catalyze new youth media programs and workshops. This proc- clips, and their experience and approach elicited an extended discussion about how court ess followed a similar path to the Seeders N Leechers workshop in New York, which an proceedings are represented in film, with the background awareness that video materials emphasis on mashups, animations, machinima clips, and those related to pirate and copy from real life court cases are rarely accessible to the public. From my perspective, Model culture. Two events resulted from these workshops. A screening event called Hapen Hevi- Court’s event fitted easily into their usual contemporary art practice and communications, jamit (Happi’s Heavy Jam) was initiated by a member of the group, Antti Ranta, who was to the point that the Clip Kino model could be interpreted as a familiar curatorial framework. organizing a live music event at the Centre. 40 In the interludes between young heavy/black metal bands from Helsinki playing on stage, videos were shown in a seating area located In May, Sari Kivinen, an ethnic Finn raised in Australia and currently living in Helsinki, ex- quite literally ‘on the side’ of the event. The second Katalyytti-clips event was a selec- plored the themes of identity construction, imitation and ‘copies of copies’ 36 in her Clip Kino tion of the most popular content found during workshop sessions, and included content 32. A bout Ptarmigan webpage (2009-), Ptarmigan Art Space, Helsinki, http://ptarmigan.fi/. 37. Mikko Lipiäinen and Markus Petz, ‘Forest 2.0’ Clip Kino event, Ptarmigan, Helsinki, 28 July, 33. Jon Irigoyen, ‘Cyberpunk’ Clip Kino event, Ptarmigan, Helsinki, 19 November, 2009, 2010,http://clipkino.info/hosts/forest.html. http://clipkino.info/hosts/jon-irigoyen.html. 38. R efugee Hospitality Club (Punavuori & Kallio) Facebook group, September 2009, http://www. 34. Nina Nordström and Andrew G. Paterson, ‘Foraging!’ Clip Kino event, Ptarmigan, Helsinki, 17 facebook.com/group.php?gid=104158903532. March, 2010, http://www.pixelache.ac/helsinki/herbologies-foraging-networks/clip-kino-foraging/. 39. ‘ Katalyytti-clips’ wikipages, Nuorten Toimintakeskus Happi wikpages, Helsinki, 35. Model Court, ‘Model Court presents’, Clip Kino event, Ptarmigan, Helsinki, 7 April, 2010, http://happi.nettiareena.fi/wiki/index.php/Luokka:Katalyytti-clips. http://clipkino.info/hosts/model-court.html. 40. Petrus Ahola, Atte Collan, Karim Degheidy, Omar Fasolah, Mikko Pänkäläinen, and Antti Ranta, 36. S ari Kivinen, ‘Copies of Copies’ Clip Kino event, Ptarmigan, Helsinki, 19 May, 2010, ‘Katalyytti-clips presents.. Hapen Hevijamit’ Clip Kino event, Nuorten Toimintakeskus Happi, http://clipkino.info/hosts/sari-kivinen.html. Helsinki, 04 July, 2010, http://clipkino.info/hosts/katalyytti-clips1.html. 90 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 91 that is generically popular with teenagers, such as mashups, absurd humour, flash- and and second-hand bookshop Arkadia International. In the future, when Clip Kino events are extreme-loops, and ‘films-in-5-seconds’. With a huge pizza order, and group of teenagers planned it will be possible to offer guest curators a variety of Clip Kino-friendly venues, which visiting from the youth centre in Tallinn, Estonia, the second ‘Katalyytti-clips’ event became have different profiles of attendees, audiences and means of publicity. At the time of writing, a cross-national exchange of appreciation, enthusiasm, and ‘one-up-manship’ as to the there are ‘winter buds’ emerging in Turku (Åbo), current co-European capital of culture in worst music video ever. 41 2011, where a facilitator-producer other than myself aims to take up the project of organizing a new series of events. As the initiator of an organically developed, open and evolving project, The second workshop took place over a one week period, in Helsinki’s Kallio neighbourhood- I have been waiting and hoping for such ‘forking’ to happen. based Refugee Reception centre, which mostly houses men in their twenties while their Finnish asylum or refuge applications are processed. In Helsinki, a loose volunteer network Clip Kino Guidelines for Organizing Screening Events has been facilitated via Facebook. Entitled the ‘Refugee Hospitality Club’, the network offers Over the years I have been organizing and facilitating Clip Kino events in Finland, the roles, occasional activities and goods to residents in the inner-city refugee reception centres. In relationships, responsibilities and expectations have evolved, but have also become clearer October 2010, myself and friend Päivi Raivio, who are both members of the ‘club’ offered a and more solid over time. To summarize some of the points made so far, there are four key Clip Kino workshop and screening event as a social activity to the residents. We spent time constituents involved in the ‘single screening’ event process: the host venue; the organizer or with the residents in the local library, searching for videos for an internal screening event, and facilitator; the guest-host(s) or curator(s) of the screening; and the audience. for a possible public event for other members following posts on the Refugee Hospitality Club and Clip Kino webpages. We attended the library three times a week with 13 male residents The host venue is the physical location of the event. The venue may have the equipment of the centre, from Kurdish Iraq and Iran, Afghanistan, Senegal, Gambia, Somalia, Russia necessary for a screening event, which includes a projector/LCD TV, laptop, adaptors, audio and Kosovo. Some of the men only turned up once, some came for more than one session. speakers or sound system if necessary, and ideally an internet connection. In addition, the Over the sessions, the men shared with us and with each other, a varied selection of vid- host venue’s network for publicity can make a big difference to the outcome of the event, de- eos, including music (traditional, pop, ethnic and global), museum memories and postcard pending on the match between the topic of the screening, and the members of this network. videos from their homelands, funny sketches such as Laurel and Hardy, sleepy-but-fierce ‘babushka’ and fighting stick men. 42 We had the impression that the group enjoyed the time The Clip Kino organizer, producer or facilitator (a role I have largely taken, even when taking spent watching and sharing videos, despite the communication limitations, and we managed other roles as well) arranges and secures the host venue, and ensures that the necessary to share laughs, and appreciation of the choices made. equipment to make a screening event is available. Of course, this is achieved in negotiation and cooperation with the host venue. The organizer also manages general communications Throughout 2010, the Clip Kino project was sustained by the multicultural award. It allowed for Clip Kino publicity, including sharing login details for the website archive and administra- for some remuneration for the time spent by myself and others organizing events, and of- tion or posting rights (for example, to Facebook) where appropriate. The organizer helps the fered a modest fee for ‘guest-host’ curators of Clip Kino events, and a small budget per event guest-host or curator with skills and techniques for presenting, and raises the issue of the to print flyers or posters. It supported the extra time necessary to work with groups of people legal ‘grey-zone’ that exists in relation to common video sharing platforms. Lastly, the organ- who were not part of my own social or professional networks, and facilitated the presentation izer may introduce and contextualize the event itself, take responsibility for gathering the list of their selections from the audiovisual internet to a public of some sort. Social networking of clips to be screened, and make this available on the relevant Clip Kino archive within a sites including Facebook and Twitter have been used to accumulate a list of people who fol- week of the event. low the events. However, although the ubiquitous usage of Facebook for organizing events in Finland is undoubted, its effectiveness for actually bringing people to events is still open The Clip Kino guest-host(s) or curator(s) of an event is responsible for sourcing 40-60 min- to question. utes of video from the internet, based on a theme or subject of their choice. Based on this theme, they then provide text and images to be used in publicity for the event one week in Nevertheless, the continuity of practice has successfully supported the negotiation of new advance of the event taking place. If the event is a workshop, however, this will probably be venue options in Helsinki. Sites presenting various presentation and performance events arranged by the event organizer or facilitator. However, in selecting the clips for screening, emerging later in the year were bar-club Cafe Mascot, which supports left-field live music, the guest-host/curator agrees that if the video clips used are not already online, they will upload them before the event takes place. They should agree not to show materials which are illegal, such as racist images or hardcore pornography, or which violate human or animal 41. Petrus Ahola, Atte Collan, Karim Degheidy, Omar Fasolah, Mikko Pänkäläinen and Antti rights. Thus far, due to the involvement of the facilitator with the guest-host as the event takes Ranta, ‘Katalyytti-clips presents.. Selections, reflections & projections’ Clip Kino event, Nuorten shape, it has not been necessary to make this requirement explicit. On some occasions, Toimintakeskus Happi, Helsinki, 07 July, 2010, http://clipkino.info/hosts/katalyytti-clips2.html. however, it has been useful to give advance warning if materials are unsuitable for underage 42. Refugee Hospitality Club, ‘Kallio Reception Centre Selections’ Clip Kino event, Kallio Library, Helsinki, 13 October, 2010, http://clipkino.info/hosts/refugee-hospitality-club.html. audiences, or if they may shock or disgust audience members. It is worth reminding the 92 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 93 curator to respect the audience, who have turned up without knowing exactly what they are What I believe is common to Clip Kino and Upload Cinema is the motivation to drag the nor- about to see. On the day of the event, the screening list is shared with the organizer so that it malized ‘private’ activity of viewing and sharing downloaded content on one’s own computer can be archived and published after the event has taken place. (at least in Western nations) into public space. Both turn private use of media into public use, and have the potential to increase debate and appreciation about that content. I have Lastly, but no less importantly, is the Clip Kino audience. Because of variable guest-host/ consistently framed the aim and activities undertaken by Clip Kino as pedagogical, in terms curator(s) of the screening event, the audience will be different at each event. Sometimes, of ‘media environment-awareness’ or ‘direct action media literacy’. I continue to use this ap- the audience will vary greatly, according to the theme, the guest-curator, the venue, the per- proach as a format in my own teaching, and highlight this as a link at the top of the project’s son’s social network, the level of publicity for the event, and even the season and the weather. front webpage. 47 In my opinion, the face-to-face meetings of people plus screen have been It is vital to keep in mind that the audience is attending the event for reasons that may in part an important and valuable feature of Clip Kino events. Despite minimal funding and low be unknown, but usually also on the basis of trust, interest, enthusiasm, friendship, good will, participation or attendance to events, it is the exploration of this factor of presence that has open-mindedness, and curiosity. motivated to continue over the years; both in relation to online media, and in the encounter with another person’s choices in relation to media. Private Viewing in Public: the Example of Upload Cinema Upload Cinema 43 is a project that is similar to Clip Kino in some ways, but different enough On the internet, anonymous exchange and communications have pushed us in many fan- to offer a useful counterpoint to the narrative just outlined. I believe Upload Cinema indicates tastic trans-local directions, and released hyper-fast torrents of value, opinion and support not only the popularity and potential success of online videos presented offline, but also through chat and discussion forums. Sadly, however, many abusive ‘reply-comments’ have clarifies the value of Clip Kino, despite the small scale it has maintained over the last couple also been shared. In contrast, the Clip Kino project aims to provide a social event platform for of years. Upload Cinema is a social cinema platform which began in Amsterdam in October respectful sharing through on-site corporeal presence. 2008, and has now spread to other locations, in The Netherlands especially. Initially, the project was developed by Barbara De Wijn and Dagan Cohen as a future use for the oldest To conclude, Clip Kino constitutes a small, temporary offline space for encounters around film theatre in The Netherlands, De Uitkijk. The project is sponsored by the advertising agen- what others (you, we) watch online. For myself, the experience of organizing or facilitating cy Lowe/Draftfcb, and takes the bold step of using a real cinema as a venue. De Wijn and Co- Clip Kino events for the last three years have kept me interested and ‘contemporary’ in rela- hen created a members-only viewing club, ‘Upload Cinema’, for screenings of online content, tion to online media and its issues, as well as allowing me the pleasure of getting to know from YouTube in particular. ‘Upload Cinema’ has been a candidate for many different web many different individuals and groups in an offline context. and creative industry competitions. As noted in the ‘background’ webpage for their Webby Awards entry, their case is based on the shifting media environment and regeneration of ‘old’ Clip Kino: forms: in The Netherlands, small cinemas have shrinking audiences, even while interest in http://clipkino.info film and film-making is increasing, not only in terms of distribution, but in terms of produc- tion and consumption. 44 There is a new theme each month at Upload Cinema, to which ‘the audience can submit films; an editorial team selects the best and compiles a ninety minutes program, which is screened at movie theatres and special venues’. 45 Thus, the organizers benefit from selections made by an extended online audience. In other words, they use that which social media journalist Jeff Howe has termed ‘crowdsourcing’: ‘the act of taking a job traditionally performed by a designated agent (usually an employee) and outsourcing it to an undefined, generally large group of people in the form of an open call’. 46 They are connecting their member’s actions – browsing and watching clips online – with visiting their own website, and pasting in nominations for videos. 43. Upload Cinema (2008-), Amsterdam, Den Haag, Rotterdam, http://www.uploadcinema.nl. 44. Upload Cinema Webby Awards entry, background text (2009), http://www.entry-site.nl/ webbyawards/uploadcinema/background.html. 45. About webpage, Upload Cinema (2008-), http://www.uploadcinema.net/about.php. 46. Jeff Howe, Crowdsourcing: Why the Power of the crowd is Driving the Future of Business, New York: Crown Business, 2008. Original blog with similar name since 2006: http://crowdsourcing. 47. A ndrew G. Paterson, Clip Kino Pegagogical Statement webpage (2008), Helsinki, http://clipkino. typepad.com/. info/pedagogical-statement.html. 94 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 95 RefeRenCes Between Iphone anD youtuBe: Fair Use & Copyright Resources, Centre for Social Media (2005-), American University School of moVIes on the moVe? Communication, Washington DC, http://www.centerforsocialmedia.org/resources/fair_use/. Howe, Jeff. Crowdsourcing: Why the Power of the crowd is Driving the Future of Business, New York: jan sImons Crown Business, 2008. Lessig, Lawrence. Free Culture: The Nature and Future of Creativity, London: The Penguin Press, 2005, http://free-culture.cc/. McLeod, Kenneth. Freedom of Expression: Resistance & Repression in the Ages of Intellectual Prop- Digital Movies: On- and Offline Venues erty, Minneapolis: University of Minnesota Press, 2007, http://www.freedomofexpression.us/. Through a fortunate coincidence – or was it really a coincidence? – the advent of 3G cell Paterson, Andrew G. Clip Kino Helsinki Legal Navigations. Self-published, 2008, http://clipkino.info/ phones equipped with photo and video cameras occurred almost simultaneously with the rise extra/clipkino_legal_fi_english_111208.pdf. of YouTube, one of the icons of Web 2.0. In 2004, two thirds of all mobile phones shipped Oksanen, Ville. Five Essays on Copyright in the Digital Era. Helsinki: Helsinki University of Technology/ worldwide were camera phones; YouTube was officially launched in the U.S. in November Turre Legal, 2009. http://www.turre.com/publications/. 2005, with local versions launched in Europe, Latin America and Asia in 2007. These two Salminen Lämsä, K. K. and M. Repo. ‘Library 10 and meetingpoin@lasipalatsi: New Kinds of Library developments could not but meet, as the camera phone made every owner a potential film- Services in Helsinki City Centre’, Scandinavian Public Library Quarterly, 4 (2005): 20-23, http://www.splq.info/issues/vol38_4/vol38_4.pdf. maker, and YouTube provided a free platform to publish, distribute and exhibit self-made movies. The rest, one is tempted to say, is history. But is it? On the one hand it is: in 2006 YouTube announced that more than 65,000 videos were up- loaded every day, and that it received about 100 million views per day. In 2010, YouTube is the largest online video provider in the U.S., with a market share of 43% and more than two billion views per day. It is the third most visited website on the internet behind Google and Facebook, with 70% of its traffic coming from outside the U.S. and hundreds of millions of videos viewed on mobile devices every month. 1 Of course, not all content on YouTube is produced by ama- teur film-makers and quite a lot comes from professional and commercial film companies and television broadcasters, much of which is copyrighted material uploaded ‘illegally’. Although figures are hard to come by, DIY movies, many of which are made with cameras built-in to mobile devices or computers, seem to constitute the bulk of YouTube’s supply. On the other hand, the mobile phone movie has certainly found its way to other venues, such as a fast-growing festival circuit dedicated to cell phone movies, variously termed ‘pocket movies’, ‘cellular movies’, ‘pocket cinema’, ‘Ciné Pocket’, ‘Movil Film’, ‘Mobi Fest’, ‘Shorts’, to name a few. Just a few years after what was allegedly the first mobile phone movie festival, in Atlanta in 2004, almost every major city around the globe had its own mobile phone movie festival. In addition, many established film festivals, including the Sundance Film Festival, the San Francisco International Film Festival, the Tribeca Film Festival, the Edinburgh In- ternational Film Festival, the Rotterdam International Film Festival and even the Festival de Cannes opened sections dedicated to this ‘new kid on the block’. 2 1. ‘conScore Releases May 2010 U.S. Online Video Rankings’, http://www.conscore.com/Press_ Events/2010/6/comScore_Releases_May_2010_U.S._Online_Video-Rankings; Mark Metekohy, ‘YouTube Statistics’, on Viralblog, May 17th, 2010, http://www.viralblog.com/research/youtube-statistics; and, http://website-monitoring.com/blog/2010/05/17/youtube-facts-and-figures-history-statistics/. 2. Daniel Terdiman. ‘A Celebration of Cell-Phone Film’, Wired 30 August, 2004, http://www.wired.com/culture/lifestyle/news/2004/08/64698; see also http://mobifest.net/festivals/ or http://mobilizedtv.com/mobile-film-festivals. 96 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 97 Predictably, both local and international versions of these events were launched, spon- burgeoning of a mobile phone film festival can be seen as part of an adaptive strategy in sored and promoted by cell phone manufacturers such as Nokia, the uncontested market which the ‘institution of cinema’ had specialized over more than a century: preservation leader in the 3G cell phone era prior to smartphones, with Samsung, Vodafone and others through innovation. A response to YouTube, indeed. If this is true, one might ask whether desperately seeking content for their hardware and services. Accordingly, these festivals the gradual dissolution of the mobile phone film festival circuit in the last couple of years is opened their entries up to actual and potential DIY film-makers among the owners of 3G a symptom of the success of this strategy, or of its failure. Was the mobile film festival cir- cell phones, as well as to ‘directors, other professionals, students and spectators’, in order cuit the avant-garde of a 21st century film culture, or the rearguard of a new digital media for them ‘to anticipate, explore and question this new field of creation’, as the first edition of culture? Or, to rephrase the question in yet another way, do mobile phone films belong to the Paris Festival Pocket Films in 2005 put it. 3 This formula is revealing in and of itself: the cinematic or to digital culture? mobile film was an invention ‘before the fact’. These terms and the events created around them did not refer to a newly emerging phenomenon that needed to be identified and Pocket Films: Movies at your Fingertips labeled, but functioned to fill a void created by what was at that point, a new technology. In a modernist way of thinking, champions of mobile phone films expected that new tech- nologies would bring new modes of film-making and new, cinematic forms, formats, styles This rapidly emerging – and now gradually dissolving – festival circuit fulfilled two purposes, and stories. Mobile phone film festivals would provide professional, as well as prospective other than providing content for mobile phone manufacturers and telecom providers. First and wannabe film-makers, with a playground upon which to experiment with new tools, of all, it prevented the relatively conservative film culture from missing out on possible fu- and to explore their affordances as well as their limitations. Since the mobile phone film ture developments opened by new technologies, some ten years after the changes brought was not an already existing type or genre of film, but rather an idea conjured up by the ar- about in independent film-making by the advent of relatively cheap and portable digital rival and rapid distribution of the 3G cell phone, the first question to answer was: what is a video cameras. In other words, it was hoped that the mobile phone camera could meet its mobile phone film? The answer turned out to be far from simple. own Lars von Trier. Indeed, in 2005 the South African film-maker Aryan Kaganof produced SMS Sugar Man, allegedly the first feature length movie entirely shot with mobile phone A glance at the ‘Call for Entries’ of some of the major mobile phone movie festivals reveals cameras. 4 Second, by opening cinema screens to entries by anyone who felt the desire the confusion around the definition of mobile phone movies. The German Mobile Film to make their mobile phone movies public, the mobile phone festival circuit might allow Festival and the French Festival Pocket Film state that ‘pocket films’ or ‘mobile films’ are the relatively closed milieu of film-makers and producers to follow the flow of an upcoming movies shot with mobile phone cameras (‘films tournés avec téléphone mobile’ and ‘Filme participatory culture, and create something like a ‘Dogma 2.0’. 5 ... die mit einem Mobiltelefon gedreht wurden’), whereas the Toronto festival Mobifest de- fines mobile movies as ‘made-for-mobile movies’. 7 Films made with mobile phone cameras However, with these two functions came a double agenda. The rise of the mobile phone are not necessarily made ‘for’ display on a mobile phone, even if this ‘new tool’ is, as the film festival circuit can also be considered an attempt to incorporate new technologies and Paris Pocket Film Festival states in the announcement of its first edition in 2005, the first a select company of talented and innovative film-makers into the already existing structures device ‘that is camera, projector, and broadcast screen (écran à diffusion) at the same and operations of cinema. The major strategic function of the mobile phone film festival time’. 8 The same festival nevertheless presents a section ‘Films pour Grand écran’ (Films circuit may very well have been to adapt the ‘cinematographic field’ to new technologies, for the Big Screen’ and ‘Films pour écran de poche’ (Films for the Pocket Screen), while players, and practices, and at the same time to seal it off against the ‘cult of the amateur’ the Canadian Mobifest has a category of ‘Animation’ next to a category ‘Shot on Mobile’. that lead to the prominence of YouTube. 6 From a systems theoretical point of view, the These categorizations suggest that not all mobile phone movies are shot on mobile phones, and that not all mobile phone films are shot for the ‘pocket screen’ of the mobile phone. As French film theorist Roger Odin writes in an essay about the ‘pocket film spectator’, films 3. ‘Cinema at your fingertips’, Festival Pocket Films Paris, 2005 edition, shot with mobile phones are cinematic films, (‘Les films tournés avec téléphone mobile http://www.festivalpocketfilms.fr/english/archives-98/article/2005-edition. sont des films de cinéma’), since they were conceived for the big screen. 9 4. Other titles also lay claim to the honorary title of ‘first feature length mobile phone movie’, such as Dutch film-maker Cyrus Frisch’s movie Why Didn’t Anybody Tell Me It Would Become This Bad in Afghanistan (2007). The first major movie to be distributed exclusively through mobile phones is (claimed to be) Rage, directed by Sally Potter and released in 2009. The confusion is probably due to the temporal gap between the shooting of SMS Sugar Man in December 2005, and its release in 2008. 7. M obile Film Festival: http://de.mobilefilmfestival.com/teilnahmebedingungen.php; Festival Pocket 5. There is indeed a short-lived Dogma Mobile International Film Festival. On Dogma and Lars Film: www.festivalpocketfilms.fr/rubrique.php3?id_rubrique=4&var_mode=recalcul; Mobifest: von Trier, see Jan Simons, Playing The Waves: Lars von Trier’s Game Cinema, Amsterdam: http://www.mobifest.net/home/. Amsterdam University Press, 2007. 8. http://www.festivalpocketfilms.fr/archives/edition-2005/. 6. Andrew Keen, The Cult of the Amateur: How Today’s Internet Is Killing Our Culture. New York: 9. Roger Odin, ‘Le “Pocket Film Spectateur”’, Festival Pocket Films, 2009, http://www. Doubleday, 2007. festivalpocketfilms.fr/communaute-42/reflexions/article/le-pocket-film-spectateur-par. 98 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 99 To complicate matters, although it is possible to shoot, show and distribute movies with offered in a special iPhone or iPad format. Most of these films, television shows and music a mobile phone – mobile phones allow users to upload movies and photos directly to videos were produced for a theatrical release or for screening on a television set or home YouTube, Flickr, or social networking sites like Facebook and MySpace – between shoot- cinema technology with large, high-resolution screens, which will soon be able to compete ing and showing, there is usually a stage of post-production and editing, for which mobile with the quality of a cinema screen. As with the pocket book, for reasons that are partly phones are not very well equipped. The German Mobifest allows mobile movies to be technological but mainly pragmatic, these audiovisual objects, though in principle playable edited ‘either on or outside of the mobile phone’ (‘Die Filme können innerhalb oder außer- on mobile devices, do not qualify as pocket movies. halb der Telephone geschnitten werden’) and the Brussels festival Ciné Pocket strongly recommends its prospective submitters edit their movies, which must be shot using a Although mobile devices are usually marketed and considered high-tech appliances, their mobile phone, on their computers (‘Mais il reste souhaitable de copier et de monter le film image quality still lags behind the quality of cinema, television, and even computer screens. sur ton pc’). 10 Editing, however, means a lot more than the selection and arrangement of Not only is the size of mobile phone screens much smaller, they have a relatively low resolu- shots, and usually comprises the addition of sound, titles, color adjustments, filters, virtual tion, slow frame rate, and a limited color range compared to LCD and plasma TV screens, camera movements, split screens, double exposures, and – since the computer is agnostic or the ‘silver screen’ of the cinema. Moreover, mobile phones and other portable devices are about the origins of the data it processes – the creation of special effects and computer usually used to watch movies ‘on the go’, in circumstances quite similar to those in which generated images. In this case, what does the phrase ‘made’ or ‘shot with a mobile phone people read pocket books: when waiting for a plane, a train, or a bus, during a journey, in the camera’ actually mean? Many of the entries of each of the mobile phone festivals are, as holidays, at a beach. That is, they are viewed mostly in situations that are not very suitable one of the aforementioned categories of the Toronto Mobifest made clear, animations that for total immersion into the fictional world of a feature film, or the extended argument of a were entirely created on computers, not shot using a camera at all. documentary movie, because they are filled with competing sensations, such as distracting events, other people, tasks and duties that require attention, and poor lighting conditions, If production and post-production techniques do not provide a very strong basis for distin- such as reflecting sun beams. guishing mobile phone movies from other types of film, perhaps the mobile phone movie should describe ‘movies made for the mobile phone’. The term ‘pocket cinema’ seems to It is tempting to transform these technological and pragmatic limitations into medium spe- point in this direction, evoking the portability, mobility, and easy digestibility of the ‘pocket cific aesthetics, which would specify the distinctive features of the mobile phone movie. book’, which we currently refer to as the paperback. Of course, any book can be published In the early stages of the mobile phone movie, typically modernist attempts were made to in hard cover as well as in pocket book format, and many classical texts have been published identify these qualities. For example, Australian new media consultant and producer Juliana as cheap pocket book editions for a wide popular readership. But since the pocket book was Pierce christened the mobile phone display ‘the fourth screen’, suggesting that movies had designed to be carried around and read in circumstances that did not particularly favour a found yet another window next to the cinema screen, the television and video screen, and long and concentrated read, such as commuting, pocket books encouraged the emergence the computer screen. Pierce also observed that ‘Wide shots, pans, surround sound, mood of easily digestible, highly formulaic and forgettable literary genres such as the detective lighting and anything with too much detail is almost no go for mobile movies’. 11 According novel, the thriller, and adventure, horror and romantic love stories. Although none of these to German critic Reinhard W. Wolf, the small size of the mobile phone display makes the genres is exclusively published in paperback format, these genres represent the prototypical use of close-ups almost mandatory, while the low frame rate is prohibitive for fast editing content of the paperback, as is evident in any airport bookshop. The prominence of these and fast movements of both characters and camera, and the limited colour range imposes genres in the pocket book department, however, has more to do with pragmatic considera- the requirement of working with large and brightly colored surfaces. 12 Moreover, since the tions of literature most suitable for reading in particular circumstances than with the materials sound capacities of mobile phones are also modest compared to the high fidelity equipment and technologies used for their production. of today’s movie theatres and home cinemas, and given the often noisy environments in which mobile phones movies are viewed, pocket movies should not rely on dialogue or intri- Could the same be said about ‘pocket movies’? In principle, any movie could be displayed cate sound effects either. Given the circumstances in which mobile phone movies are most on a mobile phone screen, or any other portable device. Apple’s (American) iTunes Store, for likely to be watched, and the technological constraints such as the limited storage capacity instance, offers movies, television shows, music videos and computer games for download- of most mobile devices and bandwidth of wireless internet connections (if available at all), it ing and playback on iPhones, iPods and iPads, implicitly demonstrating that ‘mobile movies’ is not surprising that early critics recommended mobile phone movies be short and have a are no longer and actually never have been restricted to cell phones, although only the latter combine the functions of recording and screening movies. Nevertheless, nobody has ever called these downloadable objects ‘mobile movies’ or ‘pocket movies’, even when they are 11. J uliana Pierce, ‘Feature: The Fourth Screen’, Off The Air: Screenrights’ Newsletter, August 2005, http://www.screen.org/pdfs/about/offtheair/2005/ota0805.pdf. 12. Reinhard W. Wolf, ‘Micromovies – Kurzfilme für die Westentasche, Teil 1’, Shortfilm.de Das 10. http://cinepocket.lescorsaires.be/spip.php?article40. Kurzfilmmagazin, January 2, 2006, http://www.shortfilm.de/index.php?id=414&L=0&0=. 100 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 101 simple storyline with a clear, preferably surprising closure. As Australian film-maker Joe Miale television. 18 Film theorist Roger Odin highlights the remediating function of mobile phone pointed out, micro-movies should be ‘caricature based’ rather than character based. 13 films in general, and mobile phone film festivals in particular. For Odin, the mobile phone film remediates the loss of the indexical bound of the cinematic image to the real by heighten- According to these recommendations, Isabella Rossellini’s mini-series Green Porno 14 fits the ing the viewer’s awareness of the materials, techniques and procedures used in digital film bill for the perfect pocket movie. The two series consist of eight very short movies, each of production. In his view, the mobile phone movie is to contemporary mainstream cinema what them featuring Rossellini in the male part of a couple of insects, and explaining and execut- avant-garde and experimental film was to the mainstream cinema of old. 19 The mobile phone ing the sexual act of that species. Rossellini wears simple, brightly coloured costumes, and movie’s main function is to remind the spectators of contemporary digital cinema of Godard’s performs in similarly simple and brightly coloured sets, so that the images are reminiscent famous dictum from the sixties of the previous century: ‘Ce n’est pas une image juste; c’est of children’s drawings, and appear to be a mixture of live action and animation. Each film juste une image’. ends with the fulfillment of the sexual act and its sometimes lethal consequences – a clear, sometimes funny, but always surprising form of closure. With this playful dialectics between Although these attempts to formulate a mobile phone movie aesthetics tend to specify it in childish representation and adult content, ecological education and pornographic curiosity, terms of the limitations of these movies’ intended window of display, or its hoped for effect on Green Porno allegorizes the tension between the new but technologically immature ‘fourth the spectator rather than in terms of the mode of production, they cover a small portion of the screen’ of mobile devices and its adult counterparts, cinema and television. whole spectrum of actual practices and virtual possibilities involved. On the one hand, these approaches fall victim to the superficial similarities between recording or watching movies Although produced with the ‘fourth screen’ of mobile devices in mind, the Green Porno on mobile devices and domestic or cinema screens. On the other hand, they cleave to the series exemplifies the ambiguous status of the pocket movie. It was not shot with mobile modernist idea that media technologies generate their own specific aesthetic properties and phone cameras, but in a professional film studio with professional film equipment. Neither requirements. When approached from the perspective of digital media, mobile phone movies was it made for exclusive distribution for mobile devices. The series garnered its fame in the start to look quite different. independent film festival circuit, and is available only in streaming format from the Sundance Film Festival website and, as is to be expected today, on YouTube. 15 Rossellini herself is the Moving Images: Images on the Move. offspring of the Italian neo-realist film-maker Roberto Rossellini and the Swedish movie ac- After Pierce’s formulation of the fourth screen, critic Alex Munt has categorized the mobile tress Ingrid Bergmann, and became famous through her roles in films such as David Lynch’s phone display together with the computer screen as ‘S’ (for ‘small’) next to the ‘M’ (medium- Blue Velvet and Wild At Heart and Dutch film-maker Jeroen Krabbé’s Left Luggage. Thus, sized) wide-screen television, the L (large) 2D theatrical cinema screen, and the XL (extra her Green Porno series was treated as an offspring of the cinema-as-we-knew-it rather than large) sized 3D cinema screens, as in Imax cinemas. 20 Yet another critic, Ted Brown, has the harbinger of something new, 16 as are most micro-movies or pocket films. Or, to remain in classified the mobile phone display as a ‘“third” digital screen’ that comes after the first, Green Porno’s own terms, as a reproductive rather than procreative form. analogue, cinema screen, and the second, electronic, television screen. 21 Whether these forms of categorization take size or technology as the criterion for classification, they func- Critics and producers such as Pierce, Wolf, and Miale might take the constraints of the tion first of all to demonstrate how futile, volatile and transient any divisions have become mobile phone as the basis of a distinctive mobile phone movie aesthetics, yet this aesthetics since screens began to leave their dedicated niches in cinema theatres and living rooms. At is itself a relatively small subset of the stylistic and formal repertoire derived from the vener- this point, screens have become so ubiquitous that any categorization that takes the cinema able traditions of classical Hollywood and European art cinema. 17 The mobile phone movie screen as its starting point looks like a hopelessly old-fashioned attempt to preserve the cin- merely ‘remediates’ the familiar forms and formats of preexisting ‘old media’ of cinema and ema’s privileged status. It is the omissions from these categorizations that are more telling: ‘urban screens’, the huge dynamic billboards that increasingly adorn the streets, squares, and public spaces in urban 13. Quoted in Terdiman, ‘A Celebration of Cell-Phone Film’. For similar ‘basics’ of mobile phone film- environments; ‘skinned walls’, or buildings with video walls; wide-screen televisions in public making see Neil Curry, ‘Film-maker Shares Secrets of Great Mobile Phone Movies’, CNN, March 20, 2009, http://articles.cnnn.com/2009-03-20/entertainment/mobilemovies.toptips_1_mobile- phone-video-quality-regular-camera?-s=PM:SHOWBIZ. 14. Green Porno, Isabella Rossellini, Jody Shapiro and Rick Gilbert (Producers), U.S., 2008, 18. The term ‘remediation’ is taken from, Jay David Bolter and Richard Grusin, Remediation: downloadable at: http://www.sundancechannel.com/greenporno/. Understanding New Media, Cambridge, Mass.: The MIT Press, 1999. 15. h ttp://www.youtube.com/watch?v=mkm3CCX1_xk. 19. O din, ‘Le “Pocket Film Spectateur”’. 16. Blue Velvet (dir. David Lynch, 1986); Wild At Heart (dir. David Lynch, 1990); Left Luggage (dir. 20. Alex Munt, ‘S, M, X, XL: The Question of Scale in Screen Media’, Flowtv 6.8, Jeroen Krabbé, 1998). http://flowtv.org/?p=809#. 17. For a more recent version of this argument, see Benoît Labourdette, Tournez Un Film Avec Votre 21. Tod Brown, ‘Isabella Rossellini Does Bug Porn’, Twitch, January 1, 2008, http://twitchfilm.net/ Téléphone Portable,Editions Dixit, 2008. site/view/isabella-rossellini-does-bug-porn/. 102 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 103 spaces or public transport to transmit information, advertisements or entertainment; video The multitude of screens that populate the world are no longer exclusively dedicated to walls used at rock concerts or sports events; the small screens of navigation systems; DVD movies, as they were when located in cinema theatres. Mobile phone and computer screens players and game consoles in cars and boats to keep the kids quiet, or the guests busy. Times are mostly used for reading or typing SMS messages or emails, taking written or photograph- Square and Piccadilly Circus are no longer the only places ‘augmented’ with audiovisual in- ic notes, browsing the internet, playing games, making calculations, consulting maps, or formation. In the rare cases in which there are no screens in one’s immediate environment, searching for addresses or telephone numbers. Now, both mega screens and the micro-sized one still has a mobile phone, iPod or iPad to turn to. screens of mobile phones and portable devices are – as are those of desktop and laptop com- puters – used to display text messages, graphics, animations, photographs, maps, drawings, The reason for the selective blindness of the aforementioned categorizations is quite obvious: news reports, advertisements, entertaining distractions, traffic information, crowd control in- their primary criterion for selection was not size or technology, but content. The categories structions at huge public events, live reports of sports matches or political rallies – along with only cover screens that are used – or are described as being used – for the screening of mov- art works, ‘pocket movies’, and other DIY products made and uploaded by whoever feels like ies, whether these are feature films or micro-movies. This categorization fails to do justice the sharing their talents with a larger audience. 22 contemporary variety of screens and content, and demonstrates how narrow one’s view may become if new media are approached from the perspective of already existing media – media Of course, this ecumenical cohabitation of diverse content has been made possible by the about to be ‘remediated’. We have seen the proliferation of screens in homes, offices, shop- digitization of most media. Because all these media share the same digital language of ones ping malls, stadiums, museums, bars, waiting rooms, airports, train stations, coaches, planes and zeros, they do not only co-exist, but begin entering into all sorts of new configurations, and trains. Screens come in all sizes and forms, and in private as well as public spaces. As happily mixing and exchanging properties, procedures, forms and formats that used to be the moving image itself leaves its dedicated habitats – the cinemas and living rooms – these considered specific particular media. Digital technologies have turned computers into that become display windows, among many others. With this migration, the moving image acquires which Lev Manovich has called a ‘meta-medium’ that not only combines ‘cinematography, new forms and functions. Feature films and television shows become special cases of the ubiq- animation, computer animation, special effects, graphic design, and typography’, but also uitous and multi-functional moving image that has become the icon of today’s ‘visual culture’. make formerly ‘autonomous’ media exchange and remix ‘fundamental techniques, working methods, and ways of representation and expression’. 23 Since the arrival of the Graphical Ironically, outside the cinema or the living room, the moving image is often subject to techno- User Interface (GUI), for instance, procedures that were formerly typically cinematographic, logical, practical and pragmatic constraints quite similar to those identified for pocket films by such as zooming and panning, were transferred to almost all applications. The representation early critics Pierce, Miale, and Wolf. Images displayed on mega screens, such as image skins of content in windows on computer screens allows users to scroll up- and downward, pan and urban screens, often suffer from difficult to control lighting conditions, noise from their from left to right, and zoom in and out of particular details. In a sense, one could say that all immediate environments, and competition from events, incidents, traffic, and other screens, media have become ‘moving images’. all of which vie for the attention of the passersby. Relatively low resolution, low frame rates and poor lighting conditions make detailed images, panoramic landscapes, the use of subtle Cinema itself has been deeply transformed by this process of hybridization. It has become colours, fast camera movements and fast editing as much a ‘no-go’ as they were said to be difficult to tell a frame’s live action from its animated parts, sharp cuts between shots have for mobile phone movies. In addition, the images on these huge screens often come without been substituted with undetectable transitions between frames, and the art of editing is no sound, both because it would drown in the surrounding noise, and add to the often already longer to select and arrange shots into scenes and sequences, but to de-compose and re- loud noise in urban environments. compose, analyse and synthesize pixels and layers into dynamic images, of which every part can be changed separately and constantly, without regard for temporal boundaries. Since Moreover, the attention span of the urban passerby is perhaps even shorter than that of the the beginning of film history, the shot or still photograph has been considered the basic mobile phone user. The city dweller tends to be ‘on the move’, and has to divide their atten- unit of the cinematographic language – yet it no longer plays a significant role in digital im- tion over a multitude of sensorial, social, and commercial impressions at once: in a cognitive age processing. A film semiotician would be hard pressed to apply Christian Metz’s famous and perceptual sense, the urban passerby is permanently ‘multi-tasking’. For quite similar ‘Grande Syntagmatique’ – a taxonomy of film segments that are identified by clear temporal reasons to mobile phones, then, the content displayed on such screens had better be short, bright, and instantly intelligible, and animations, commercials, and very short movies suit the conditions of mega-screens best. Thus, the constraints identified for mobile phone movies are not specifically bound to the technology or the size of the display, but rather to the practi- 22. S ee Jeroen Beekmans, ‘Turing Times Square Into Art Square’, The Pop-Up City, 21 December, cal conditions in which moving images are viewed. As a consequence, genres that used to 2009, http://popupcity.net/2009/12/turning-times-square-into-art-square/; Mirjam Struppek, lead a very marginal existence at best in cinema and television as we knew them have gained ‘Urban Screens – The Urbane Potential of Public Screens for Interaction’, Intelligent Agent 6. 2: prominence on both mega and micro-screens. Animations, music videos, shorts, and com- ‘Interactive City’, http://www.intelligentagent.com/archive/vol6_No2_interactive_city_struppek. htm. mercials have become mainstream. 23. L ev Manovich, ‘Understanding Hybrid Media’, 2007, http://www.manovich.net. 104 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 105 and spatial discontinuities – to today’s movies. 24 Shots, sequences, and habitual ways of PowerPoint movies do, however, exemplify the transition to ‘cinema outside the cinema’ in editing have not completely disappeared; the majority of contemporary Hollywood movies still another sense. Outside the walls of the cinema auditorium, the main function of (mixed) use these methods. Yet, this way of editing has just become one option, a ‘mode of narration’ moving images is no longer to tell stories, to present characters with which an audience can amongst many others. identify, or to represent a world of events, adventure and romance in which an audience can be immersed. On the contrary, outside the cinema theatre, moving images are used to So-called ‘PowerPoint Movies’ are examples of ‘meta-movies’ that draw on a mix of traditional inform, to entertain, to seduce, to impress, to persuade or to shock. That is, their main task and novel modes of narration. The most famous example is probably Al Gore’s An Inconven- is communication rather than representation. Moving images have become part and parcel ient Truth, 25 which includes graphs, maps, statistical information, photographs, drawings of an urban and architectural environment in which the ‘lessons of Las Vegas’ – where the and movie images; Michael Welsh’s educational YouTube movies The Machine is Us/Ing design of a building serves to communicate rather than to reveal the building’s structure and Us and An Anthropological Introduction to YouTube are also good examples. 26 Not surpris- function, as the principles of modernist architecture would have it – have become general ingly, PowerPoint movies can be found among mobile phone film festivals as well, such as wisdom and where communication presides over representation. 29 And since the urban David Bakker’s A Short History of Nearly Everything, which summarizes the 624 pages of Bill and everyday environment is full of stimuli that compete for our attention, communication on Bryson’s book in just four minutes, and was entered into the 2008 edition of the Groningen screens outside theatres or living rooms had better be bold rather than subtle: Eisenstein’s festival Viva La Focus. On a different note, the cell phone movie Objets à Usages Multiples is approach of film editing as a ‘slap in the face’ for the spectator is more pertinent to contem- shot and edited in a rather conventional way, but satirizes the current convergence of media porary visual culture than Bazin’s concept of the film image as a reflective redemption of the by showing everyday utensils being used for different purposes than those for which they had real. And because the first thing an image has to communicate is that it is there in the first been designed. Of course, so is the ‘smart’ mobile phone itself, nowadays. 27 place, the medium has in a very literal sense become the message. Among many others, another example of ‘remix’ mobile phone movies is Henry Reichold’s Research into keitai, that is, 3G phone use in Japan and South-East Asian countries such as Free Run, submitted to the Paris Festival Pocket Films in 2007. 28 After opening with a South Korea, has shown that users send photographs or videos to peers, family members or documentary shot of a mass of passengers of the London subway leaving the elevator and colleagues to ask for advice on the choice of clothes, instructions for a task at hand, to bring walking towards the camera, we see a collage of moving and still images, films, photographs, an interesting event or amusing anecdote to their attention, or to simply let them know that animations, drawings and postcards of London landmarks and traffic, through which the pro- they are thinking of them. In many of these cases, the particular content of these messages tagonist navigates on a skateboard. This film cleverly summarizes the history of cinema: from is less important than or even peripheral to, the actual intention the message is meant to the opening shot, which is an obvious allusion to the Lumière brothers’ film Sortie des Usines express: communication presides over representation. 30 Again, this has less to do with the Lumière, which itself epitomizes the industrial era, to the remix mode of the movie itself, particular medium or technologies that are being used to produce and distribute them, but and the highly individualized, idiosyncratic and subjective ways of locomotion of the skate- rather with the pragmatic and practical circumstances under which these images circulate boarder, which symbolize the post-industrial and postmodern era, and its digital information and communicate. and communication technologies is represented by. Free Run demonstrates that nowadays, moving images are made equally with computers as with cameras, if not more so. Moreover, iPhone and YouTube although submitted to a mobile phone film festival, Free Run certainly has not been made Where does this leave the mobile phone movie, in terms of cinematographic type or genres with a mobile phone, nor is there any reason to assume that it should be exclusively displayed of film? First of all, it seems quite obvious that the mobile phone movie partakes in a more on mobile phones. Rather, Free Run offers a ‘pocket history’ of the cinema. general process of ‘remediation’ that is not restricted to cinema, but extends to media in gen- eral. The moving image has become one of the raw ingredients of the digital meta-medium: not only can it be mixed and mingled with all other media, but its production, storage, distri- bution, and exhibition are no longer tied to specific channels and windows. That is, mobile phone movies are certainly not movies produced with mobile phone cameras: the majority 24. C hristian Metz, Essais Sur La Signification au Cinéma, Tome 1, Paris: Klincksieck, 1983. 25. An Inconvenient Truth (dir. Davis Guggenheim, 2006). of entries of mobile phone movie festivals contain computer generated animations, special 26. Michael Welsh, The Machine Is Us/Ing Us, 2007, http://www.youtube.com/ effects, and collages of non-cinematic pictures, graphics, texts, and typography. Nor are watch?v=6gmP4nk0EOE, An Anthropological Introduction To YouTube, 2008, http://www. mobile phone movies especially suitable for display on mobile phones alone. Since the mo- youtube.com/watch?v=TPAO-lZ4_hU&feature=channel, David Bakker, A Short History of Nearly Everything, 2008, http://www.vivalafocus.nl/archief/2008/films/a-short-history-of-nearly- everything-3gp. 29. Roberto Venturi, Denise Scott Brown and Steven Izenour. Learning From Las Vegas: The 27. O bjets à Usages Multiples (Multi Purpose Objects) (dir. Delphine Marceau, 2008). http://www. Forgotten Symbolism of Architectural Form, Cambridge, Mass.: The MIT Press, 2001. festivalpocketfilms.fr/films/article/objets-a-usages-multiples. 30. Mizuko Ito, Daisuke Okabe & Misa Matsuda (eds) Personal, Portable, Pedestrian: Mobile Phones 28. h ttp://www.festivalpocketfilms.fr/films/article/free-run. in Japanese Life, Cambridge, Mass.: The MIT Press, 2005. 106 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe iMages on the Move 107 bile phone display shares technological and pragmatic constraints with other non-cinematic RefeRenCes screens, they circulate just as easily among urban screens, image skins, monitors in public transport, portable devices, and screens in public places and shopping malls. One reason Bolter, Jay David and Richard Grusin. Remediation: Understanding New Media, Cambridge, Mass.: for the gradual dissolution of the mobile phone movie film festival circuit may very well be the The MIT Press, 1999. Brown, Tod. ‘Isabella Rossellini Does Bug Porn’, Twitch, January 1, 2008, dissolution of the mobile phone movie into a more general digital media culture. http://twitchfilm.net/site/view/isabella-rossellini-does-bug-porn/ Beekmans, Jeroen. ‘Turing Times Square Into Art Square’, The Pop-Up City, 21 December, 2009, One aspect of the mobile phone film festival circuit that has received very little comment is http://popupcity.net/2009/12/turning-times-square-into-art-square/. the ‘sociological’ basis of its participants. Not only are the organizers and jury members of Curry, Neil. ‘Filmmaker Shares Secrets of Great Mobile Phone Movies’, CNN, 20 March 2009, most of these festivals members of the professional media culture – be they film-makers or http://articles.cnnn.com/2009-03-20/entertainment/mobilemovies.toptips_1_mobile-phone-video- producers themselves, film critics, or curators of film museums – but the formats, modes of quality-regular-camera?-s=PM:SHOWBIZ. presentation and qualities of most of the entries into the festivals betray a more than amateur Ito, Mizuko, Daisuke Okabe and Misa Matsuda (eds) Personal, Portable, Pedestrian: Mobile Phones in Japanese Life. Cambridge, Mass.: The MIT Press, 2005. involvement in film-making. Although the professional backgrounds of the entrants are hardly Keen, Andrew. The Cult of the Amateur: How Today’s Internet Is Killing Our Culture. New York: Dou- ever mentioned, the video’s titles, framing, editing, sound effects, and production values sug- bleday, 2007. gest that the competitors have had professional training, and experience in handling scripts, Labourdette, Benoît. Tournez Un Film Avec Votre Téléphone Portable, Editions Dixit, 2008. actors, staging, film equipment and editing software. In this sense, it is revealing to compare Manovich, Lev. ‘Understanding Hybrid Media’, 2007, http://www.manovich.net. the entries into mobile phone festivals such as the Brussels Cinépocket or the Paris Festival Metekohy, Mark. ‘YouTube Statistics’, Viralblog, 17 May, 2010, Pocket Films, with the Groningen festival Viva La Focus, which recruits its submitters from http://www.viralblog.com/research/youtube-statistics. the region of Groningen. Whereas the former festivals host movies of quite professional qual- Munt, Alex. ‘S, M, X, XL: The Question of Scale in Screen Media’, Flowtv 6.8, http://flowtv.org/?p=809#. ity, the latter hosts movies of DIY makers, mostly high school students and other youths from Metz, Christian. Essais Sur La Signification au Cinéma, Tome 1, Paris: Klincksieck, 1983. the Groningen region. The relation of the former to the latter is that of Vimeo to YouTube: Odin, Roger. ‘Le “Pocket Film Spectateur”’, Festival Pocket Films, 2009, festivals moderated by professional gatekeepers versus an open platform, with no profes- http://www.festivalpocketfilms.fr/communaute-42/reflexions/article/le-pocket-film-spectateur-par. sional standards to filter its entries. It is probably not coincidental that mobile phone movies Pierce, Juliana. ‘Feature: The Fourth Screen’, Off The Air: Screenrights’ Newsletter, August 2005, submitted to mobile phone film festivals can usually not be found on YouTube. http://www.screen.org/pdfs/about/offtheair/2005/ota0805.pdf. Simons, Jan. Playing The Waves: Lars von Trier’s Game Cinema, Amsterdam: Amsterdam University Insofar as the primary function of mobile phone film festivals appears to be to incorporate a Press, 2007. Struppek, Mirjam. ‘Urban Screens – The Urbane Potential of Public Screens for Interaction’, Intel- new mode of film-making into that of traditional cinema, the festivals seem to be fighting a ligent Agent 6. 2: ‘Interactive City’, lost rear-guard battle. The mobile phone movie is part of a digital mediascape, rather than http://www.intelligentagent.com/archive/vol6_No2_interactive_city_struppek.htm. an expansion of, or appendix to, cinema. Odin’s observation, recall, was that the ‘pocket Terdiman, Daniel. ‘A Celebration of Cell-Phone Film’, Wired, 30 August, 2004, film spectator’ is a reflective spectator who comes to contemporary mainstream cinema with http://www.wired.com/culture/lifestyle/news/2004/08/64698. questions in mind about the means and technologies of production. This means that the Venturi, Roberto, Denise Scott Brown and Steven Izenour. Learning from Las Vegas: The Forgotten mobile phone movie and the mobile phone movie festival circuit is a playground, or training Symbolism of Architectural Form, Cambridge, Mass.: The MIT Press, 2001. ground, in which prospective film-makers and film spectators can prepare themselves for Wolf, Reinhard W. ‘Micromovies – Kurzfilme für die Westentasche, Teil 1’, Shortfilm.de Das Kurzfilm- magazin, January 2, 2006, http://www.shortfilm.de/index.php?id=414&L=0&0=. the ‘free run’ into the future of digital meta-media. In that sense, the mobile phone festival circuit can be seen as an opening to the future, and its gradual demise a sign of its success. On the other hand, the mobile phone film festival circuit can – and probably must – be seen as an attempt to draw a boundary between the professionals of the moving image making business and the rising tide of DIY film-making culture epitomized by YouTube. The message these festivals intend to broadcast is that, although economically and theoretically the prac- tice of film-making has become within anybody’s reach, it takes more than a mobile camera and cheap and user-friendly software to make interesting movies. In this sense, in spite of their open invitations to submit movies, these festivals are attempts to close off the ranks of the professionals to the DIY amateurs knocking at their door. In that sense, too, these festi- vals are a response to YouTube. It remains to be seen whether the gradual dissolution of the mobile phone film festival is a sign that this battle, too, has been lost. 108 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 109 VIDeo aRt DIstRIButIon In the eRa of The production and presentation activities at Montevideo onLIne VIDeo were a first step; Montevideo also looked at other ways to promote and disseminate video art, and building a col- sanDRa fauconnIeR lection of single-channel video works and installations was a logical next step. From the beginning, it was a dis- tribution collection: works were rented out to art venues all over the world and were presented internationally. In this way, Montevideo extensively promoted video art, and The Birth of a Video Distribution Collection generated a bit of income for itself, as well as royalties for In 1978, Dutch television producer René Coelho made an unconventional decision that Woody Vasulka in Montevideo. the artists in its collection. would change his life and career forever. He opened up his house in Amsterdam to artists, allowing them to showcase their work and receive assistance with production. These artists Over the years, Montevideo and its collection merged with other institutions, most notably all had one thing in common: they worked with video, a medium not yet accepted by mu- Time Based Arts, the video artist network related to Amsterdam’s performance and con- seums, festivals and other ‘mainstream’ art venues. René Coelho’s home gallery, baptized temporary art centre De Appel. In 1998, Montevideo/Time Based Arts was renamed the Montevideo, would quickly grow into one of Europe’s most prominent venues for experimen- Netherlands Media Art Institute (NIMk). Since 1993, Montevideo – and later NIMk – have tal video and media art. 1 also been at the forefront of research into video art preservation. In 2010, NIMk is working on a third phase of the ongoing preservation of Dutch video art heritage, actively safeguard- Montevideo, in its early days, must have ing its own and other institutions’ collections. 3 At this moment, NIMk’s distribution collection felt like a community or club. It was a very is the largest in Europe, and at the heart of the institute. The distribution collection con- active social hub, thriving upon a network sists of more than 2,000 titles of single-channel video works and installations by more than of people who were deeply engaged with 500 international artists. Over the years, the organization has slowly expanded its activities video art. Many international artists, includ- to include other or ‘newer’ media arts: not only single-channel video and installations, but ing some who would become established in also internet-based, software- and hardware-based work. 4 However, this article will focus on later decades, such as Bill Viola, Gary Hill single-channel video. and Woody and Steina Vasulka, visited Am- sterdam and Montevideo in the 1980s in or- Cataloguing and Promoting Video Art der to produce and present their work. 2 Of What follows focuses on the online presence of NIMk’s collection in the context of current de- René Coelho in Montevideo. course, Montevideo also played an impor- velopments in networked media, including online video, Web 2.0 and shifts in copyright and tant role for Dutch video and media art. The organization had a strong relationship with AKI, the distribution of cultural content online. It is written from the perspective of an insider and the video art department at the art academy in Arnhem, from which many artists who gradu- employee of NIMk: I am an art historian who specializes in the online presentation of cultural ated who would later become established names in the field. Montevideo also co-produced heritage, and I work for NIMk’s collection and Mediatheque. I have also been involved in the and presented many Dutch video installations. Culture Vortex research project, which is discussed further in a later section of this text, as coordinator for NIMk’s research line. Non-professional online access to NIMk’s collection is complementary to professional, ‘physi- cal’ distribution, which is NIMk’s specialization. In the past, Montevideo and NIMk have 1. A very brief history of the Netherlands Media Art Institute is available on our website: Netherlands Media Art Institute, History NIMk, http://nimk.nl/eng/history-nimk. There is also an introduction to the history of NIMk’s collection at: Netherlands Media Art Institute, History of the Collection, http://nimk.nl/eng/history-of-the-collection. Longer essays describing the turbulent 3. Information about NIMk’s video preservation projects and research can be found at, http://nimk. history of video art in the Netherlands are Rob Perrée, ‘From Agora to Montevideo’, in Jeroen nl/eng/preservation/. Boomgaard and Bart Rutten (eds) The Magnetic Era, Rotterdam/Amsterdam: NAi Publishers 4. I n 1990-1993, Montevideo organized Imago, a travelling exhibition of video and media and Netherlands Media Art Institute, 2003, pp. 51-77 and Sebastian Lopez, ‘Video Exposures: installations, curated by René Coelho, which visited nine countries in Europe and Asia. Between Television and the Exhibition Space’ in Sebastian Lopez (ed) A Short History of Dutch Netherlands Media Art Institute, Imago, http://catalogue.nimk.nl/site/event.php?id=592. Imago Video Art, Rotterdam: episode publishers, 2005, pp. 13-24. included several interactive and hardware-based works, installations by Bill Spinhoven and 2. Information about past activities and events, and video registrations from Montevideo’s and Jeffrey Shaw, among others. During the 1990s, new media works became an increasingly NIMk’s history are available via NIMk’s online catalogue: http://catalogue.nimk.nl. prominent part of exhibitions organized by and at NIMk. 110 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 111 Montevideo catalogue by Gábor Bódy, 1984. promoted the distribution collection via presentations, promotional videotapes and DVDs, and catalogues. Montevideo’s first catalogue, which was of course initially produced in print, was designed by Hungarian director and video artist Gábor Bódy in 1984, 5 and was a work of art in itself: a U-matic videotape box filled with large ‘library cards’ describing artists and works in the collection. A second, more traditionally designed catalogue in book form was published in 1996. Besides print catalogues, the organization also regularly produced (and still produces) pre- NIMk’s online catalogue, http://catalogue.nimk.nl. view tapes and DVDs of recent works in the collection, and organizes special events, screen- ings and – especially in the 1990s – travelling exhibitions of works from its collection. 6 Regu- At the same time, a public interface to this content management system was built, first lar submissions to international film, video and media art festivals are also part of NIMk’s under the name Cyclope, later Catalogue. This public interface, NIMk’s online catalogue, promotional strategy. is now available on http://catalogue.nimk.nl. 7 In the 1990s, as networked media and especially the internet became increasingly impor- In 2002-2005, as part of the research project Content in Context, 8 NIMk digitized its distri- tant, NIMk expanded its mission to include the digital, online promotion and dissemination bution collection for viewing and DVD reproduction purposes. For this digitization process, of its collection. As a supporting institution for media art, NIMk provides online access to the MPEG2 format was chosen, as it was and is still an acceptable viewing format, and is the its own collection and to the video art collections of various other Dutch cultural institu- right format to be used for DVD reproduction of the works. More recently, in 2007-2009, the tions. We use digitization and online access to make media art as visible and accessible Play Out project 9 has enabled even more works from various Dutch media art collections to as possible, to emphasize its importance, and to facilitate research and education – while be digitized and made accessible, including highlights from NIMk’s reference collection and respecting the specific characteristics and role of media art itself. The process of digitiza- archive, ICN, de Appel, the Kröller-Müller Museum and the Groningen Museum. tion in order to provide online access began in the mid-1990s. A custom-made collec- tion management system was developed in Delphi, based upon a solid MySQL database. NIMk’s content management system, currently named WatsNext, and online catalogue pro- vide access to the collection via lists of agents (people and organizations), subjects, and events, with corresponding artworks and documentation. Additionally, the content manage- ment system provides information accessible to NIMk staff only, such as the details of carri- 5. Gábor Bódy’s ‘tape catalogues’ are briefly described on Media Art Net, http://www. medienkunstnetz.de/works/kassettenkatalogen/ and can be seen as an early attempt to reconcile the use and specifics of a new artistic medium (video at that time) with a book format. 6. Imago (1990-1993), mentioned in footnote 4, was the first travelling exhibition organized by 7. S ome technical and historical background about NIMk’s digitized collection, catalogue and Montevideo. The successor to Imago, The Second, Time Based Art from the Netherlands, started collection management system can be found in Gaby Wijers, Content in Context, Amsterdam, at the Stedelijk Museum in Amsterdam and then travelled to Mexico, Taiwan, Japan, Budapest 2005, http://nimk.nl/_files/Files/contentincontext_wijers.pdf. and Prague from 1997 till 2000. Netherlands Media Art Institute, The Second, Time Based Art 8. Content in Context, http://nimk.nl/eng/content-in-context. from the Netherlands, http://catalogue.nimk.nl/site/event.php?id=612. 9. Play Out, http://nimk.nl/eng/play-out. 112 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 113 ers (the physical ‘containers’ of the works, namely videotapes and files), distribution-related a case study in this research project. NIMk is interested in making its catalogue richer and administrative information, and an address database. more dynamic, providing useful and eventually participatory features to its varied users. Fur- thermore, NIMk’s distribution activities are challenged by current developments in online cul- In 2010, NIMk’s online catalogue still very much reflects the idea of a printed video art cata- ture, and the organization is looking for ways to diversify and improve its distribution services. logue; it is a static website with a late-1990s look and feel. Compared to many other video art distributors, however, NIMk offers a special feature: most works in the distribution collection The Culture Vortex project allowed NIMk to perform research into the relationship between can be previewed via the catalogue website. As I write, only 30-second excerpts of the works are its users and its collection and catalogue. In April-June 2010, NIMk interns Janneke Kamp publicly available, but, as I discuss below, it is hoped that this policy will change in the future. and Lorena Zevedei used a variety of research methodologies to map the interests of several Since 2005, staff members and interns at NIMk have manually created short excerpts from types of potential users of NIMk’s collection. 12 It is less useful to think of users or the ‘public’ all works. At first, the original MPEG2 excerpts were converted and published in RealVideo. In in abstract terms than as a very diverse network of stakeholders. For lack of more appropriate 2009, however, it became clear that many up-to-date browsers and computing platforms didn’t terminology, we will stick to the term ‘users’ for now. support RealVideo by default anymore, and most of the excerpts were converted to Flash. People approach online video art for a variety of reasons, including their interests and orien- At the same time, the full-length MPEG2 videos were converted to lower-quality stream- tation, whether professional or personal. Within these diverse perspectives, three main user ing MPEG4 files, with a watermark for password protected educational use. However, this groups can be distinguished: educational online distribution service is not very broadly known or used at this moment. In addition, browser and plug-in support for streaming MPEG4 files is currently dwindling; the – M akers (in NIMk’s case: artists in the distribution collection) are the copyright holders of format was originally chosen because such files are more difficult to download, but is not a the work. They care very much about the context and quality of presentation of their work viable option for the future and the format is under revision at the moment. Evidently, NIMk and hope to generate some income from their hard work. keeps a close eye upon open source developments in video formats and codecs and alter- – P rofessionals are usually mediators of the video work. NIMk works extensively with cura- natives to Flash, such as HTML5. Unfortunately, none is presently widely enough adopted tors and programmers of other cultural institutions, film and media art festivals and other across browsers and platforms; therefore, pragmatic solutions are chosen and in all cases, art events. Curators can turn to NIMk staff for personal advice on the selection of works, the priority is to make video files as widely accessible as possible. and eventually rent work from NIMk’s distribution collection for presentation in their own events. Educators also fit into this category; lecturers and teachers in art history, cultural Digitization of collections, and the production of a database and an online catalogue were studies, media studies and other disciplines may want to include video art in their cur- first steps towards making the heritage of Dutch media art and video art more accessible and riculum and present it during their lectures and study programs. visible. NIMk has built a solid national digital infrastructure as a foundation for the dissemina- – N on-professionals are the diverse group of people who are not professionally involved in tion of media art now 10 – but the next steps need to be taken, and many challenges remain. media and video art. However, many of these individuals are specialists or professionals in a related area, or will become professionals in the area of media and video art. These Culture Vortex: User Research for an Online Media Art Catalogue people are generally not interested in the politics and distinctions between institutions In the spring of 2010, NIMk participated in a research project entitled Culture Vortex, that and collections, and might not care very much about the art world at all. But most people deals with the online distribution of creative material. 11 The Culture Vortex project seeks the do enjoy interacting with culture in some way; many of them produce it as well. At some answers to two contemporary problems: What are viable distribution and business models point in their lives and careers, they might develop an interest in, or be touched by certain which will help to generate income for an online cultural heritage? And, how can an audience cultural artifacts, including video art. be developed into an elaborate network culture, encompassing audiovisual collections and public institutions? For NIMk, this project came at the right time – NIMk’s online catalogue In the Culture Vortex research project, researchers Zevedei and Kamp used several methods for its collection, as described above, needs a design and strategic update, and was used as to learn more about the three user groups described above. Desk research was undertaken in order to list, compare and evaluate similar online resources, including catalogues, archives 10. This infrastructure was built especially during the Play Out project, mentioned earlier. 11. C ulture Vortex is a RAAK program – a collaboration between professionals from the public, 12. The research was conducted mainly from a workplace situated at MediaLAB Amsterdam, located cultural and educational sectors. Culture Vortex was initiated by the Institute of Network in the Hogeschool van Amsterdam (HvA), a lab environment where students develop various Cultures (Hogeschool van Amsterdam) and includes a consortium of various Dutch cultural interactive media projects. Janneke Kamp and Lorena Zevedei were coached by Margreet institutes, including the Netherlands Institute for Sound and Vision, NIMk, Virtueel Platform and Riphagen from MediaLAB Amsterdam and Institute of Network Cultures, Sandra Fauconnier Amsterdam City Archives. The Culture Vortex website and blog are on the Institute of Network from NIMk and Aske Hopman, interactive media consultant and educator at MediaLAB Cultures website, http://networkcultures.org/wpmu/culturevortex/. Amsterdam. 114 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 115 and platforms of media art by other institutions and initiatives, in order to showcase best tions, the adoption of Web 2.0 features is far less apparent. I do not think this is mere coin- practice and look for inspiration. In addition, both researchers conducted interviews with cidence: many people who are professionally active in media art are also quite aware of the several artists, both from NIMk’s collection and beyond it: artists in distribution and not in complex political implications of Web 2.0 applications. For example, many of those who are distribution; upcoming and established artists; men and women artists; artists of various present on social networking platforms for practical or research reasons remain very critical ages. An online questionnaire was provided to NIMk’s 3,000 Facebook friends; 166 people of them. This ambivalence applies to NIMk – for example, while the organization has an ac- responded. Usability tests of the current online catalogue were conducted at the Usability tive presence on YouTube, Facebook and Twitter, it also hosts artists-in-residence Aymeric Lab of the Hogeschool van Amsterdam. Finally, a dense and very productive expert meeting Mansoux and Marloes de Valk, who develop a critical response to Facebook games. 16 This is was held on 3 June 2010, with the members of the Culture Vortex consortium and other a pragmatic, rather than an ideological stance; hopefully, we will apply the same pragmatic expert invitees from the fields of Dutch new media, media art and cultural heritage. and balanced attitude to the development of the new online presence of the NIMk collection. While these research methods focused on NIMk’s online catalogue only, many of the observa- In general, we are lucky that as of mid-2010, the hype surrounding Web 2.0 has waned at tions and findings of the project have foregrounded more general and strategic questions, both least a little. Some developments that were sped up by Web 2.0 are unstoppable, however, for NIMk’s mission as an institute, and for the field of media art and culture as a whole. 13 The and have both positive and negative consequences. The possibilities for social networking findings may change NIMk’s relation to all three groups of stakeholders: makers, professional online have become more diverse; an extremely wide variety of cultural activity is blooming and non-professional users. The final sections of this essay reflect upon some directions NIMk on the web; and many (more or less knowledgeable, more or less informed) people are able sees for the future, emphasizing observations that will be useful and interesting to a broader to publish their work with ease. Other aspects of Web 2.0 plainly warrant suspicion: privacy audience as well. It is important to note that NIMk has not begun to develop a new online issues, for instance, or the looming dispute over net neutrality, or the corporate monopolies strategy for its collection at the time of writing; therefore, some of the potential described below or oligopolies, as in ‘the googlization of everything’. All need to be watched closely. In any remains unfulfilled, and some of the points reflect my personal opinion. case, for a networking organization like NIMk, valuable lessons can be learned from both aspects of Web 2.0. Some Observations and Directions The Legacy of Web 2.0 The Online Availability of Video Art In the Culture Vortex project, Zevedei and Kamp compared several media art collection web- NIMk works closely with many of the artists represented in its distribution collection. What sites, online archives and platforms. 14 What was striking was that most of these contained the 500+ artists in NIMk’s distribution collection have in common is that they mainly work barely any typical Web 2.0 features, such as user profiling, free tagging and folksonomies, with video. Most have received formal training in an art academy, position themselves within the ability to add comments and reviews, or to edit, reuse or embed content. This seems the context of the contemporary visual arts, 17 and attach great importance to the quality and paradoxical. Many organizations in the broader cultural field, such as audiovisual archives, context of the presentation of their work. With this profile, NIMk’s artists are seemingly quite museums, libraries and general archives are already quite advanced in this area and have different from the millions of active users and producers of online ‘folk’ video on platforms been very eager to jump on the Web 2.0 bandwagon. 15 Meanwhile, in the media art world, such as YouTube and Vimeo. In general, video art seems to strikingly distance itself from the with its technically advanced artistic production and the tech-savvy staff in many organiza- low-threshold, gritty, vernacular cultural production on Web 2.0 video platforms. Yet, perhaps the distinction is not as sharp as it seems – for this reason, it is interesting to investigate the way in which video artists present themselves online. 18 13. The research report of NIMk’s contribution to Culture Vortex: Janneke Kamp and Lorena Zevedei, Culture Vortex Program Line Public 2.0, Amsterdam, 2010, http://networkcultures.org/ culturevortex/2010/07/01/final-report/. 14. See the research report referred to in the previous footnote. Some of the evaluated websites 16. M ansoux’s and de Valk’s artist-in-residence project is entitled Naked on Pluto: http://nimk.nl/eng/ belong to similar video distributors (Electronic Arts Intermix, http://www.eai.org; Video Data naked-on-pluto. Bank, http://www.vdb.org; Lux, http://www.lux.org.uk), some are connected to general media 17. This is closely linked to the mission of NIMk and (formerly) Montevideo, which places itself art institutions and initiatives (Zentrum fur Kunst und Medientechnologie, http://www.zkm.de; explicitly in the context of contemporary art – not experimental film, which is characterized by a Database of Virtual Art, http://www.virtualart.at; Rhizome, http://www.rhizome.org), some are different discourse and presentation circuit. During the past 10 years, NIMk has also increasingly Web 2.0 services used by artists or run by cultural institutions (Vimeo, http://www.vimeo.com; positioned itself in the context of (new) media art, a domain that again maintains a different ArtBabble, http://www.artbabble.org). discourse from contemporary art: media art focuses much more on discussions about the role of 15. Two examples of Web 2.0 initiatives by cultural institutes evaluated in the context of the Culture media in society. Vortex project are ArtBabble, http://www.artbabble.org, an artistic video platform maintained by 18. See, for instance, various essays and lectures by Tom Sherman, analysing the relationship various prominent art institutes internationally, and Museum Boijmans van Beuningen, ArtTube, between video art and vernacular (online) video. For instance Tom Sherman, ‘Vernacular http://arttube.boijmans.nl. Both are artistic, museum-led initiatives that aim to provide an Video’, in Geert Lovink and Sabine Niederer (eds) Video Vortex Reader: Responses to YouTube, alternative, and a curated answer to YouTube. Amsterdam: Institute of Network Cultures, 2008, pp. 161-168. 116 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 117 The video artists in NIMk’s collection deal with the online accessibility of their work in quite music videos and short clips for television in addition to video art. Their short video works different ways. They have very diverse ideas about content and presentation, about the role of are humorous and accessible, but definitely not simplistic, and receive quite a bit of positive the artist and of institutions, and about their options and possibilities when it comes to earning attention on Vimeo. 23 However, these two examples are exceptions; most artists active on an income for themselves. Their attitudes vary from extremely protective to totally open. Some Vimeo or YouTube have a small but dedicated following of ‘fans’ or keep their account very artists, such as Marina Abramovic, don’t want their work to be available online at all. Some low-key and only use it for embedding the video in their personal website. artists, such as Lernert & Sander, publish a lot of their work online – full-length, no excerpts – and are eager to use platforms like YouTube and Vimeo. Other artists withdraw their work from Ironically, NIMk itself is restricted in its ability to show video artists’ work online, both by distributors and archives when they become established – for example, Bill Viola, whose early copyright restrictions and the artists’ own wishes in terms of piracy and presentation quality work was in distribution by NIMk and other international distributors, was withdrawn from of their work. As mentioned above, in its online catalogue, NIMk presents short, 30-second distribution several years ago. Other artists, including Hooykaas/Stansfield, offer their entire previews of all works in the distribution collection. However, usability research undertaken oeuvre to archives. Many artists are convinced that online exposure will help them find more by Culture Vortex has confirmed earlier research and the common-sense view that both pro- avenues for presentation and increase their income. On the other hand, they fear loss of in- fessional and non-professional users hope and expect to find full-length video. 24 As a widely come as well – they are afraid that low-quality, pirated copies will lead their own, uncontrolled accepted art form, video art is increasingly mentioned and taught in education, and is more life online via pirate and torrent sites, and that these will take the place of the ‘real’ work. 19 and more frequently the subject of research and journalism. 25 In any case, most emerging and mid-career artists actively promote themselves online. A It is ironic that NIMk would run into trouble if it published full-length videos of established surprising number of them use platforms like YouTube and Vimeo. A quick, quantitative artists in its collection, whereas a semi-illegal website like Ubuweb 26 publishes some of these inventory of 72 recent artists in NIMk’s distribution collection 20 (artists from whom work has artists’ works anyway. 27 Ubuweb is an interesting case: its ‘rogue’, and yet simultaneously been taken in distribution between 2005 and 2010) 21 provides some interesting insights. I high-profile and respected status, allows it to ‘get away with’ actions for which established checked whether each artist maintained a website where they show or document their work, institutions would be severely reprimanded or even litigated against. Ubuweb is highly re- and whether they use YouTube or Vimeo. Of these, 81% do have an artist website, 17% have garded because of the extremely high quality content it serves in the area of experimental a YouTube account, and 15% a Vimeo account showing full-length work. Surprisingly, these film, contemporary art, audio art and video art, and therefore many artists tacitly agree with artists are not only the youngest, but can be found in all age groups, and it is mainly mid- having their work available there, even if it is blatantly pirated according to the letter of current career artists who structurally maintain an artist website. Most of the artists active on YouTube copyright legislation. Perhaps it is even an honor to be included on Ubuweb. or Vimeo don’t actively promote the availability of their work there, and not many receive com- ments from ‘general’ users. There are, however, a few notable exceptions. A good example NIMk has a strong tradition of following artists’ wishes in terms of making video works acces- is the British artist collective Semiconductor, whose work is technically and visually stunning. sible online, and has, with the significant change in the online video landscape, planned to Semiconductor receive many admiring comments on Vimeo, many of them probably from take action to develop a more diverse and up-to-date policy. In the first months of 2011, all viewers who might otherwise not visit or see Semiconductor’s work in a contemporary art artists in NIMk’s distribution collection will be once again presented with the announcement context. 22 A similar observation can be made of Dutch artists Lernert & Sander, who produce that we would prefer their work in NIMk’s distribution collection be made available in its full-length version, but in preview quality and with watermark. Artists will of course have the opportunity to opt out of this, and to decide upon the level of accessibility for their work. In 19. The online accessibility of video art – the situation in 2009 – was described in the (Dutch- this way, NIMk hopes to encourage a slow but steady increase in the public availability of its language) end report of the research project Play Out, which focused on uncompressed collection, while still working very hard on helping its artists in distribution receive a reason- digitalization of video art but which also included some research on accessibility. See Gaby Wijers able income for their work via mediation for professional presentations. and Yola de Lusenet (eds) Play Out, Amsterdam, 2009, http://nimk.nl/nl/play-out-eindverslag; refer to pp. 11-12 for a short chapter on online access to video art. The essay concludes with the statement: ‘We find ourselves at a turning point. It is high time to show, and open up, the Dutch video art collections’. 23. Lernert Engelberts and Sander Plug, http://weloveourwork.com. Lernert & Sander on Vimeo, 20. T his small quantitative inventory was conducted by Sandra Fauconnier, and was performed after http://vimeo.com/user1341816. finalizing the Culture Vortex research by Janneke Kamp and Lorena Zevedei. The results have 24. Kamp and Zevedei, Culture Vortex Program Line Public 2.0, p. 33. not been published earlier. 25. G aby Wijers and Yola de Lusenet (eds) Play Out, p. 12. 21. These works and artists – recent additions to NIMk’s distribution collection – are listed on the 26. Ubuweb, http://www.ubu.com. NiMK website: New works in the collection, http://nimk.nl/eng/collection/new-works-in-the- 27. Some early performance works by Marina Abramovic´ can be viewed on Ubuweb: Marina collection. Abramovic´, http://www.ubu.com/film/abramovic.html. Some works from the 1970s and early 22. Semiconductor is an artist collective of Ruth Jarman and Joe Gerhardt. Semiconductor, http:// 1980s by Gary Hill are also on Ubuweb, Film & Video: Gary Hill, http://www.ubu.com/film/hill. semiconductorfilms.com. Semiconductor on Vimeo, http://vimeo.com/semiconductor. html. 118 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 119 Business Models: Memberships and Micropayments pay a small yearly subscription fee. Such a model is probably quite logically translatable In the meantime, the Culture Vortex research has generated a lively discussion about busi- to the current situation and to online programs and services. 31 NIMk and other media art ness models for video art and for online cultural heritage in general. New business models organizations distinguish themselves by the high level of technical and practical expertise have become an important topic, both for commercial parties and for non-profit institutions. they offer to artists and other professionals in the field. This expertise applies to other areas, This is due to the fact that online media are challenging ‘older’, non-networked income such as scouting for new work by interesting artists, and curating programs about current models; yet this development is also informed by an economic and political climate in which topics or for targeted audiences. public and private funding for non-profit institutions is dwindling. NIMk is also considering strengthening its distribution activities and finding new formats for presentation and income Context and Mediation generation. The idea of creating more specially curated online programs and activities points to a special quality that many cultural institutions and initiatives share: they are often specialized, and For NIMk, it has been very helpful to look for inspiration elsewhere. Many suggestions for possess a tremendous expertise, in one particular area. For example, some members of alternative income models emerged from the Culture Vortex expert meeting held on June 3 NIMk’s staff keep a close eye on interesting new developments and promising young artists 2010. 28 This expert meeting, with participants from a variety of organizations in the Dutch in the field of media art in the Netherlands. Other staff members – including the author of cultural sector, was especially fruitful in generating creative ideas for features and business this article – possess a sound art historical background and are good at explaining media art models for NIMk’s collection. One participant, Jaromil Rojo, who is very active in open to a non-professional audience, connecting it to contemporary art, technical developments source development, presented a list of typical business models that exist for open source and to emerging social phenomena. NIMk also has employees who are specialized in both software, many of which can be translated to other fields. 29 For example, the main busi- theoretical and practical aspects of video post-production, open source software, video edit- ness model for open source software is so-called ‘supportware’: users don’t pay for the soft- ing and preservation. In those instances in which NIMk lacks expertise in a specific area, ware itself, but they do pay for technical support. In a similar way, an organization like NIMk the organization can count on its vast network of partner institutions and friendly individuals. could think about more creative ways to monetize its expertise – the specialized knowledge The strength provided by these two assets – expertise and a great network – might become and service from its staff and network – rather than its assets, the collection itself. even more important in the future. NIMk might come to think of its collection as an oppor- tunity to inform and teach people about media art and specific topics, and as a vehicle for Another spark of inspiration came from the popularity and acceptance of micropayments for social networking in the media art field. online digital content. The use of micropayments has increased significantly in the past few years, especially for mobile applications, music and ebooks. In a similar manner, NIMk could Recently, NIMk has developed ‘guided tours’ through its collection. In the online cata- think about producing and presenting specific, exclusive content online – partly with works logue, users can find specially curated selections of works about specific topics. Some from the NIMk collection, partly beyond – and to make these specially curated shows avail- tours were created on the occasion of a current exhibition at NIMk. 32 These tours are a able for a small fee or micropayment. 30 first, experimental step towards developing more diverse ways to use NIMk’s expertise and network to make its collection more interesting and visible. Membership models were also mentioned. According to this model, people who pay for a yearly NIMk membership would be granted access to a selection of exclusive activities, In the near future, NIMk has plans to develop online resources, including a collection of arti- both online and offline. This is a strategy which might hold a lot of promise, but which also cles and guided tours with and through its collection; and perhaps some educational texts or needs quite a bit of experimentation and fine-tuning. Are people willing to pay for online videos that introduce media art to a non-professional audience. With the Media Art Platform, content in the long term? Even when an immediate benefit and connection to the makers an online social networking site for the field of media art field, 33 NIMk has experimented with is made clear (for instance, when renters or buyers are informed that a large percentage a platform for the exchange of expertise and for networking. At this point, the attempt has of their payment goes to the artists directly), it is not clear that people are willing to pay. been only partly successful, but many lessons can be drawn from the difficulties we have However, a membership model would be a logical step for a networked organization like encountered. A renewed online strategy for NIMk’s collection will ideally include both func- NIMk to take. Until a few years ago, a system of membership that provided discounts for tions in a useful way. technical assistance and the use of post-production facilities was already in place. Artists in NIMk’s distribution collection automatically became members for free; others had to 28. Kamp and Zevedei, Culture Vortex Program Line Public 2.0, pp. 34-49. 31. R hizome, http://www.rhizome.org, is a New York-based nonprofit media art website which has 29. Kamp and Zevedei, Culture Vortex Program Line Public 2.0, p. 51 for an overview of all open been working with a membership model for many years already – quite successfully apparently. source business models listed by Jaromil. 32. Netherlands Media Art Institute, Catalogue: Tours, http://catalogue.nimk.nl/site/tours.php. 30. Kamp and Zevedei, Culture Vortex Program Line Public 2.0, pp. 34-49. 33. Media Art Platform, http://www.mediaartplatform.org. 120 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 121 artists to have their work placed and contextualized within a collection, particularly if that collection is interesting or renowned. Due to time constraints, the role of the curator has not yet been thoroughly researched by NIMk. At the time of writing, a questionnaire targeted towards curators and programmers for art venues and festivals is being undertaken, which seeks to find answers to a set of ques- tions about curators’ work process and interests. Which channels do curators mainly use for finding and evaluating artworks for their future shows? Does the discovery and selection of new work occur mainly via personal networking, physical visits to festivals, biennials and exhibitions, or does online research play a significant role? Are art journals and magazines still important, or is their influence declining? How can an organization such as NIMk be most helpful to them? In any case, the Culture Vortex user research has confirmed to NIMk that its added value lies in the unique assets it possesses: expertise and networks, as described above, and in the quality that the NIMk label attaches to works in its collection. Whatever the outcome of the questionnaire submitted to curators, NIMk will probably benefit from renewed promotion of its collection, and of bringing it to the media art sector’s attention again via specially curated programs, and via specific, personal services, both face-to-face and online. In a renewed online catalogue, it would be very helpful for curators to be able to store their NIMk online catalogue, guided tours through the collection. personal selections and preferences, and to be automatically alerted when new works from Middle Men their favorite artists, or that concern their own specialist topics, are distributed. Perhaps it In the past decade, video art distribution activities in general have slowly declined. This is would be beneficial for curators and researchers to temporarily promote their own events and not only a reality for NIMk’s collection but for other video art distributors. 34 A similar phe- academic writing via NIMk’s catalogue, if they are using work from the NIMk collection. For nomenon is apparent in many fields that traditionally function as ‘middle men’, especially in NIMk, this would showcase the breadth of potential applications of its collection; for curators music, the newspaper business and scientific publishing. 35 When content becomes more and researchers, this is an additional means of promotion. easily available online, it becomes less unique, and both makers and users benefit from a more direct relation that bypasses the mediating function of middle men. In media art, it is Non-professional Audiences increasingly the case that curators and programmers of festivals, screenings and exhibitions The research conducted in the Culture Vortex program also generated discussion and new will bypass distributors and contact and negotiate with artists directly. For artists themselves, ideas concerning the non-professional audiences that might be interested in NIMk’s collec- this development has both advantages and drawbacks. It is great that their online presence tion. Until recently, the online presence of NIMk’s collection – the online catalogue – has gives them the opportunity to be visible and easy to find. At the same time, the need to been targeted mainly towards professional users. However, the NIMk collection contains arrange and maintain contacts with curators directly might increase their workload; distribu- work that might interest many people who would not call themselves art lovers, or who have tors typically take a lot of this type of work out of an artist’s hands and are often in a better never heard of NIMk. At the present time, all cultural organizations need to prioritize the position to negotiate reasonable artist fees. Furthermore, it would be beneficial for many effort to reach people outside the usual circles of art lovers and connoisseurs. They must make it possible to expose media art to anyone who might be touched by it – perhaps as an occasional, spontaneous and serendipitous discovery, but perhaps also in a structural way. 34. Many participants of the yearly video art distributors meeting during the International Film Festival Rotterdam 2010 shared this observation. The introduction of media art to a wider audience can take place in a number of ways. For 35. Helge Tennø is a Norwegian researcher who specializes in online marketing and who describes cultural institutions, it can be very beneficial and refreshing to organize activities outside their the changing markets (and often failing marketing strategies) in the cultural industry, in comfort zone, via unusual channels. NIMk has organized specially curated programs for cul- publishing and consumer products. Helge Tennø, http://www.180360720.no/ The changing field tural and music festivals. For example, in 2004 and 2006 NIMk introduced its collection to of scientific publishing – with the strongly emerging open access movement which bypasses the many thousands of people with a program entitled The Big M, which screened works from scientific publishing industry – is extensively promoted, researched and commented upon by Peter Suber, Lawrence Lessig, Stevan Harnad and others. 122 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 123 the NIMk collection inside a specially designed, inflatable tent. 36 We aim to repeat this type We also need to ask whether it still makes sense to see a collection as a separate entity of activity in 2011 and later years; at this moment, NIMk is seeking funding to develop and within an art organization’s activities. For NIMk, the collection is part of almost all activities, program the Media Art Mobile, a foldable container structure in which workshops and screen- and the history of the organization is intricately linked to it. Furthermore, research under- ings can be organized on location. 37 For the Media Art Mobile and for other uses, NIMk hopes taken within the Culture Vortex project has demonstrated that many people don’t find the to develop an accessible interface to its collection, through which it will be possible to discover collection’s separate website, primarily because it is called ‘catalogue’. And it is quite illogi- works intuitively: works connected to a specific emotion or theme, for instance. cal that NIMk’s main search engine does not produce results from the collection at all – only from the general website. It is important that an organization’s website links to work in the An integral characteristic of online video culture is the re-use and embedding of content. collection as much as possible, and to use a collection and/or archive in a lively way, as a The success of services such as YouTube and Vimeo is to a large extent due to the ease with context for the present. which people can embed video from these services in sites that are relevant to them, such as blogs or social networking sites. At this moment, no online collection of video art has this Networking and Interoperability capacity, not even a pirate site like Ubuweb. It would be interesting for NIMk to seriously I have already described the importance of developing special, and sometimes exclusive, consider developing this capacity, at least in those cases in which the artist agrees to it. online programs in order to maintain artistic and cultural heritage. A collection can be kept fresh and lively when it is temporarily connected to developments elsewhere; for NIMk, this Finally, many cultural institutions today are busy looking for new target groups. NIMk might can take the form of specific artist presentations and curated programs about a variety of consider the role of video art in newer or wider contexts: for example, on urban screens; or topics and in a variety of formats, probably with a scope that goes beyond NIMk’s core col- in situations in which people are simply ‘killing time’, such as healthcare or public transport, lection. While broadening its scope, NIMk can emphasize its unique role as a quality filter and can benefit from visual content with added value. But media art can also speak to very and a network hub. A collection of works is a vehicle for social networking; making the life of specific audiences: lately, a NIMk exhibition with sound art held at the 2010 Sonic Acts a collection visible demonstrates its relevance to a broader context. festival in Amsterdam triggered the attention of a group of otorhinolaryngologists (ear, nose and throat specialists). An upcoming exhibition that concerns games and public space might Furthermore, collections of cultural heritage are not islands. Between various collections, speak to a diverse audience of geeks and gamers. nationally and internationally, there are both commonalities and differences in interest and focus. Stronger networking between different resources and collections is a logical next step. Lessons for an Online Media Art Catalogue For instance, it would be very useful for artworks in different collections to be interlinked more What, then, are the most important principles to guide the development of NIMk’s online col- strongly, or to be able to discover and research the oeuvre of a single artist using information lection? The following guidelines also reflect my opinion on what are the most valuable ways from many different collections at the same time. to deal with online cultural heritage in general. Interoperability between online collections and archives has been on the agenda for quite Integration some time. The Semantic Web held the promise of decentralized, automatic, machine- In order to thrive, a specific cultural heritage needs contextualizing within art criticism, and generated connections between websites in similar domains, yet this vision has proven to be within the social developments it thematizes or responds to. It is a challenge to ensure that unrealistic. 38 At this moment, several large-scale national and international projects provide our cultural heritage is appropriately contextualized: the success of online video platforms interoperability between collections in a centralized way. The Europeana project is a good is partly due to the fact that the videos can be embedded elsewhere; the videos are also example of such an initiative. 39 In 2008-2009, NIMk participated in the GAMA project, a discoverable because they are part of playlists or can be found through recommendations. European gateway to archives of media art, 40 which provided valuable lessons in making For online collections of cultural heritage, the challenge is to make the works as reusable as our collection available in an international context and in creating an international infra- possible within current frameworks of copyright legislation. In this sense, NIMk can learn structure for media art. It would be very beneficial for a healthy public domain and network from online video platforms such as YouTube and Vimeo, and look at what is increasingly culture in general if decentralized models of connecting online heritage were to take root. becoming common practice even for television broadcasters’ online video archives. NIMk’s collection should receive much more attention when videos, hopefully in full-length versions with artists’ permission, can be embedded elsewhere, especially in weblogs and on social 38. The World Wide Web Consortium’s overview site for Semantic Web developments is available at networking services. World Wide Web Consortium, Semantic Web, http://www.w3.org/2001/sw/. 39. Europeana, http://www.europeana.eu. 40. G ateway to Archives of Media Art, http://gama-gateway.eu. GAMA is a search engine and website which provides access to media art from eight European organizations: NIMk, Argos (Belgium), 36. The Big M, http://nimk.nl/eng/big-m. Ars Electronica (Austria), C3 (Hungary), Filmform (Sweden), Heure Exquise! (France), Instants 37. Mediaartmobiel Presentation, http://nimk.nl/eng/mediaartmobiel-presentation. Vidéo (France) and SCCA (Slovenia). 124 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 125 Microformats are slowly beginning to play a role here. 41 Linked Data, a lightweight alterna- RefeRenCes tive to Semantic Web protocols proposed by Tim Berners-Lee in 2009, is also an interesting 42 Kamp, Janneke and Lorena Zevedei. Culture Vortex Program Line Public 2.0, Amsterdam, 2010, development to follow. http://networkcultures.org/culturevortex/2010/07/01/final-report/. Lopez, Sebastian. ‘Video Exposures: Between Television and the Exhibition Space’ in Sebastian Lopez Concluding Remarks (ed) A Short History of Dutch Video Art, Rotterdam: episode publishers, 2005. At this point in time, the principle conclusion I would like to draw is one mentioned previ- Perrée, Rob. ‘From Agora to Montevideo’, in Jeroen Boomgaard and Bart Rutten (eds) The Magnetic ously: in a changing field of online video and the proliferation of user-generated content, Era, Rotterdam/Amsterdam: NAi Publishers and Netherlands Media Art Institute, 2003. art organizations and collections can act as a quality filter, a much-needed mediator, and Sherman, Tom. ‘Vernacular Video’, in Geert Lovink and Sabine Niederer (eds) Video Vortex Reader: a network hub. Although the current economic and political climate renders the position Responses to YouTube, Amsterdam, Institute of Network Cultures, 2008, pp. 161-168. of many cultural organizations precarious and transitional, at this moment we are the only agents who can guarantee that online cultural heritage, and especially media art and video art, will remain accessible in a sustainable and beneficial manner. Commercial and/or semi- illegal platforms such as YouTube, Vimeo and Ubuweb, and the practices of file-sharing and piracy are of course also prominent providers of such heritage. Yet, it is highly questionable whether they are interested in the benefits for artists and society at large. Cultural institutions are much better placed to balance the interests of all the stakeholders involved, and provide a solid, long-term option. Right now, many art organizations are looking at the changing landscape of networked tech- nologies, and identifying challenges and developing suitable strategies. So is NIMk. As an intermediary for media art, NIMk adopts a pragmatic attitude when dealing with tensions between openness, publicness, ethical choices and accessibility. In our choices for techni- cal solutions, we are pragmatic, without losing track of the ethically best solutions. In terms of content, we attempt to balance the interests of artists and the public. For makers, an important question at this moment is how to generate a sustainable income when artistic pro- duction, promotion and distribution go digital. For the public, a healthy, rich and qualitative public domain is at stake; it is beneficial for society in general, for education and research, when as much as possible high-quality cultural content is easily findable and discoverable, and preferably even available for free re-use and re-appropriation. NIMk defends both inter- ests, which it actively tries to balance and reconcile, with a strong and prominent mission towards accessibility. 41. See Microformats, http://microformats.org/. Some examples of microformats are hCard for describing people and their address information, and hCalendar to describe events. 42. Linked Data was promoted by Tim Berners-Lee at TED 2009: TED.com, Tim Berners-Lee on the Next Web, http://www.ted.com/talks/tim_berners_lee_on_the_next_web.html. See also Linked Data, http://linkeddata.org/. 126 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 127 aRtfem.tV: femInIst aRtIstIc InfILtRatIon project, ArtFem.TV empowers women artists, highlights their works within the context of of a maLe net cuLtuRe gender issues, and broadens the discourse about art and feminism in a new media context. The question of a dedicated artistic space raised in 1929 by Virginia Woolf’s ‘A Room of One’s eVeLIn steRmItz Own’ is reconsidered by cyberfeminists towards the end of the same century, and seen in the creation of this project. Furthermore, ArtFem.TV aims to subvert the commercialized systems and structures of broadcast television. To understand the background of ArtFem.TV, it is necessary to examine the history of femi- nism in relation to art. Feminism and feminist art finally came to the forefront in the late 1960s, a time of liberation and political struggle, during which there was public debate that enabled a re-thinking of the position of women in society. Women were encouraged to act and react in public ways, and art, as a primarily public issue, became a powerful vehicle for feminist discourse. The main questions asked were: What makes women different from men?; and with respect to art, what makes women artists and women’s art different from that produced by men? In their art, women reflected upon patriarchy in social systems, in history, in art history and in current affairs. While feminists fought an uphill battle, feminist issues gained prominence, first in the U.S., Great Britain and Germany, and have spread to many other nations and cultures since the 1970s. In the 1970s, the so-called second-wave of feminism emerged, along with its message that ‘the personal is political’. The position of women was seen to be inextricably linked to a patriarchal, commercialized, oppressive culture, and their social, sexual and personal struggles were seen to be embedded within such a culture. 2 In the 1980s, the conflict between the two basic ap- proaches to feminism - integration and separation – led the focus to shift from equity to differ- ence. This third-wave approach became strongly affiliated with the academy, and increasingly ArtFem.TV, Screenshot 2011. Images courtesy and copyright of individual artists. theoretical, as it developed into the academic research fields of women’s, gender, and feminist studies. According to Charlotte Krolokke and Anne Scott Sorensen, third-wave feminists are ArtFem.TV 1 is a form of online television programming that brings together art and feminism. ‘motivated by the need to develop a feminist theory and politics that honour contradictory expe- The basic aim of the video-based web portal is to foster the involvement of women in the arts, riences and deconstruct categorical thinking... .They embrace ambiguity rather than certainty, to nurture women’s artworks and projects, and to create an international online television engage in multiple positions, and practice a strategy of inclusion and exploration’. 3 screen presenting the creativity, images and voices of women. ArtFem.TV is a non-profit, artist-run, Internet Television (ITV) and media art portal I founded in 2008, and have since Third-wave feminism is inspired by and bound to generational shifts wrought by the new glo- then curated, edited and maintained as an artistic cyberfeminist project. ArtFem.TV is an bal world order, the fall of communism, new threats of religious and ethnic fundamentalism, artistic hyperspace for the images and statements of women artists that would be otherwise and the dual risks and promises of new info- and biotechnologies. It is characterized by local, hidden on popular media sites. national and transnational activism in areas such as violence against women, trafficking, body surgery, self-mutilation and the overall ‘pornofication’ of the media. 4 Gender became a discur- The term ‘feminist art’ can be misleading, as the word feminism is often inaccurately con- sive practice in a social matrix, inclusive of the emerging movements of queer and transgender nected to a struggle against men, but feminism is definitely not sexism. In relation to art, the term ‘feminism’ should be used in the sense of understanding art from a female perspective. Although this does not exclude feminist struggles, it is more concerned with the recognition of 2. S ee Charlotte Krolokke and Anne Scott Sorensen, Gender Communication Theories and Analyses: a female position, or rather a subject position. This position is constituted by a critical engage- From Silence to Performance, Thousand Oaks, London and New Delhi: Sage, 2006, p. 10. ment with gender issues and views art as a socio-political matter. As an artistic cyberfeminist 3. Krolokke and Sorensen, Gender Communication, p. 16. Krolokke and Sorensen also discuss the notion of ‘transversal politics’, writing that ‘What defines transversal politics is not only the fact that differences in nationality, ethnicity, or religion - and hence in agenda - are recognized but also that a commitment to listen and participate in a dialogue is required’, p. 20. 1. www.artfem.tv. 4. Krolokke and Sorensen, Gender Communication, p. 17. 128 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 129 politics. From this perspective, there arose notions of cyborgs and avatars as new models of sex and gender made possible by new media. 5 According to Krolokke and Sorensen: While concerned with new threats to women’s rights in the wake of the new global world order, it criticizes earlier feminist waves for presenting universal answers or definitions of womanhood and for developing their particular interests into somewhat static identity politics ... Third-wave feminists want to avoid stepping into mutually oppressive static categories, and they call for acceptance of a chaotic world, while simultaneously em- bracing ambiguity and forming new alliances. Thus, third-wave feminisms are defined not by common theoretical and political standpoint(s), but rather by the use of perform- ance, mimicry, and subversion as rhetorical strategies. 6 It is generally accepted that in the patriarchal heritage of Western culture, the preponder- ance of art made by males and for male audiences often transgressed against females, or used females as passive objects. The male studio system excluded women from training as artists, and the gallery system kept women from exhibiting and selling their work, as well as from being collected by museums (albeit somewhat less so in recent years). In an article written in 1971 titled, ‘Why have there been no great women artists?’, Linda Nochlin gave ArtFem.TV, Screenshot 2011. Images courtesy and copyright of individual artists. impetus to the publication of numerous histories of women artists. 7 The ensuing momentum towards feminist scholarship concerning women in the arts was tremendous, and afforded within an historical context. The diverse history of the relationship between feminism and art, greatly overdue recognition to many women artists. Re-thinking the work of Rousseau and and the vast body of work that has and continues to be created out of such socio-political and Kant, feminists began to identify canonical ways of thinking about what makes for ‘greatness’ cultural contexts, led to creation of ArtFem.TV. in art, and recognized that ‘this “greatness” always seems to exclude women’. 8 As Cynthia Freeland states: As a background on the technological avenue that lead to the development of the ArtFem.TV project, in 2006 I joined one of the earliest artist-run video art net portals [PAM] Perpetual The feminist asks how canons have become constructed, when, and for what pur- Art Machine, 10 and became familiar with alternative forms of displaying artistic video works poses. Canons are described as “ideologies” or belief systems that falsely pretend online. I found [PAM] a great invention and also a valuable community, facilitating global to objectivity when they actually reflect power and dominance relations... .Perhaps exchange between video artists and enabling their works to be viewed without complicated instead of creating a new and separate female canon, we need to explore what existing searches for video art. In the ensuing years, the video art platform CultureTV 11 emerged, canons reveal. 9 along with other platforms such as Souvenirs from Earth TV, 12 a channel for film and video art, or UbuWeb: Film & Video, 13 all of which opened up new horizons for artistic online video. While the first two decades of feminist art are seen as a revolt against male artists and their Technical implementations facilitated and supported this movement: upload and download politics of production and consumption, and target the male-created gaze and male-domi- transfers became cheaper and faster, and improvements in the compression of video data nated society. Presently, female artists are concerned with the position of women and women enabled better viewing quality. All of this increased my enthusiasm for video art on the net, artists in a socio-cultural context that is no longer defined as a revolt against patriarchal sys- and for creating a different net aesthetics, leading to ArtFem.TV in 2008. tems, but is accepted as a debate concerning the disclosure and deconstruction of sex and gender in a patriarchal system, and reflects both the construction and discourse of gender The structure of ArtFem.TV’s site design and its interface were developed as a collaborative work by Torbjoern Karlevid and Vincent Van Uffelen in the frame of their strategic design studio NOVA, 14 based in Austria and London. The structure of the site as an online media 5. Krolokke and Sorensen, Gender Communication, p. 18. 6. Krolokke and Sorensen, Gender Communication, pp. 17-18. 7. Linda Nochlin is an American art historian, university professor and writer of feminist art history 10. [PAM] Perpetual Art Machine, http://www.perpetualartmachine.com. studies. Linda Nochlin, ‘Why Have There Been No Great Women Artists?’, ARTnews (January 11. CultureTV, http://www.culturetv.tv. 1971): 22-39, 67-71. 12. S ouvenirs from Earth TV, http://www.souvenirsfromearth.tv. 8. Cynthia Freeland, Art Theory, New York: Oxford University Press , 2001, pp. 88-89. 13. U buWeb: Film & Video, http://www.ubu.com/film/. 9. Freeland, Art Theory, pp. 88-89. 14. N OVA, http://www.novainteractive.at. 130 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 131 platform is divided into several channels: ‘Women Artists’ presents portraits of the artists; RefeRenCes ‘Single Channels of Women Artists’ showcases the artists along with a comprehensive range Freeland, Cynthia. Art Theory, New York: Oxford University Press, 2001. of their artworks; ‘Exhibition’ presents documentaries of exhibitions; and other channels en- Krolokke, Charlotte and Anne Scott Sorensen. Gender Communication Theories and Analyses: From titled ‘Video Art’, ‘Performance’, ‘Sound Art & Music’, ‘Activism’, ‘Report’, ‘Documentary’, Silence to Performance, Thousand Oaks, London and New Delhi: Sage, 2006. ‘Short Film and Movie’ present different aspects of women’s artistic practice. Using buttons Nochlin, Linda. ‘Why Have There Been No Great Women Artists?’ ARTnews (January 1971): 22- on the left of the screen, users can choose between these different channels. The design of 39, 67-71, reprinted in Amelia Jones (ed) The Feminism and Visual Culture Reader, New York: the site is clean and reduced, to avoid an overload of information, and to foreground the video Routledge, 2003, pp. 229-233. works themselves. The website itself is hosted by mur.at, 15 an association that supports net. art by offering free web hosting for artists and their web-based projects. In 2010, ArtFem.TV hosted about 400 video works by more than 90 women artists from around the globe, including video art works, performance art documentation and videos about artists such as Martha Rosler, Nina Sobell, and Pipilotti Rist . A variety of users from the fields of academic research and curating have responded to the site’s feminist emphasis as a valuable resource. ArtFem.TV’s website has been exhibited as an online installation at various festivals and venues, and presented at various symposia, 16 and not only within explicit femi- nist contexts so as to make feminist issues and feminist art as widely accessible as possible. At its broadest lengths, the aim of ArtFem.TV is to offer insight into feminist issues and their relation to art, to as wide an audience as possible. Images support society and culture, but images also reference society and culture. Understanding media as social processes in addi- tion to its status as conduits of communication or mechanical devices, it is possible to see the impact that media have upon changing cultural values and social practices in a globalized world. Media are an effect of economic systems and the forces of market production, which support and stabilize a traditional, ancient dyadic system of male and female by the exclusion of gender - ArtFem.TV attempts a cyberfeminist break with a male dominated net culture and media landscape, highlighting women’s distinctive points of view in art and media works, as well as the accessibility and promotion of these works, in an inclusive, democratic way. 15. V erein zur Förderung von Netzwerkkunst, Graz, Austria, http://www.mur.at. 16. See: http://www.artfem.tv/ArtFem_TV/, for a list of exhibition/festival/symposium presentations of ArtFem.TV. 132 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 133 cRashInG the aRchIVe/aRchIVInG the for the Mediatheque’s crash, its reliance on external support invariably extends the responsi- cRash: the case of saw VIDeo’s bility, in the same way that the grandeur of the project, when it was up and functioning, was meDIatheQue shared. However, no fingers have been pointed: the ‘who’ and ‘what’ of the crash became a mere by-product – if not an expected consequence – of the digital online realm. méL hoGan Nevertheless, corporate affiliations and legal parameters are involved in the server crash, which is often relegated to a mere technical failure. This holds true not only for the Media- theque, but for many if not all similar initiatives in Canada, such as Vidéographe’s ViThèque. com and Vtape’s artvideo.museevirtuel.ca – both of which remain largely under-documented. Until quite recently, these projects were delayed or (temporarily) offline, but no documenta- There is a looming paradox in the way culture is created, circulated, and conserved and pre- tion is readily available to assess the problems they encountered or the solutions that allowed served for posterity. On the one hand it is present, visible, and shared; on the other, it is of the them to resurface. 5 Because of this lack of documentation, not much can be done to argue past, stored away, and protected both against and for the future. In debates about the web’s for a new approach to video preservation and distribution online. potential and its limitations, this paradox resurfaces time and again. Nowhere is this discus- sion more present than in attempts to characterize the online repository as archive, despite The web has now been activated long enough to have large-scale projects come to life and the invariably ephemeral nature of the digital. 1 To ground this paradox, and to reveal some- come to crash. 6 Documenting the Mediatheque’s demise, piecing together fragments of a thing more profound than mere ‘tension’ between the material and immaterial in the politics lost digital repository, is an exercise that characterizes our era. As exemplified by the Me- of preservation, I look to Canada’s first large-scale online video art repository as a case study. diatheque, and several other Canadian online video art repositories, there is no better time to explore the web’s potential for defining and redefining the role of the online repository as SAW (Sussex Annex Works) Video’s Mediatheque was launched in 2003, and included 486 archive, and its capacity for presenting new modes, models, and definitions of preservation. 7 independent Canadian video art works in an online repository. Predating YouTube by two Looking to older, pre-Web 2.0 initiatives also provides invaluable insight into the affective years, and reaching a terabyte of content, the Mediatheque is an important project, as it is labour poured into these early archival renditions. 8 Finally, the urgency of such work lies in located at the intersection of independent video art, internet studies, and archival theory. In the state of these projects: because the Mediatheque is no longer online, it cannot generate 2003, the sheer volume of video in the Mediatheque ‘made the internet tip’, as the son of the the interest of artists, curators, historians, and researchers, despite its symbolic and cultural project’s digital archivist, Anatoly Ignatiev, so aptly described it. 2 significance for Canadian video art history. In May 2009, there was a server crash that made the project vanish, 3 as nothing of the back- Between December 2009 and June 2010, I had the opportunity to discuss the Mediatheque end server was backed up. In June 2009, SAW Video’s summer intern, Tiffany Tse, sent out a project with many of the people implicated in the project, both currently and at its inception. letter to video artists to inform them that both the SAW Video site and the Mediatheque portal Working with current SAW Video Director, Penny McCann, I co-curated a public screening had ‘gone down’. The letter was written to explain the server crash, but also anticipated the of the now defunct Mediatheque collection at Groupe Intervention Video (GIV) in Montréal. Mediatheque’s rebuilding. However, since this outreach effort, a notice has been posted on The screening was held in November 2010, along with a ‘live’ month-long online showcase the SAW Video website that diverts users: ‘Due to circumstances beyond our control, the at wayward.ca. This off/online exhibit was intended to begin the revival of the Mediatheque, Mediatheque will be down until further notice. We apologize for any inconvenience’. 4 Cur- generate a wider discussion around the last decade of video art online from a predominantly rently, in 2011, plans are underway to recreate a Mediatheque, but in a new light, rather Canadian viewpoint, and to further document the project. Here, I also aim both to revive than attempting to hastily reconstruct it based on fragments of what it once was. As the term ‘circumstances beyond our control’ implies, many factors are involved at different levels in the construction and maintenance of such a large-scale online archive. According to Douglas Smalley and Michael Lechasseur, technicians who worked on the Mediatheque project, a 5. h ttp://artvideo.museevirtuel.ca/ remains offline (February 2011); http://vitheque.com launched in hard drive failure was the root of the server crash. While SAW Video is ultimately responsible Montreal in May 2010 after years of delay. See photos of the launch at, http://www.flickr.com/photos/vitheque/. 6. See Mél Hogan, ‘Cashing and Crashing the Mediatheque’ FlowTV.org, 21 May, 2010, Online: http://flowtv.org/2010/05/caching-and-crashing-the-mediatheque-mel-hogan-concordia- 1. See: http://www.ugent.be/en/news/bulletin/memory.htm and http://www.archipel-project.be/ university/. 2. Anatoly Ignatiev, private correspondence, 2010. 7. See Felix Stalder, ‘Copyright dungeons and grey zones’, from: nettime-l Digest, Vol 7, Issue 10, 3. The Mediatheque has a soft launch in 2003, and an official launch in February 2004. For details sent: 15 April, 2008. see, http://www.ottawaxpress.ca/visualarts/visualarts.aspx?iIDArticle=900. 8. For a definition of affect see, Brian Massumi, ‘Parables for the Virtual: Movement, Affect, 4. http://sawvideo.com/. Sensation’, Durham, NC: Duke University Press, 2005. 134 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 135 and document the project, and to comment on the state of video art online as an extension Arising from an initiative to account for and archive emerging video technologies, the Media- and permutation of the archive, in a Canadian context and beyond. Documenting the Me- theque pilot project, Independents On Line (IOL), was first proposed in 2002, and aimed to diatheque’s crash and its pending revival serves as a springboard into a larger conversation stream the work of independent Canadian video-makers and film producers. Drawing from about the intricate and, as I argue here, paradoxical nature of online archives. More precisely, the SAW Video collection, which spanned 20 years of video production in the Ottawa-Hull such projects demonstrate that the technical is always mitigated to some extent by and region of Canada, the IOL initiative would archive the collection through the digitization of ap- through the interplay of cultural, legal, and archival parameters. proximately 500 works in one year. As the project gained momentum, its name was changed to ‘Mediatheque’ to reflect the bilingual intentions behind the project, and to meet funding Making the Cut: Becoming a Video Archive requirements. On paper, just three months were allocated to what was a massive undertak- Whether it is considered to represent an institution or a process, the word ‘archive’ is a dis- ing. In this astoundingly short time, a database had to be created, an interface designed, puted term. As I will argue here, one sense of the term informs the other. Broadly defined, the works digitized, works collected, contracts signed, partnerships solidified, among many other traditional archive is an ongoing intellectual effort to categorize, classify, organize, store, and tasks. Due in no small part to the budgeting magic of Kevin Morris, the project director, the preserve certain historical narratives, based on principles of acquisition and the appraisal of plan was realized. As Morris puts it, ‘you’ve gotta work it – you’ve gotta juggle all the time and archivists. 9 The internet has transformed our conceptual relationship to the archive, as a space borrow from your own self’. that can be entered, visited, perused, and where objects can be touched, seen, and experi- enced. To some extent, the qualitative time/space dimensions that defined the archive have This original proposal by SAW Video to the Department of Canadian Heritage was to archive been superseded by the qualities of speed, access, and online, networking capabilities. Many the SAW Video collection through the digitization of some of its older works in various video of the archive’s foundational concepts are being reassessed: value, access, and preservation formats. SAW Video’s works dated back to the late 1970s, and many were and remain stored are not only re-conceptualized in light of online media, but are disrupting the meaning of their in non-archival conditions, suffering from limited budgets, storage space, access to facilities offline counterparts, too. In other words, the focus lies not in the material/immaterial binary, and equipment, and know-how. According to Morris and the Mediatheque’s appointed digital but in how the digital online invariably disputes and challenges the definition of the archive. archivist Anatoly Ignatiev, the grant to build the Mediatheque was specifically for archival pur- poses. While SAW Video could not claim to meet any of the basic requirements of the material As there is no universal definition of what constitutes an archive, there is no objective way to archive, it could and did demonstrate to its funders that the web offered an extension and assess the extent to which the Mediatheque is an archive. In Canada, there are no param- substitute to material definitions of storage, preservation, and access. If more people were eters that define an archive, and thus small and large-scale initiatives, both off and online, able to access rare works, the result would be a larger and less predictable cultural conversa- can claim to constitute an archive. Although some university archives, provincial archives, tion. Preservation, in this case, was not primarily if at all about long-term care of the files, but and Library and Archives Canada have legislated mandates that determine what will be col- rather about extending the ‘lives’ of the works showcased as facilitated by the online realm. lected, arts and community-based archives have no legal compulsion to exist and as such have not imposed structural or procedural rules or policies. 10 The openness of the concept According to Morris, SAW Video was an unlikely recipient for this archival grant. Canada of the archive is key to understanding the impact of online technologies upon the definition has a vast and rich video art history, much of which culminates in numerous locally-focused and role of archives and archivists. distribution centres. For example, the Centre for Art Tapes in Halifax, 11 VIVO in Vancouver, 12 VTape 13 in Toronto, Video Pool in Winnipeg, 14 Video Femmes in Québec, 15 Groupe Inter- vention Video and Vidéographe 16 in Montréal all had equally or more established video art 9. For a few key theorists who question the role of the archive from post-colonial, queer, and collections. Vtape in particular was and remains the best-equipped institution for cleaning feminist perspectives see, jake moore, ‘Brief: Matricules (parts 1 and 2) Database and archive tapes, migrating works, format shifting, and for video material preservation more generally. project: Studio XX the first 10 years’, DPI Online 7, 11 October, 2006, http://dpi.studioxx.org/ The particulars that led to SAW Video receiving the grant over these other institutions remain demo/?q=fr/no/07/brief-matricules-database-and-archive-project-studio-xx-first-10-years; Ann unclear, and became as much a challenge as an opportunity for the recipients. But, accord- Cvetkovich, ‘In the Archives of Lesbian Feelings: Documentary and Popular Culture’, Camera ing to Morris (who drafted the proposal, and whose views were later reinforced by McCann), Obscura, 17 (2002): 107 – 147; Anjali Arondekar, ‘Without a Trace: Sexuality and the Colonial Archive’, Journal of the History of Sexuality, 14 (2005): 10-27; Ra’ad in Janet A. Kaplan the Mediatheque had appeal because it was pitched as an archive rather than a circulation ‘Flirtations with Evidence: The Factual and the Spurious Consort in the Works of The Atlas Group/ Walid Raad’, Art in America, 92.9 (2004): 134-139; Lisa Gitelman, Always Already New: Media, History and the Data of Culture, Cambridge, Mass.: MIT Press, 2006; and Marlene Manoff, 11. h ttp://www.centreforarttapes.ca/. ‘Theories of the Archive from Across the Disciplines’, Libraries and the Academy, 4.1(2004): 12. h ttp://videoinstudios.com/aboutus.php. 9–25. 13. http://www.vtape.org/. 10. S ee, Mél Hogan correspondence with Scott Goodine, Provincial Archives of Alberta personal 14. h ttp://videopool.typepad.com/video_pool_history/. correspondence, March 2007, from ‘Archiving Absence: a queer feminist framework’, MA 15. h ttp://www.videofemmes.org/accueil/. Thesis, Concordia University, Montréal, 2008. 16. http://www.videographe.qc.ca. 136 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 137 tool; a showcase and display portal rather than a substitute for offline distribution. Thus, it lars budgeted for the project, $100,000 dollars was dedicated to the acquisition of rights for may have been its positioning as a non-distributive entity that led SAW Video to be backed for showcasing the videos. 19 The enormity of this sum is reflected in the detailed attention paid the Mediatheque over other more ‘qualified’ distribution centres. to copyright and artists’ fees in the elaboration of the project. What was described by McCann as a ‘mad dash’ for artists’ fees ensued, as the Mediatheque promised artists a sum of $200 The proposal was to digitize its deteriorating material collection, with a focus on showcasing per video regardless of length, exhibited for a three-year period through the Mediatheque older local works, as a means of preservation, and to give many of the works a second life. portal. 20 Artists were limited to 12 independent works on the original Mediatheque project. However, the actual project strayed quite far from its stated mission. Consequently, it gave Completed, the project featured 486 works by 238 artists from across the country, of which the notion of preservation an alternate meaning to that which was proposed and funded 412 were ‘local’ and 25 were French titles. If Ignatiev’s and Morris’ memories serve right, few under the archival banner. Instead of limiting the project to the digitization of its collection, of the submitted titles were turned down from entry into the Mediatheque. Those that were SAW Video opted to create a ‘living archive’ that redefined the central tenets of archiving: not included were pieces that the committee felt unfit for presentation for either aesthetic or storage, display, and preservation. Spinning the idea of the archive to include the mobility of technical reasons, or videos pulled out by the creators themselves. However, the parameters artists and the circulation of their works outside the region, Morris proposed a more flexible according to which some works were rejected remain vague across the interviews conducted. vision of the local, and of what the internet afforded in terms of a coherent artistic community. While Morris claims that set standards were in place to ensure the quality of works, guidelines Morris also took into account the potential for artists to interact and participate through the about this part of the process do not exist. Artists submitted works, new and old, and cashed Mediatheque, which was something that the traditional material archive did not emphasize. in on the rare occurrence of being paid for un-curated and un-commissioned work. In short, how to maximize the web’s potential for video art in Canada became a combination of the visionary drives of Lechasseur, Morris, Ignatiev, Smalley, and later, McCann, altered The rest of the budget would pay for administrative and technical contracts, supplies and and adapted to the continuously changing technoscape. 17 equipment, storage and streaming, digitization, training, and resource development. Despite this capital, stemming in large part from Canadian Heritage, the steps involved in organizing As is common to government-funded initiatives, the Mediatheque was also directed to func- the Mediatheque project were numerous and gruelling, as there was no model upon which to tion as an educational tool. In the follow up on the Partnership Grant Report from Canadian base a project which was innovative by definition. Not only did a database of the works need Heritage, several questions revolved around the use of the Mediatheque by educators, and be constructed and conceived, but contracts with the artists had to be drafted and signed. their access to documentation about the works and the usage of the database. The Me- The technical and logistical aspects of the project were interdependent, and a great effort diatheque was to have a component that would ensure its relationship to a broader (if not from both sides was required to catalogue, insert metadata, digitize, burn DVD-ROM copies, younger) audience, essentially proving its utility as a repository of rare and significant works encode, and finally upload content to the site. Much of this labour had to be calculated in that both promoted and conserved bilingual Canadian culture. To achieve this aim, it was es- terms of ‘minutes and hours’ for various funding reports; a quantification which failed to ac- sential to provide artistic, cultural, and historical context for the works. According to McCann, count for the important affective basis of the project – the component that lingers on longest this important conceptual component of the database was never actualized to its fullest po- after the portal itself went offline. tential. Instead, context was relegated to an oversimplified drop-down list within the Media- theque interface, without possibility to curate, organize or make cross-connections between The Mediatheque’s digital archivist Ignatiev recalls coming to work at SAW Video before the works. So, whereas the first incarnation of the Mediatheque was instrumental in collecting, internet was even installed. Just a few years later, he is credited with developing the digitiza- categorizing, and digitizing content for the collection, the curatorial potential of the web would tion process for the project. Because the initiative was unprecedented, Ignatiev created a sys- be more fully realized in McCann’s reconfiguration of the project in 2011. tem through trial and error, testing compression and encoding rates and various formats. The final report on the project states that digitization occurred in ‘real time’, such that 10 minutes To generate content for the living archive, SAW Video collected works through an open call of footage would require 10 minutes to be converted, averaging approximately 5,000 minutes directly from artists, video distributors, and co-ops across the country. 18 Of $350,000 dol- for the entirety of the collection, for an average duration of 10 minutes for each video. Burn- ing the digital file to DVD, however, would require double the time per video, and encoding would demand as much as four times that amount. As is also stated in the report, these times 17. S ee Arjun Appadurai ‘Disjuncture and Difference in the Global Cultural Economy’, in M. Featherstone (ed.) Global Culture, London: Sage, 1990, pp. 295-310. 18. McCann explains that the open call was an issue for a site that defines itself as an exhibition 19. According to the Executive Summary of the project, the total expenses of the project amounted space. Because the works were not curated or ’chosen’, the works were by default organized to $570,614, with contributions from Canadian Heritage ($382,917), the Canada Council of the according to traditional archival categories without much insight to the who and why of any Arts ($25,000), corporate sponsor Xstream Labs ($90,600), and funds from fundraising efforts particular work or any aforementioned idea of how certain works speak to one another. On the and SAW Video’s operating revenues (estimated at over $72,000). flip side, the open call meant the project was open to all video artists, amateur and established 20. The length of videos determined their worth based on television broadcast rates – this is still the alike. system in place for many screenings and festivals. 138 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 139 were calculated on the basis of the equipment available, and such times diminished as a sec- Launching the Video Archive… Into Cyberspace ond computer became available for processing. Yet, this second production post often led to A local (Ottawa) internet start-up, iSi Global, 22 provided server management and free band- errors in consistency: ‘In terms of technicians, we discovered that more than one technician width for the project. In 2003, wide access meant access to bandwidth; however, the costs working on more than two workstations at a time leads to errors in meta-tagging, missing tape exceeded the financial capacity of any self-sustaining artist co-op. As iSi Global was the local quality errors, incorrect adjustments during digitizing, etc’. 21 The human labour involved in representative for the software, the Mediatheque was to stream video using the Real Player such a large-scale online project cannot be understated, and in as much as human passion plug-in. 23 In 2002-2003, the .avi format may have seemed as viable an option as the ubiq- drove this project, human error is an important element to consider as well. With the advent uitous Flash does today. 24 However, corporate ties were essential to the project. SAW Video of faster DVD burners, greater processing speeds, etc., the process would invariably become could not afford the streaming costs for a site that was visited by over 5,000 people a month, smoother, less costly, and more efficient as technician became more familiar with the tech- and for a demand for numbers of works in excess of 116,000. 25 This meant that a corpo- nologies, processes, and tasks. By 2003, once the workflow was in place, a minute of video rate partnership facilitated the project, with iSi Global allocating bandwidth for approximately took on average one hour to go online from its original format. 300,000 hits averaging 10 minutes each. 26 Seven years later, wayward.ca curators (Nikki Forrest and I) in collaboration with McCann, The public launch of the Mediatheque took place in 2004, after a soft launch in 2003. Be- had to access the DVD-ROMs – the material back up for the Mediatheque – in order to select cause very little video was streamed online in Canada at the time of the launch – widespread works for the screening at GIV. For us, this was a moment that revealed much about the ar- use of video online through YouTube would take place in 2005 – the project was as large in chival framework of the Mediatheque. The collection was in .avi format, stored on DVD, and scope as it was highly anticipated. The final assessment by SAW Video describes the promise all files played back properly on the computers at SAW Video. However, the material back of the Mediatheque: up was quite unconventional: works were divided into parts, so that the 4.7 GB of space on each DVD in the collection was maximized. In other words, the size of the DVDs, not the video we have built a backbone that can support virtually unlimited growth in the number file size, determined its storage. Works that were larger than 4.7 GB were cut into segments of productions that can be streamed and the number of resources that can be added; and stored onto separate DVDs, with each segment carefully noted in Ignatiev’s handwriting. that is, a deluxe system that can meet future needs and requests, and that can accom- Ignatiev’s view on the matter was that these video files could easily be re-assembled using modate changes and improvements as demanded. 27 video editing software, in order to re-create the work in full. It was also a method that wasted no DVD storage space, so that fewer DVDs overall were used for the material storage of the The Ottawa Xpress report of the launch quotes Douglas Smalley, SAW workshop coordinator Mediatheque collection. However, it also means that video works are fragmented, and more and technical assistant at the time, defining the Mediatheque as ‘an archival repository of difficult to utilize from a curatorial point of view. Thus, the method raises interesting questions independent video art of all genres’. Smalley adds: ‘Unless you go to screenings you won’t about the link between use – as a heterogeneous concept – and preservation tactics. get to see works of art like this anywhere’. 28 Thus, the rarity of the works and the singularity of the Mediatheque were highlighted through the successful launch of the first project of its The video files for the Mediatheque currently exist in proprietary .avi video format, com- kind in Canada. pressed for web streaming, and doubled to data DVD-ROM format in a higher quality .avi. A very small number of the works in the Mediatheque collection are distributed elsewhere, and Digital Value because uncompressed screening copies were not part of the project, high quality ‘originals’ The longevity of the project—six years online—meant that the repository would outlive are not accounted for in the Mediatheque. In this sense, the Mediatheque project was one the original three-year non-exclusive streaming contracts signed with artists. According to that viewed the online repository as an entity unto itself, rather than a mirror, complement, or addition to any material version of a collection. The Mediatheque, then, is a prime case study for an archive that functions on the basis of the web and privileges wide access over long-term material preservation of the files. This task was relegated to the artists themselves, 22. http://www.isiglobal.ca/. who could either keep their own archives or have their works stored in official repositories. 23. http://www.real.com/. 24. http://gizmodo.com/5454115/first-youtube-now-vimeo-how-html5-could-finally-kill-flash-video. 25. L etter to artists from Penny McCann (no date). Letter given to me by Penny McCann at SAW Video. 26. Despite the server crash on SAW Video’s end, SAW Video and iSi Global remain on good terms and are considering a future partnership. 27. Final IOL Report, p.7. 28. Artswatch, ‘SAW Launches Huge Website’, March 4, 2004, http://www.ottawaxpress.ca/visualarts/ 21. S AW Video IOL Final Report (no date), p.2. visualarts.aspx?iIDArticle=900. 140 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 141 29 30 31 SAW Video’s Mediatheque ‘homepage’ recuperated from the Wayback Machine. 29 SAW Video’s Mediatheque “FAQ page” recuperated from the Wayback Machine.31 McCann, few artists decided to pull their works from the site upon termination of their origi- nal contracts: of the 486 works on the website, 300 remained. According to McCann, this number provides ‘a substantial foundation upon which to build a permanent digital archive’. 32 Presently, the Mediatheque owns the non-exclusive rights – under copyright – to showcase the works online for an indefinite period of time, even while the site is down. While copyright is not in itself a system for determining the remuneration of creators, it is certainly an important discursive element in determining the value of online media, including levels of access. Copyright also underpins much of the cultural specificity of access and pres- ervation, which in Canada too often get subsumed under U.S. viewpoints. Canada’s recently introduced Copyright Reform Bill C-32, which would weaken copyright law, has generated much debate in newspapers and blogs. 33 Although his arguments require more nuance in a Canadian context, one of the main issues connecting Lawrence Lessig’s influential and impassioned critique of a permissions-based culture, and his argument for a compelling- distinction between artists who create for money and those who create for love 34 to various Canadian copyright theorists and activists such as Michael Geist and Laura Murray, is the SAW Video’s Mediatheque ‘search and archive categories’ recuperated from the Wayback Machine.30 32. New Directions for the Médiathèque in 2006–2007, personal correspondence with Penny McCann (2010). 33. h ttp://www.faircopyright.ca/, http://www.jeremydebeer.ca/, http://www.faircopyrightforcanada.ca/, http://www.michaelgeist.ca/. 34. See Lawrence Lessig, ‘How creativity is being strangled by the law?’ TED Talks, posted 16 March, 29. h ttp://web.archive.org/web/*sa_/http://sawvideo.com. SAW Video/website design by Leif 2007, http://www.ted.com/index.php/talks/larry_lessig_says_the_law_is_strangling_ creativity. Harmsen. Permission to publish by SAW Video director, Penny McCann. html; ‘The Read-Write Internet’ in Lessig 2.0 blog, 17 January, 2006, http://www.lessig.org/ 30. http://web.archive.org/web/*sa_/http://sawvideo.com. SAW Video/website design by Leif blog/2006/01/the_readwrite_internet.html; ‘Creatives Face a Closed Net’, Financial Times, 29 Harmsen. Permission to publish by SAW Video director, Penny McCann. December, 2005, p.11, http://www.ft.com/cms/s/2/d55dfe52-77d2-11da-9670-0000779e2340. 31. h ttp://web.archive.org/web/*sa_/http://sawvideo.com. SAW Video/website design by Leif html; and Free Culture: How Big Media Uses Technology and the Law to Lock Down Culture and Harmsen. Permission to publish by SAW Video director, Penny McCann. Control Creativity. London: Penguin, 2004. 142 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 143 notion and reassertion of fair and balanced copyright legislation. 35 This view understands hard copy exists as part of the Mediatheque, to be materially conserved for posterity, preser- the foundational philosophy of copyright as being about creation and access by future gen- vation figures differently within this archive. In the case of the Mediatheque, if it is indeed an erations. Copyright is therefore deeply implicated in definitions of preservation and access archive, preservation is access, despite what the archival ideal may be. 38 online, and how these assign and delimit (digital) value. According to Morris, however, the Mediatheque is a collection of ‘loss leaders’; that is, the In 1975, Canada became the first country to pay exhibition fees to artists, after successful lob- videos are offered for free online, so that they might lead the viewer to a larger body of the bying by CARFAC (Canadian Artists’ Representation / Le Front des artistes canadiens). CAR- artist’s work which could, in turn, stimulate income. However, as part of the crashed Media- FAC’s lobbying also resulted in the federal Copyright Act Amendment, which recognizes artists theque, these loss leaders are also imbued with the cultural capital emitting from the project’s as the ‘primary producers of culture’ and gives artists legal entitlement to exhibition and other archival aura. The Mediatheque’s video works have taken on a new value – that of inacces- fees. 36 Presumably, CARFAC and video art distributors across the country will detail online ex- sibility – as part of this now defunct online repository of rare works. The crash, in essence, hibition and screening fees in the near future. However, this issue remains contentious, given generates the cultural value of the collection. the grey zones within copyright legislation, and the lack of strategies for remuneration proposed by those who oppose the strict policing of the online realm. The lack of control over a Canadian There is consensus at SAW Video that, for the duration of its six years online, the Media- context currently presumed possible on the web (by video art distributors more generally), theque was never fully embraced by the video arts community, either in its target region including means to generate income for video artists online, keeps matters confused between or beyond. While Morris explains this lack of involvement and appropriation by the com- the incredible potential of the web to provide unparalleled access, and the threat that open munity as mere disinterest in the web by video artists, many debates have since arisen from access poses to historical and cultural context, and value rooted in scarcity and authenticity. the idea of showcasing video art online, pointing to its growing popularity. Questions about maintaining, generating, and attributing value online, without efforts to redefine creativity and Because there is generally a two-year window for video works to be featured in festivals preservation in this new context, are paradoxical at best. Ironically, it is the crash that may and circulated by distributors, the value of the works is undoubtedly a factor in the art- ultimately generate more attention and accrue value to the collection, as archival value is ists’ decisions to continue to showcase their work in the Mediatheque, without fee, after the largely informed by rarity, scarcity, and historical context. third year. 37 The online environment prioritizes the circulation of culture and its preservation through popular use and open access and, and in many cases, through practices of appro- Concluding Remarks priation and remix as both homage and critical response. Online culture is defined by what it At the present time, McCann and SAW Video are actively seeking to restore the Mediatheque privileges: the recursive nature of cultural circulation in and through the web is thus central project. The loss of the original Mediatheque is important – yet so too is the project’s potential to new definitions of preservation. This is made manifest by the Mediatheque, which show- future. In attempting to remodel itself, the Mediatheque is no longer alone; video streaming cased not only archival works, but undistributed and rare works that would probably never technologies have greatly improved, and venues have emerged, if not culminated in YouTube otherwise be seen by the general public or arts community. As no original screening quality and Vimeo. Along with these new large-scale user-generated repositories come new modes of activating the archive, largely conceived through participatory, affective, and immaterial labour. 39 Based on the intensely draining experience of the custom-made and experimental 35. See Michael Geist (blog), http://www.michaelgeist.ca/; ‘Preserving Printed and Digital Heritage’, archiving approach taken by Ignatiev and Morris in 2002, this newer trend towards diffuse BBC News 22 January, 2007, http://news.bbc.co.uk/2/hi/technology/6287181.stm; and ‘Geist: and participatory contributions may be a welcome innovation. Software piracy charges against us unfair’, The Star, May 9, 2010, http://www.thestar.com/ business/article/807097--geist-software-piracy-charges-against-canada-are-unfair’. Also see As McCann explains, one of the goals for the new Mediatheque is to improve the resolution Laura J. Murray ‘Protecting ourselves to death: Canada, copyright, and the Internet’, First of the video works for online viewing. 40 While video streaming standards do not exist per se, Monday, 9. 10 (2004), online : http://firstmonday.org/issues/issue9_10/murray/index.html and http://www.michaelgeist.ca/. 36. http://www.carfac.ca/. 37. This second life for video art works is situated between the two-year festival/gallery circuit and 38 See Geert Lovink, ‘Back from Gent–Notes on Memories of the Future’, net critique by Geert works deemed historical or rich in archival value, such as collections from the 1970s, is one Lovink, 26 June, 2010, http://networkcultures.org/wpmu/geert/2010/06/26/back-from-gent- worth exploring in more detail, as it constitutes the entirety of the Mediatheque video collection. notes-on-memories-of-the-future/. These works, flanked by assigned value periods, may point to one of the more important insights 39 See Tiziana Terranova, Network Culture: Politics for the Information Age. London: Pluto Press, about online distribution and showcasing. Through this, digital value could be defined as a 2004. concept that accounts for the various ‘lives’ of media such as video, and perhaps, attribute value 40 However, despite wanting a Mediatheque showcasing better quality versions of the works, there to these works in limbo–between these two periods. In this way, new and historical works online were no originals demanded of the Mediatheque project, and so the small Real Player format are might be stripped of the value of their scarcity, while works older than the festival circuit allows, what is left. This could simply mean that future works are showcased using a better format and but far from historical, could gain digital value online. resolution, and that older works be left as trace and showcase of the Mediatheque’s history. 144 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 145 Flash, HTML5, and other open video formats have greatly enriched the online (and mobile) RefeRenCes video sharing and viewing experience. Of course, better quality increases the risk that the Appadurai, Arjun. ‘Disjuncture and Difference in the Global Cultural Economy’, in M. Featherstone necessity and desire for a material collection and material circulation will be eradicated. The (ed.) Global Culture, London: Sage, 1990, pp. 295-310. pros and cons of unfettered distribution, the value of video works circulating online, and Archipel, ‘Memories of the Future’ June 25, 2010, copyright and artists’ fees are issues that were rather more understated in 2002. This shift is http://events.ibbt.be/en/archipelmemoriesofthefuture one clear example of the interlocking natures of technology with cultural, legal, and political Arondekar, Anjali. ‘Without a Trace: Sexuality and the Colonial Archive’, Journal of the History of ideals, worth serious attention in future studies. Sexuality, 14 (2005): 10-27. Artswatch, ‘SAW Launches Huge Website’, March 4, 2004, What has, and can, become of a project so ‘ahead of its time’ reveals a great deal about http://www.ottawaxpress.ca/visualarts/visualarts.aspx?iIDArticle=900. boyd, danah. ‘Taken Out of Context’, PhD Dissertation, University of California, Berkeley, 2008. the possibilities and limitations of independent repositories within particular social and his- Benkler, Yochai. The Wealth of Networks: How Social Production Transforms Markets and Freedom, torical contexts, such as that of the legacy of video art in Canada. 41 In retrospect, what was New Haven, Conn.: Yale University Press, 2006. Downloadable at www.benkler.org/wealth_of_ conceived of as an online archive in 2002 may not have met all necessary requirements. networks.php/Download_PDFs_of_the_book. Conversely, what may not have been an attempt to ‘make history’ in 2002 today seems a Canadian Heritage, ‘Canada’s New Government Supports Vidéographe’s Cultural Digitization remarkable feat for SAW Video. 42 Project’, 2007, http://www.pch.gc.ca/pc-ch/infoCntr/cdm-mc/index-eng.cfm?action= doc&DocIDCd=CR071130. Cumming, Laura. ‘Moving Images Stay in the Dark: Why are Video Artists so Reluctant to Show their Work on the Internet?’, Guardian U.K. online, 10 January, 2007, http://www.guardian.co.uk/artanddesign/artblog/2007/jan/10/movingimagesstayinthedark. Cvetkovich, Ann. ‘In the Archives of Lesbian Feelings: Documentary and Popular Culture’, Camera Obscura, 17 (2002): 107-147. Geist, Michael. ‘Preserving Printed and Digital Heritage’, BBC News 22 January, 2007, http://news. bbc.co.uk/2/hi/technology/6287181.stm. _____. ‘Geist: Software piracy charges against us unfair’, The Star, May 9, 2010, http://www.thestar. com/business/article/807097--geist-software-piracy-charges-against-canada-are-unfair. Gitelman, Lisa. Always Already New: Media, History and the Data of Culture, Cambridge, Mass.: MIT Press, 2006. Herrman, John. ‘First YouTube, Now Vimeo: How HTML5 Could Finally Kill Flash Video’, Gizmodo, January 21, 2010, http://gizmodo.com/5454115/first-youtube-now-vimeo-how-html5-could- finally-kill-flash-video. Hogan, Mél. ‘Cashing and Crashing the Mediatheque’, FlowTV.org, 21 May, 2010, http://flowtv.org/2010/05/caching-and-crashing-the-mediatheque-mel-hogan-concordia-university/. Kaplan, Janet A. ‘Flirtations with Evidence: The Factual and the Spurious Consort in the Works of The Atlas Group/Walid Raad’, Art in America, 92.9 (2004): 134-139. Lessig, Lawrence. ‘How creativity is being strangled by the law?’ TED Talks, posted 16 March, 2007, http://www.ted.com/index.php/talks/larry_lessig_says_the_law_is_strangling_ creativity.html. _____. ‘The Read-Write Internet’ in Lessig 2.0 blog, 17 January, 2006, http://www.lessig.org/blog/2006/01/the_readwrite_internet.html. _____. ‘Creatives Face a Closed Net’, Financial Times, 29 December, 2005, p.11, http://www.ft.com/cms/s/2/d55dfe52-77d2-11da-9670-0000779e2340.html. _____. Free Culture: How Big Media Uses Technology and the Law to Lock Down Culture and Control Creativity. London: Penguin, 2004. Lovink, Geert. ‘Back from Gent–Notes on Memories of the Future’, net critique by Geert Lovink, 26 June, 2010, http://networkcultures.org/wpmu/geert/2010/06/26/back-from-gent-notes-on-memo- ries-of-the-future/. 41 My point of departure for this issue is always the reflection posted here: Felix Stalder ‘Copyright moore, jake. ‘Brief: Matricules (parts 1 and 2) Database and archive project: Studio XX the first 10 dungeons and grey zones’ From: nettime-l Digest, Vol 7, Issue 10, sent: 15 April, 2008, http:// years’, DPI Online 7, 11 October, 2006, http://dpi.studioxx.org/demo/?q=fr/no/07/brief-matricules- www.nettime.org. database-and-archive-project-studio-xx-first-10-years. 42 In response to this, wayward.ca will showcase online for one month ten works from the Murray, Laura J. ‘Protecting Ourselves to Death: Canada, Copyright, and the Internet’ First Monday, Mediatheque project and a screening is scheduled for November 2010 at Groupe Intervention 9.10 (2004) http://firstmonday.org/issues/issue9_10/murray/index.html. Video (GIV) Montreal to discuss the future of the project. 146 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 147 Prelinger, Rick. ‘On the Virtues of Preexisting Material - A Manifesto’ Subject/Object, 9 November, ethIcaL pResentatIon of InDIGenous 2008. http://subjectobject.net/2008/11/09/on-the-virtues-of-preexisting-material-a-manifesto-by- rick-prelinger/. meDIa In the aGe of open VIDeo: Stalder, Felix. ‘Copyright Dungeons and Grey Zones’ nettime-l Digest, Vol. 7, Issue 10, 15 April, 2008. cuLtIVatInG coLLaBoRatIon, soVeReIGnty Terranova, Tiziana. Network Culture: Politics for the Information Age. London, Pluto Press, 2004. anD sustaInaBILIty teaGue schneIteR ‘When we are ancestors, we will be a product of our actions’. 1 We are in the midst of a pivotal moment for online video – the tools for creating and dissemi- nating video online are now prolific, and video sharing sites have encouraged an entire move- ment towards user-generated content. Content, tools and platforms continue to proliferate, making the world of online video one of significant and ongoing change. A recent Nielsen re- port released this year revealed that approximately 70% of global online consumers now watch online video. 2 As video creation and video sharing become ubiquitous, the web has become a battlefield, with the constant conflict typically framed as a struggle for digital freedom against digital censorship. Online video has created an ecology of uncharted openness; punctuated by the fact that it has become common for people to share and create videos without the relevant copyright permissions. Governments 3 and companies attempt to restrict informa- tion and unchecked usage on the web, while independent organizations fight for freedom of information, transparency and fair use. In an important victory for free culture advocates, the Electronic Frontier Foundation (EFF) this year won three exemptions to the Digital Millennium Copyright Act (DMCA), effectively ‘carving out new legal protections for consumers who modify their cell phones and artists who remix videos – people who, until now, could have been sued for their non-infringing or fair use activities’. 4 The workings of the net seem to require constant sparring between those in possession of distinctive ethical value-systems: proprietary vs. open 1. H oniana Te Puni Love & Neavin Broughton, ‘Tuku Reo, Tuku Mouri: Information technology in the strategic revitalisation of Te Reo Maori o Taranaki (Taranaki Maori dialect) in Aotearoa New Zealand’, Information Technologies and Indigenous Communities Symposium, Australian Institute of Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander Studies (AIATSI), Canberra, Australia, 2010. 2. ‘How People Watch – A Global Nielsen Consumer Report’, Nielsen Wire blog, 4 August, 2010. http://blog.nielsen.com/nielsenwire/global/report-how-we-watch-the-global-state-of- videoconsumption/. 3. A ccording to the OpenNet Initiative’s website: ‘Drawing on arguments that are often powerful and compelling such as “securing intellectual property rights,” “protecting national security,” “preserving cultural norms and religious values,” and “shielding children from pornography and exploitation,” many states are implementing extensive filtering practices to curb the perceived lawlessness of the medium’, About Filtering, OpenNet Initiative, http://opennet.net/about-filtering. 4. ‘EFF Wins New Legal Protections for Video Artists, Cell Phone Jailbreakers, and Unlockers: Rulemaking Fixes Critical DMCA Wrongs’, Electronic Frontier Foundation, 26 July, 2010, http:// www.eff.org/press/archives/2010/07/26. 148 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 149 source, intellectual property protection vs. public domain, stringent digital rights management corporate takeover and technological advancement – Indigenous groups are fighting to pre- vs. digital commons, and open vs. restricted access. serve cultures, languages, ways of life, and knowledge systems that differ dramatically from non-Indigenous forms. Continuing to fight a pervasive history of misrepresentation and in- In the midst of this sparring, the movement to embrace openness for digital tools for video stitutionalization of media on the part of museums and archives, Indigenous groups are not is off to a running start. In 2009, the Open Video Alliance, a ‘coalition of organizations and only reclaiming the means of production, but of preservation and presentation. The small individuals committed to the idea that the power of the moving image should belong to eve- and large-scale repatriation efforts undertaken by cultural institutions to return objects and ryone’ 5 held its inaugural gathering, with 800 attendees in person and 8,000 online partici- documentation to the Indigenous communities in which they were created are a testament pants. The 2010 conference saw 950 attendees, 160 presenters, and, again, an estimated to the importance of Indigenous people controlling and managing their own heritage mate- 8,000 viewers online. Also, in 2009, the Association for Moving Image Archivists initiated rials. 6 Some of this material, such as video recordings of sacred ceremonies, is not meant their first Open Source Committee, which focuses on developing open source solutions for to be viewed by non-initiated people either within or outside the Indigenous community. digital moving image preservation and presentation on the web. These efforts are evidence So, when museums and archives make efforts to digitize films recorded by anthropologists, of the increasing acknowledgement of the need to find answers to the vast range of often missionaries, scientists, photographers, or explorers and repatriate them to communities, if complex questions that emerge with online video technologies and shifts in practices of me- they make them accessible in ways that are counter to Indigenous knowledge formations, dia consumption. The fact that video distribution and presentation is increasingly migrating the same power imbalances can be reinforced. A long history of colonialism, bolstered via online, a medium which by nature encourages openness and sharing, is re-structuring the the control of media production and access, means that Indigenous and other marginalized processes of knowledge dissemination itself. Increasing access to media, as well as moves media must be self-managed. to create openness in coding and software that are behind video distribution online, are two important yet distinct sides of the same coin. However, in the midst of this opening, the rights Because it is ‘the commons’ 7 that decide what resources should be shared as a society, in of some internet users are being pushed to the side. accordance with what is assumed to be good for a generalized public, the principles that emerge from the movement towards openness online do not necessarily suit Indigenous Indigenous media – that is, media created by and about First Peoples – can raise issues that people, and their diverse ways of knowing and living. Within the rhetoric surrounding a video do not fit as easily into the typical dichotomy between ownership and openness. This poses commons is a universalist assumption that all media should be freely available to all users. questions about the full, or uncritical, embrace of openness. If it is not properly managed, According to researcher Kimberly Christen, co-developer of two innovative digital archives free, open, and highly mutable methods of video dissemination could have profound impacts designed around Indigenous protocols, ‘In their critique of the current “romance of the pub- upon Indigenous knowledge and media dissemination. In this article, I will mostly focus on lic domain”, legal scholars suggest that the prevalent commons talk, especially among the archival videos that depict traditional culture, documenting cultural tradition, language, and advocates of a digital commons, ignores the multiple disparities between those assumed to storytelling. It is important to note that these potentially culturally sensitive images and forms make up the commons’. 8 Christen goes on to point out that intellectual property regimes are distinct from the content produced by various Indigenous communities and individuals misrepresent the nature of knowledge allocation and distribution within Indigenous knowl- who are presently creating moving images. Nevertheless, the two forms converge in their edge systems. 9 Many Indigenous cultures abide by cultural protocols, forms of cultural ex- need to be self-managed and controlled by Indigenous practitioners. change, and knowledge management that can be significantly different from Western forms; for example these protocols may be collective, based on ‘systems of accountability’, 10 or The Age of Open[ing] Video connected to the land. For some Australian Aboriginal groups, certain knowledge, stories, The attempts to create openness on the web – open sharing, open remixing, open networks, songs, dances, and ceremonies are only meant for initiated members of the community, so open democracy, open content, open licenses, and ‘the commons’ – may automatically seem that knowledge is classified according to the groupings of gender, age, and level of initiation. like ethical practices, as they work in the interest of universal access to all human knowledge. However, when we take into account that there are, in fact, many diverse cultures – espe- cially traditional and Indigenous cultures – struggling to maintain their distinct knowledge 6. Institutions such as the Australian Institute of Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander Studies, systems, which are engrained in distinctive cultural values and endangered languages, the Australia’s National Film and Television Archive, and the Smithsonian Museum of the American idea of entering all knowledge into a vast soup appears more problematic, for much of the Indian, are beginning to acknowledge the traditional owners of the material they hold in their cultural context and tools for cultural interpretation are lost. There is potential for distinct collections. They are doing so by small and large-scale physical object and digital repatriation cultural practices to become blurred, and for lack of context to lead to misinterpretation and schemes, as well as working with Tribal advisors and collaborators. even denigration of Indigenous cultures. In this era of rapid change – of climate change, 7. I am using the term ‘commons’ in the sense of universal participation. 8. Kimberly Christen, ‘Gone Digital: Aboriginal Remix and the Cultural Commons’, International Journal of Cultural Property 12.3 (2005): 332-333. 9. Christen, ‘Gone Digital’, p. 333. 5. See the Open Video Alliance’s ‘About’ page: http://openvideoalliance.org/about_ova/. 10. C hristen, ‘Gone Digital’, p. 333. 150 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 151 There is also a cultural tradition of not speaking the name of loved ones who have died. 11 supports cultural perspectives’. 13 To take this point further, it might be argued that video and Additiona lly, the languages of many Indigenous groups do not have written forms, or are databases, being based less on the written word and more on oral and visual ways of know- embedded within so much culturally specific knowledge that they are difficult to translate ing, are particularly suited to Indigenous knowledge representation and dissemination. The or make meaningful to outsiders. Thus, when we acknowledge the diversity of knowledge database allows for the organization of information in new and multiple ways, and thus allows systems, and that those systems need to be differently and separately managed, the idea Indigenous knowledge to be structured and presented on its own terms – whether visu- of sharing everything becomes not only unattainable, but undesirable. The need for cultural ally, or according to metadata fields based on Indigenous knowledge. Additionally, improved distinctiveness, cultural rights and cultural protocols suggests the need for coordinated, spe- metadata, enhanced by users with specific cultural knowledge, protects material against cific strategies for video presentation that may not fit harmoniously within the overwhelming misinterpretation and misappropriation. outcry for universal openness. Not everything is meant to be shared, remixed, or turned into a meme. As the landscape of Indigenous video online is constantly in flux, we can ask the following questions: How can we make use of an ecology of openness while at the same time protect- It is perilous to assume that, since mainstream culture seems to be slowly migrating towards ing Indigenous knowledges? In upholding protocols and restricting cultural information for an acceptance of universal openness, all content will or should be Creative Commons, freely specific groups, can we at the same time denounce censorship? How can we make an argu- accessible, usable, shared, or remixed. However, as media tools and use proliferate both for ment for Indigenous peoples (or ethnic groups) being able to maintain culture (by keeping Indigenous and non-Indigenous peoples, these protocols for viewing are shifting in relation certain parts of it for initiated members of the community) in ways that do not work against to the technology. Indigenous online video demonstrates that cultural tradition and protocols universal access to knowledge? Is open Indigenous video an oxymoron? The landscape of are constantly in Flux, as are the digital commons themselves. To assume that technology open video presents us with the possibility of offering Indigenous media on its own, ever- is constantly evolving towards the future, whilst traditional cultures are in stasis, is fictitious. shifting terms. This article is only a small contribution to what must be a widespread, collabo- According to Christen, rative, inventive, and ongoing discussion between all stakeholders in online video. It seeks to open up critical areas of discussion about technical and cultural protocols of openness, The allure of studying indigenous uses of new technologies lies in the juxtaposition property, and propriety. of two seemingly contradictory elements: the past-oriented, romantic notion of indig- enous peoples who are somehow in modernity but not of it, set against the future- The Proliferation of Indigenous Media oriented, equally romantic notion of new technologies as the signifier of a progressive, Indigenous communities and individuals have been engaging in media creation for decades, fast-paced, global modernity... .For a contradiction to be imaginable, it must function for more reasons than can be counted. Video has been used as a tool for human rights strug- in a given set of standards and practices: this one says that indigenous people cannot gles, artistic expression, cultural and language preservation, and for delivering forth Native be simultaneously traditional and modern, technologically savvy and politically astute, voices to and between local and global arenas. Despite the long history of media creation materially oriented and authentically indigenous. That logic is wrong. 12 from countless communities, Indigenous issues continue to be marginalized within public debate, resulting in unequal distribution of resources and even human rights violations. Ad- Online Indigenous media portals and digital archives have the potential to activate the simul- ditionally, interviews; recordings of ceremonies, stories, songs and dances; documentaries; taneity of tradition and ongoing change within contemporary Indigenous culture. When the fiction films; video art; testimonies; animation; new media art, and many other forms of media tools are accessible, audiovisual objects such as videos, audio, and photos which document creation, whether created by anthropologists in the 1890s or by Indigenous video artists to- traditional (and ever-evolving) cultural practices and language can be easily shared online or day, all have an important place in the history of moving images that relate to Indigenous peo- offline by web-based technologies, thereby empowering and enfranchising Indigenous indi- ples, as well as the history of moving images more generally. These might include interviews, viduals and communities. As David Nathan notes, the online environment ‘has reconstituted recordings of ceremonies, stories, songs and dances, documentaries, fiction films, video art, the balance between visual, oral and textual modes of presenting information in a way that testimonies, animation, new media art, or other forms of media creation. To leave this content out of the collective memory, simply because of its politically charged or complicated nature, would be yet another iteration of colonialism. In most cases, material that is not appropriate for public display (which is usually not content created by Indigenous artists, but rather visual 11. But with the advent of recording technologies and now new digital technologies, this practice continues to shift. For more on this, please see: ‘On Not Looking: the Ethics of Aesthetics in Online Exhibits’, Invited presentation as part of the University of Rochester’s Visual and Cultural Studies Program’s conference, Visual and Cultural Studies the Next 20 years, Rochester, NY, 13. David Nathan, quoted in Martin Nakata, ‘Indigenous Knowledge and the Cultural Interface: October 2, 2009. Underlying Issues at the Intersection of Knowledge and Information Systems’, IFLA Journal, 28 12. Christen, ‘Gone Digital’, p. 318. (2002): 287. 152 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 153 images taken by anthropologists or researchers since the time of contact), 14 still has a need [Open] Indigenous Video to be preserved and made accessible to communities themselves. Within the more specific contest of online video, the seemingly inherent and at times over- valued concept of openness has important ethical implications for Indigenous content. Part However, as the distribution of Indigenous media is becoming more and more common, the of the mission of the newly formed Open Video Alliance is to facilitate the creation of ‘a landscape seems to be shifting. The scores of Indigenous individuals, collectives and com- more decentralized, diverse, competitive, accessible, interoperable, and innovative future munities who are creating content more prolifically than ever before do not only have access of video’. 17 The Open Video Alliance, a collective venture between an ad-hoc group of or- to more avenues of distribution in the growing number of festivals and events centred around ganizations dedicated to fostering the growth of open video, including the Yale Information Indigenous media, 15 but also in the emerging use of online media. One historic yet recent Society Project at Yale Law School, Kaltura, who are the developers of the world’s first full example of this emerging use of online video took place in 2008 when independent Inuit film open source online video platform, the Participatory Culture Foundation, who are the creators production company Isuma Productions went online with their interactive multimedia plat- of the open source Miro internet video player, and iCommons, hope to contribute to a much form IsumaTV. 16 The platform was created out of a need by Inuit, Aboriginal, Métis and other needed shift toward greater access and the free and open use of media in everyday life. In First Nations film-makers to have independent means of distributing their work. Inequitable the context of Indigenous video online, the recent emergence of the concept of open video access to national distribution and broadcast licensing for Inuit or Aboriginal-language films and its defining principles – such as combating censorship and upholding ‘universal acces- in Canada makes it difficult, if not impossible, to have more films financed or produced. Isu- sibility’ – have important implications for Indigenous content, because of the aforementioned maTV’s multimedia platform for global Indigenous media, has a variety of content, function- variety of knowledge systems and cultural protocols, which differ greatly depending on the alities, and projects. It allows users not only to record, store and present content, but to share community in discussion. Critical issues emerge when considering the potential free and and create an active community around Indigenous knowledges, languages, experiences, open distribution of Indigenous online video content, including issues of the sacred, safety opinions, ways of life, and around issues that traverse the local and the global. Once called and security (especially when media tools are used during times of civil unrest), and Indig- a ‘YouTube for Indigenous media’, it is now a trusted repository of important Indigenous enous intellectual property differences. language, cultural and political content, which in its first fifteen months had 7.5 million hits from over 40 countries. IsumaTV is innovative, in that it provides free tools for users to upload These issues are highlighted in the case of images taken without permission which also vio- multimedia content posted to channels based on the categories of community, organization, late Indigenous cultural protocols, such as films of sacred cultural ceremonies recorded by artist, issue, or project, among others. anthropologists, or pictures of deceased persons that are too ‘sorrowful’ 18 to view. Images of such a sensitive nature require a media landscape that provides autonomous control over Although IsumaTV’s Inuit and other First Nations users seem to be more interested in public this content to those pictured, or their relatives and ancestors, especially for the goal of mak- access and openness than in private or limited access, the platform also has the capacity to ing positive cultural or community use out of problematic material. The cultural, political and make any information private. This capacity is only available to people who are designated ethical dilemmas of moving images and their potential consequences demand understand- ‘members’ of a channel: private channels allow information to be ‘open’ to a specific com- ing from online video practitioners. Thus, they might conceive of ways that open practices munity of users but ‘closed’ to all other users. IsumaTV also offers tools to share content might help to actually expand cultural sovereignty, increase awareness in the field of online within the general public, or with a community of choice. Furthermore, IsumaTV is working video, assist projects in becoming more sustainable, and enable such powerful modes of on hybrid combinations of online and offline means of distribution, such as using local server sharing and collaboration to encourage wider culturally and epistemologically sensitive ac- networks to make sure that Indigenous people are able to access content in poorly connected cess to Indigenous content. areas. IsumaTV’s moves to create increased openness via broadband solutions that improve access and allow users to define their own sets of openness demonstrates one way of nego- Somewhat surprisingly, upon its birth, the open video movement had already begun to be a tiating the tensions that exist between access and restriction. part of the conversation surrounding ethics and Indigenous content. The 2009 Open Video 17. Open Video Alliance public wiki, http://openvideoalliance.org/wiki/index.php?title=Some_ 14. A good example of this is when ceremonies are recorded without permission. One notable principles_for_open_video. exception is in the situation of Aboriginal Australian visual media, images of individuals who have 18. While it’s true that images of the dead can also be sorrowful in a western context, in those passed away become too painful to view, regardless of how the images were taken. contexts this does not usually restrict their showing. However, in Aboriginal and Torres Strait 15. I n 2009, Toronto’s imagineNATIVE Film + Media Art Fesitval, now considered the world’s largest Islander communities, seeing an image of or speaking the name of a deceased person is usually and most prolific indigenous film festival, had a record number of attendees: 11,561 people in not done out of respect, and because of an overwhelming feeling of pain felt by the grieving total attended festival events. Information from Violet Chum (Festival Assistant), e-mail message family. Many films in Australia are required to have a title card warning Aboriginal and Torres to author, February 26, 2010. Strait Islanders to ‘use caution viewing this film, as it may contain images or voices of dead 16. I sumaTV: www.isuma.tv. persons’, an act of respect for their cultural views. 154 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 155 Conference, in conjunction with the Open Video Alliance, hosted a panel entitled ‘Human This lack of media infrastructure, when combined with the remoteness of communities, has Rights and Indigenous Media: Dilemmas, Challenges and Opportunities’. An introduction garnered some interest from researchers and even film-makers (such as those at IsumaTV), was given by WITNESS Hub Manager Sameer Padania regarding the intersection of open who are able to make a case for national and international philanthropic and university funding video with ethical concerns relating to human rights, and more specifically to Indigenous and resources. As a result of these partnerships, a number of extra-institutional digital places/ rights. In the context of human rights video documentation, Padania raised the question archives for cultural heritage preservation have been emerging in the last few years, especially of whether a culture of openness can be supported when it comes to concerns of consent, in Australia and North America. Culturally appropriate databases based on Indigenous knowl- dignity, representation, and security for Indigenous communities. Subsequently, NYU’s Faye edge systems have been created, built, and maintained both online and offline, in collabo- Ginsburg spoke about the movement of media technologies into Indigenous communities, ration with archival professionals, information scientists, anthropologists and programmers. and the effectiveness of video for visibility, such as the use of camera by Indigenous groups Many of these projects are increasingly open source, demonstrating the recognition of the as protection by recording injustice and mistreatment. However, she also acknowledged the need for sharing the tools that have been created specifically for Indigenous cultural heritage danger of open video when it comes to cultural protocols that vary between Indigenous com- management, allowing an open system for creating the structure of ownership. These efforts munities. As a first step, Ginsburg recommended conversation about what is ethically accept- have come at a time when there is an increasing awareness on the part of cultural institutions able and what is not. Ideas regarding cultural protocols are proliferating, with the interest in that Indigenous content belongs to its cultural owners, including a large number of repatriation ethics of presentation garnering interest and support. Quite a few academics and practition- efforts. However, like any other media, the magnitude of content exceeds the limited techno- ers are focusing on this area, including Kimberley Christen, and the Association of Tribal Ar- logical infrastructure possessed by many Indigenous communities, especially if there is no chives, Libraries, and Museums, including their associated events. The issue has also been funded archivist or researcher to assist them. For most Indigenous communities, once content addressed in the cultural protocols developed in collaboration with the Australian Institute of is repatriated, a lack of further resources prevents them from making it accessible. Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander Studies 19 and the Society of American Archivists. The most ethically and epistemologically robust way to preserve Indigenous heritage is through The Problem of Access community collaboration, especially in the design of the infrastructure and contextualization of Online public domain and open access information resources, knowledge, and media are the content. This is the case, for example, in projects developed by engineers, designers, eth- proliferating. And yet, despite the intense focus upon openness – open content and open nographers, and developers - including Ramesh Srinivasan, Kimberly Christen and her team, source – access to online video is actually closed in a number of ways to many potential as well as others. 22 These innovative projects have been created out of the need for people Indigenous viewers, users and sharers. Currently, those most frequently accessing Indig- to access content in culturally appropriate ways. They illustrate how both offline and online enous media online are often researchers or non-native people with high-speed broadband models are able to be maintained whilst upholding ethical and culturally appropriate presenta- or satellite connections. Many Indigenous people living in remote settings do not have access tion of media content. In 2003, development began for Mukurtu Wumpurrarni-kari Archive, an to adequate bandwidth to stream video at high-speed, and those in rural or urban settings offline digital archive housed at the Nyinkka Nyunyu Art and Culture Centre in Tennant Creek, sometimes do not have adequate access to computers. In Igloolik, a town with a population Northern Territory, Australia. The archive allows content to be uploaded, managed, shared of about 1,500 in the remote Nunavut territory in the Canadian Arctic, maximum download and annotated through a specific set of cultural protocols designated by the Warumungu speeds of 762 kb/sec are available at $400 Canadian per month: a rate that is 65 times community. As a browser-based digital archive for multimedia content that emphasizes ‘ac- slower than in Montreal or Ottawa at five times the price. And unfortunately, low bandwidth cess’, ‘accountability’, and ‘cultural protocols’ that drive the way people interact with content, northern communities who are already 365 times behind cities like Ottawa or Montreal in Mukurtu is highly successful in its use of Warumungu cultural protocols to facilitate access cost-per-kilobit see the size of this gap grow every year. 20 Limited technological infrastruc- to content. In using those protocols, the Mukurtu Wumpurrarni-kari website explains, ‘the ture on reservations and in remote communities means that potential users and user com- archive mirrors a system of accountability in which many people engage in the responsible munities attain limited benefit from innovations in online video. These same limitations also reproduction and transmission of cultural knowledge and materials’. 23 Its database structure, restrict offline, community-centred uses of video. 21 user-friendly visual interface, and interactive features (such as a profile-based content delivery 19. T he Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander Protocols for Libraries, Archives and Information 22. See the project descriptions in: Ramesh Srinivasan, ‘Tribal Peace – Preserving the Cultural Services was published in 1995 by ALIA. It was endorsed by the Aboriginal and Torres Heritage of Dispersed Native American Communities’. Paper presented at the biennale Strait Islander Library and Information Resource Network (ATSILIRN), has been looked to in International Cultural Heritage Informatics Conference: Digital Culture & Heritage, Haus der developing other protocols globally, and is available in full online: http://www1.aiatsis.gov.au/ Kulturne der Welt, Berlin, August 31-September 2, 2004, www.archimuse.com/publishing/ atsilirn/protocols.atsilirn.asn.au/index0c51.html. ichim04/4763_Srinivasan.pdf; Kimberley Christen et al., ‘Digital Dilemmas, Cultural Solutions: 20. N orman Cohn, DIAMA: Digitizing the Inuit and Aboriginal Media Archive 2008-09 Final Report, the Mukurtu Wumpurrarni-kari Archive’, project description, 29 January, 2008,. funding report, 1 August, 2009, p. 29. www.mukurtuarchive.org/doc/mukurtu_press_release_02_08.doc. 21. Such as content management systems that are created only for local, community use. 23. M ukurtu Wumpurrarni-kari Archive, http://www.mukurtuarchive.org/about.html. 156 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 157 system, and user-generated content groupings) allow users to navigate through content and Northern Territory Library System, and the Sisters of St John of God in Broome, have begun arrange items according to their own categories, add tags and comments, and make their own to use the Ara Irititja software in order to organize their own content. access copies. These systems, by being restricted to members of the community, allow users to form their own safe public spaces around media content. To further its reach, this year the Ara Irititja project is launching server/browser-based knowl- edge management software that will be available for purchase to other communities interna- Extending upon the software created for Mukurtu, Christen and her collaborators subse- tionally, and adaptable to their specific needs. The purchaser of the license will have control quently created the Plateau Peoples’ Web Portal (PPWP). Instead of a browser-based offline over software development, enabling extensive changes to be made to the interface, to data digital archive, PPWP is online, as the Plateau tribes are physically located across three entry fields and to functionality, according to the specific needs of the community. For in- states, and because the material users wanted access to was held at regional and national terested communities to make major adaptations to Ara Irititja, they of course need to have collecting institutions. This is an online digital archive space that allows Plateau peoples’ funding allotted to pay a programmer, train for community maintenance, and ideally to sup- cultural materials, which are held in Washington State University’s special collections and in port members of the community, especially elders, to advise about cultural protocols. With the Museum of Anthropology, to be curated by Plateau Tribes. 24 The PPWP website notes the right support, communities will be able to make serious graphic and structural changes, that the software, using extensive administration features, provides each tribe with ‘control as well as create individual ‘profiles’ under such headings as ‘people’, ‘flora’, ‘fauna’, ‘places’, over their content, narratives, tribal knowledge, metadata fields and categories’ so that ‘Tribal ‘events’, ‘activities’, ‘cosmological narratives’, ‘stories’, and ‘historical stories’. These headings administrators and tribal users can add additional knowledge to the portal materials on an can be deleted, added and re-named to suit the needs of any community. The new software on-going basis through the dynamic back-end features’. 25 Collaborators involved in both also allows content to be categorized as ‘open’, ‘sensitive’, or ‘sorrow’, according to cultural projects are currently developing the Mukurtu software tool into an open source, standards- protocols. And since the updated Ara Irititja is web-ready, content can be curated, and ‘open’ based archive and content management tool geared to the specific cultural protocols and content may go online (but not necessarily be made ‘public’), 29 whilst sensitive content will intellectual property needs of indigenous communities globally. 26 remain available only to community members where the software is running. The new soft- ware also enables archive users to annotate material with text or even with audio or video Another innovative project created out of the need for specific cultural needs is Ara Irititja. comments. This new functionality removes the necessity for the written word, and allows Ara Irititja (‘stories from a long time ago’) is a community-based digital archive and software users to record their knowledge in their own words and language. This has the potential to initiative designed at the request of Pitjantjatjara / Yankunytjatjara (Anangu) peoples in South encourage not only knowledge about multimedia content, but increase the archive of video Australia. 27 Officially commenced in 1994 to repatriate ‘lost’ material for Anangu, and to and audio material of endangered Indigenous languages. make it available and participatory at the community and personal level, the project has effectively drawn family and community members of all ages together, through the use of All three of these web-based archives for multimedia materials – IsumaTV, Mukurtu and Ara multimedia content. The innovative software is presented visually, organized according to Irititja – exemplify the use of web-based database technologies and customized informational Indigenous standards, in native languages wherever possible, and protects and/or restricts architectures to provide digital archives that foreground user-centred design, networking, and access to private and sensitive materials, such as images of people who have passed away, sharing potential. Though the software used for these projects is not specific to video, it rep- and information relating to men’s and women’s business. 28 Over time, other Aboriginal com- resents some interesting moves toward increased sovereignty and collaboration using web- munities and related organizations, such as the Koorie Heritage Trust in Melbourne, the based technologies. It also demonstrates how internet access and online knowledge-sharing can contribute directly to Indigenous livelihoods and can actually be productively aligned with traditional Indigenous knowledge systems and protocols. Though adaptations to the architec- 24. P lateau tribes are the Indigenous people of the Plateau or Intermontane region of western ture may still require the assistance of a software developer, both the Ara Irititja and Mukurtu Canada and the United States. archive projects are moving towards the development of tools that are economically sustain- 25. Plateau Peoples’ Web Portal, http://libarts.wsu.edu/plateaucenter/portalproject/design.html. able, open source, or both, and thus may help serve global Indigenous communities. These 26. C heck the Mukurtu website for updates regarding the new software tool: http://www. efforts also demonstrate how local, community-focused projects are opening themselves up mukurtuarchive.org/. 27. For more Information see, www.irititja.com. John Dallwitz, Douglas Mann, Sally Scales, Sabra to more global forms of collaboration. Thorner; Dora Dallwitz. ‘Ara Irititja’, Information Technologies and Indigenous Communities Symposium, Australian Institute of Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander Studies (AIATSIS), To summarize, as more and more Indigenous media makers create content, and as muse- Canberra, Australia, July 14, 2010. Video documentation of the event available on the AIATSIS ums, archives, and other cultural institutions rapidly decentralize their collections and ac- website: http://www.aiatsis.gov.au/research/symposia/Digi10/presenters.htm. 28. This cultural protocol has to do with Men and Women having different roles in society and in ceremonies; these roles vary from language group to language group. Some ceremonies are 29. If a community chooses, open content can be designated by senior elders or other knowledge for men only, others are for women only, and both men and women have their own particular holders. The new Ara Irititja will most likely be on an intranet - an online network that is kept Spiritual and sacred objects: http://www.indigenousaustralia.info/culture.html. private by multiple levels of security. 158 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 159 knowledge Indigenous protocols and rights to ownership through repatriation, there is an conference, as well as the development of the Native American Archives Roundtable for the increasing need for tools and strategies to make fruitful use of the growing amount of content. Society of American Archivists (SAA), and their subsequent work with supporters 32 on the In fact, the moves of Ara Irititja, Mukurtu and IsumaTV to think creatively about how their Protocols for Native American Archival Materials. 33 However, as protocols and standards particular uses of technology might serve Indigenous communities globally brings to mind addressing Native American material are neither widely known or used by the moving image two Inuit principles in particular: Qanuqtuurunnarniq 30 is the concept of being resourceful archives or online video community, nor specifically focused on online moving image mate- to solve problems; Piliriqatigiingniq is the concept of collaborative relationships or working rial, there is still a gap to be filled, especially for cultural institutions that have holdings that together for a common purpose. In the digital era, Indigenous peoples and their advocates relate or belong to Indigenous groups who would like to make the material accessible. are thinking resourcefully about future pathways, and exploring new methods and technolo- gies to enable cultural and linguistic revitalization. However, the networking and knowledge-sharing capabilities that the web affords do provide the opportunity to develop numerous partnerships between activists, advocates, research- Indigenous communities have used video and online technologies to respond to challenges ers, archivists, elders, technologists, community members, and programmers. In order for in representation, cultural preservation, language endangerment, and other political and cul- Indigenous peoples to reclaim culture on the net, the new sets of video tools and practices tural goals. The aforementioned projects are examples of how openness in sharing solutions being developed need to be more broadly accessible. To develop these tools and practices, it and technologies can have positive effects for Indigenous knowledge, cultural sustainability, is necessary to encourage the development of a network which would draw together all con- and cultural revival. However, although significant progress has been made, these efforts stituents and stakeholders from the open video movement: Indigenous media, (Indigenous) are dispersed and disconnected, and their impact has arguably been limited in comparison intellectual property, information science, and Indigenous libraries and archives. 34 to the vast amount of global Indigenous-related video. The lack of a global alliance, shared tools, and standardized cultural and technical protocols that are able to cater to non-standard Based upon the formal experiments and technical successes of recent local projects, the Indigenous cultural protocols is impeding further development. In order to make use of the network would most likely have three essential features. A central node would exist as an technologies available, and to protect Indigenous cultural protocols and ways of knowing, the online platform and have a channel structure to allow the formation of different knowledge world of online video needs to invest in collaborations that will facilitate, develop and share communities/committees surrounding various issues, such as intellectual property and best sovereign and sustainable solutions. The benefits of congregating (if not entirely unifying) dis- practice. Secondly, a blog containing information on Indigenous protocols for archiving and persed efforts into an alliance or network of interested parties (under Indigenous control with access would expand in-depth knowledge on special interest areas to media workers de- non-Indigenous and institutional supports or supporters from the online video and moving im- veloping local projects, and providing close-up snapshots of project achievements and in- age archiving worlds) are great. There is also a need for an open source management system novations worldwide, as well as advocating for varied cultural needs. And finally, a series of or tool for Indigenous video that is adaptation-ready. The Mukurtu team’s development of the training events and conferences would expand and share knowledge on a variety of topics. new Mukurtu software, which will be an open source standards-based archive tool for global In addition, members of the network could write guest blogs for YouTube’s politics blog, in use, shows that significant steps are being taken, but they require further support if the diverse order to share the importance of Indigenous ethics and online video, just as WITNESS and communities across the globe are to benefit. Sustaining these projects is difficult, as they rely YouTube have formed a partnership to increase awareness of the role of online video in on governmental, philanthropic and university funding, which can be sporadic and limited. human rights advocacy. 35 These efforts would increase cultural understanding of issues per- taining to online video, and the use of open technologies to achieve cultural goals for com- Unfortunately, in the fields of moving image archiving or online video, the knowledge needed to digitally archive and make Indigenous heritage accessible is not yet widespread. 31 In North America, a strong start has been made with the aforementioned panels at the Open Video 32. T he development of the protocols was also supported by the Society of the Council for the Preservation of Anthropological Records, the American Indian Library Association, the International Indigenous Librarians Forum, and the American Association for State and Local History. 30. C hris Corrigan, ‘What is Inuit Qaujimajatuqangit?’, 16 August, 2010, http://chriscorrigan.com/ 33. T he Protocols were devised from different professional ethical codes from the Society of parkinglot/?p=2875. American Archivists, American Association for State and Local History, American Anthropological 31. A blogger named ‘Russell’ on the archiving blog Records Junkie seems unaware of indigenous Association, and the Oral History Association; a number of significant international declarations epistemological differences, and therefore does not see why indigenous content should ever be recognizing Indigenous rights, including several now issued by the United Nations; and the under restricted access: ‘No one, Native American tribe or not, has any legal right to force the ground-breaking Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander Protocols for Libraries, Archives and archives to limit access to the materials ... I do not believe that cultural awareness or sensitivity Information Services. to cultural norms or mores should dictate 1) who owns materials from different cultures or 2) 34. Such as those involved in the American Indian Library Association; Tribal Archives, Libraries, and who controls access and use to these materials’. See: Russell, ‘Who Owns Cultural Materials’, Museums; and the Global Indigenous Television Network. Records Junkie, blog posted 30 January, 2010, http://recordsjunkie.blogspot.com/2010/01/who- 35. S ee: ‘Protecting yourself, your subjects and your human rights videos on YouTube’, 21 June, controls-cultural-materials.html. 2010, http://youtube-global.blogspot.com/2010/06/protecting-yourself-your-subjects-and.html. 160 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe ColleCtion Case studies 161 munities with distinctive cultural needs, as well as partnering communities with the software RefeRenCes tools and programmers that are most suited to them. The network would be a way foster and ‘About Filtering’. OpenNet Initiative. http://opennet.net/about-filtering. integrate Indigenous knowledge into the field of online video. Although thus far its efforts have Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander Protocols for Libraries, Archives and Information Services, http:// concentrated more on open access to media, the existing global Indigenous media network www1.aiatsis.gov.au/atsilirn/protocols.atsilirn.asn.au/index0c51.html. IsumaTV could be the perfect online site for gathering those with the specialized knowledge Christen, Kimberley, et al. ‘Digital Dilemmas, Cultural Solutions: the Mukurtu Wumpurrarni-kari and common goals that are necessary for more epistemologically sensitive, collaborative, Archive’, project description, 29 January, 2008. www.mukurtuarchive.org/doc/mukurtu_press_re- sovereign, and sustainable access to Indigenous video. lease_02_08.doc. Christen, Kimberly. ‘Gone Digital: Aboriginal Remix and the Cultural Commons’, International Journal While it might be difficult to find the additional labour required to maintain this global network, of Cultural Property 12 (2005): 315-345. Cohn, Norman. DIAMA: Digitizing the Inuit and Aboriginal Media Archive 2008-09 Final Report, fund- in the long run the network would prevent unachievable and under-resourced ‘reinventions ing report, 1 August, 2009, 1-14. of the wheel’ at the local and global levels. Although such an alliance might appear to threat- Corrigan, Chris. ‘What is Inuit Qaujimajatuqangit?’, 16 August, 2010, http://chriscorrigan.com/ en the sovereignty of individual communities, archives and networks, the proposed network parkinglot/?p=2875. would allow distinct cultural groups to maintain their own protocols, while sharing methods, ‘EFF Wins New Legal Protections for Video Artists, Cell Phone Jailbreakers, and Unlockers: Rulemak- tools, systems, and best practices. The value of such a network would be its independence ing Fixes Critical DMCA Wrongs’, Electronic Frontier Foundation, 26 July, 2010, http://www.eff.org/ from anyone institutional context. As part of the network, each organization could choose their press/archives/2010/07/26. degree of involvement and collaboration with other groups, individuals and communities. Hodgin, Rick. ‘60% of world’s population now has cell phone, highest ever’, TG Daily, 2 March, 2009, http://www.tgdaily.com/trendwatch-features/41586-60-of-worlds-population-now-has-cell-phone- highest-ever. Conclusion ‘How People Watch – A Global Nielsen Consumer Report’. Nielsen Wire blog, 4 August, 2010. http:// If we understand the age of open[ing] video as one of increased and improved access, it blog.nielsen.com/nielsenwire/global/report-how-we-watch-the-global-state-of-video-consumption/. becomes possible to imagine open video and Indigenous video existing harmoniously. Is Nakata, Martin. ‘Indigenous Knowledge and the Cultural Interface: Underlying Issues at the Intersec- openness inherently a public good, or does it depend on the way openness is instigated? As tion of Knowledge and Information Systems’, IFLA Journal, 28 (2002): 281-290. content, tools and platforms continue to proliferate, the world of online video can adapt to Scales, Sally. ‘Ara Irititja and Beyond’, Information Technologies and Indigenous Communities Sym- meet the needs of Indigenous communities. This is especially necessary because the needs posium, Australian Institute of Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islandes Studies (AIATSIS), Canberra, Australia, July 13, 2010. of such communities are neither uniform, nor perfectly conducive to open standards per se. Srinivasan, Ramesh. ‘Tribal Peace – Preserving the Cultural Heritage of Dispersed Native American In fact, they are incredibly diverse: protocols do not only differ from community to commu- Communities’, paper presented at the biennale International Cultural Heritage Informatics Confer- nity, but from family to family. The needs and expressions of knowledge, tradition, and living ence: Digital Culture & Heritage. Haus der Kulturne der Welt, Berlin, 31 August-2 September, cultures are constantly evolving. But as the possibilities of web-based customizable tools 2004. www.archimuse.com/publishing/ichim04/4763_Srinivasan.pdf. evolve with them, Indigenous people will have more power to decide what becomes openly accessible to the public, thereby exerting continuous self-determined ownership of their own histories and cultures. Online video practitioners have a cultural responsibility to respect and nurture the fact that Indigenous cultural heritage ultimately belongs to the knowledge keepers, elders, communities, and individuals who have maintained their own systems of knowledge for thousands of years. Despite constant battles for funding, the aforementioned multimedia Indigenous heritage projects have devised creative solutions in order to address the needs for Indigenous self- determination and sovereignty. Collaborative and participatory activities around video and technology have the ability to stimulate social, cultural, political and economic growth in In- digenous individuals, groups, communities, and cultures. However, organizational and struc- tural models of collaboration need to be developed to give critical (in both senses of the term) support to unstable open content creation, and the ideals and realities of access. Developing technical and cultural protocols for such a distinct, diverse, and critical set of content as on- line Indigenous video will require that we extend available tools to those who do not currently have access to them. In order to achieve ethical openness, we must invest in an online video ecosystem that cultivates collaboration, sovereignty, and sustainability. 162 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 163 the VIDeo aGenDa In southeast asIa, thodoxy; Malaysian bloggers are forming alliances to defend their new public sphere against oR, ‘DIGItaL, so not DIGItaL’ government intimidation and corporate media interests. Yet, the extent to which these devel- opments might differ from those in other places remains to be seen. DaVID teh Networked art, meanwhile, remains a fringe activity, barely visible in most of the region. Why have artists not taken to the web as a native medium? The reasons are diverse, and vary greatly from place to place. Art schools, where they exist, are dominated by modernist para- digms (as in Thailand and the Philippines) under which even video has yet to achieve much In the last decade, increasing access to digital video (DV) technology has transformed inde- respectability or investment, let alone net art. Where new media have been prioritized, as in pendent film practices in Southeast Asia. Not surprisingly, commentaries on the profusion of Malaysia, policies strongly emphasize their use for vocational training. And in other places, DV have tended to highlight the new conditions of production – the ‘democratizing’ effect of access to the requisite bandwidth – to say nothing of web literacy – is still a privilege enjoyed ready access to cameras and desktop editing software – or the new landscape of distribution by few. So while the region as yet has no network video aesthetic, this is not to say there are emerging from piracy, the proliferation of festivals, and online networking. Both phenomena no video networks. Artists and other video-makers are using the web assiduously for com- serve to make indie film much more visible in the region, and beyond it. But the aesthetics munity building, research and inspiration, documentation and debate, and to connect with involved with this new DV activity are seldom the focus of critical attention. This oversight other artists and new audiences at home and abroad. Indeed, this social dimension could be may be forgivable, considering the long shadow that older, pre-digital film aesthetics still cast the more telling – in some countries, class and social histories can be seen to have shaped over the field of moving images. Indeed, the most obvious tropes of a (Western) digital aes- the medium’s role in contemporary culture more than technical, industrial or art histories. thetic – hypermedia, interactivity, recombinatory or network aesthetics – are largely absent. Indonesia’s strong activist and alternative media networks are a case in point with their roots So what are the characteristics of digital video-making in Southeast Asia? How do they differ stretching back through the nation’s birth in the 1940s and into the colonial era. 1 Their from other places? And how might these differences inform our understanding of what DV is, resurgence during the 1980s and 1990s provides an important template for today’s video or could be, in a global context? networks, where artistic and activist modes often merge. By contrast, in Thailand, where media activism has had less purchase on the public sphere, it has also remained largely When digital films from this region do advertise their digitality, the result tends favour lo-fi estranged from art. Insofar as video networks exist in Thailand, they are a new invention and over hi-fi; candid rather than ‘staged’ production; single-channel real footage over digital a site for middle class identification more than progressive social engagement. I will return to manipulation. In short, Southeast Asian video-makers seem either resistant or indifferent to this comparison below, but a broader exploration of video networking in the region will have to the very aspects of the digital that have appealed to so many of their counterparts elsewhere await further study. For example, it would be fruitful to consider how, as bandwidth grows and in the world. With reference to recent video work from several Southeast Asian countries, I will video-enabled devices become ubiquitous, these social networks might need to be recon- try to identify some signs, both overt and implicit, of a digital consciousness in DV practices figured. What will video networking look like after Web 2.0? Will we see the emergence of a in the region. I will argue that the video agenda is shaped as much by the new economics of regional media art clique, or will local dynamics continue to prevail over international trends? digital media – which are global – as by local realities and media histories, in which repre- sentation continues to outweigh simulation, and the presence of voice seems more pertinent If there is little regional coherence in the ways DV is deployed online, there are patterns than matters of form. emerging in the ways it is discussed. In particular, the expansion of indie film-making has ushered in readymade vocabularies from elsewhere. The marriage of regional studies with I will begin with a regional survey – a kind of field report – to highlight the widely varying con- film and cultural studies yields predictable results: blinkered national-industrial historiogra- ditions under which moving images are being made, and are finding their way online. Such phy; fixations on narrative and popular subject matter; copious sociological studies of iden- a survey is necessarily rough and inconclusive, but it can at least suggest some directions in tity; a general allergy to ‘art’; and so on. The annual Southeast Asian Cinemas Conference which to look for a regional digital aesthetic. Video Vortex readers will note that my focus is (ASEACC), roaming and independent, embodies both the openness and enthusiasm, and on offline activity: most of the artists discussed here consider themselves independent film the limited critical arsenal, of the regional discussion. Precious little attention is given to mat- and video-makers, a few are video artists; very few make what we would call ‘networked art’. ters of form. The fact that most of the material considered is made on video rather than film The reasons for this are several. In part, it reflects my own experience as a curator. But it also has done little to displace the governing premises of global (read: Euro-American) cinema says something about the ends to which moving images in general, and digital images in par- ticular, are being used in this part of the world. Media analysts have seized upon the impacts of digital media on the socio-political landscapes of Southeast Asia: viral SMS is transforming 1. In the early 20th century, activist media were instrumental in adopting what would later become presidential politicking in the Philippines; in Indonesia, DIY porn made and shared on the Indonesia’s national language (Bahasa Indonesia, now spoken throughout this archipelago of over 700 language groups), based on the local form of Malay. See Adrian Vickers, A History of iPhones of young celebrities yields scandals that embarrass the country’s Islamic moral or- Modern Indonesia, Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press, 2005, pp. 60-62. 164 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 165 discourse. But rather than dwell on these limitations, we might instead ask a different ques- ing of raw commodities for tourist or export markets. The rhetoric of creative industries, where tion: For what other purposes are people using these media? For DV is used in ways that are it has landed, tends to be top-down and tokenistic if not downright fraudulent. In any case, specific to place, and this specificity has slipped through the discursive filter of film studies. the term is dying a quick and natural death – hastened by the global economic downturn – in I began to ask this question in my research for Unreal Asia, a program of video work from places where ‘industry’, for most, still means the real leap from farm to factory. Just about the Southeast Asia that I co-curated with Gridthiya Gaweewong for the 55th International Short only structural attribute shared across this region is authoritarianism, which remains the rule Film Festival in Oberhausen in 2009. This program posed questions that also frame the rather than the exception, and there is no general correlation between freedom of expression present essay: Is there such a thing as ‘realism’ in Asian moving image cultures? What would and economic development. Much of the region operates under a perennial, thinly disguised actuality look like – what would be its syntax on screen – if it was informed by Confucian fam- state of exception, with repressive ‘internal security’ laws lurking just beneath the shiny, neo- ily values, Asian paternalist dictatorship, the vicissitudes of migration and displacement, or liberal surface. Yet, authoritarianism does not always curtail alternative media activity, which the kinds of deep hybridity that characterize religious and ethnic life in this region? Informed often passes below the radar of state power. The chief problem here is perhaps not hardware by superstitious mediation, rather than optical rationality? And if film never quite had the but software: the state of education in general, and critical media literacy in particular, is dis- ‘indexical’ relation to the Real it has enjoyed elsewhere, what then should we make of the mal. It is likely that in the great, global, innovative and unwired future, Southeast Asia will have preponderance of observational modes in Southeast Asian video-making, across documen- little if any say in how new technology is designed, developed and administered. tary, fictional and experimental fields? Such epistemological considerations are especially pertinent in places where the appeal of video – and thus the spirit in which it is often em- Authoritarianism seems to be most severe at each end of the infrastructure spectrum. Despite braced – is not so much that one can make moving images more readily, but that one might showing recent economic promise, Vietnam does not rank far above Laos and Cambodia now make them at all, with film having been prohibitively expensive for most of those now thanks to decades of authoritarian communism. The state in Myanmar we might call ‘freely using DV. It follows that studies structured by film’s economies and aesthetics will be less repressive’, as was demonstrated in the dreadful aftermath of Cyclone Nargis in 2008. Singa- useful than those that identify and proceed from a regional ‘program’ of DV itself. How does pore is beginning to make gestures towards a careful, top-down liberalization, though its me- this technology channel lived experience, or for that matter, spiritual life? What can it show? dia controls are nothing short of Draconian. The web is expanding the possibilities for political discourse there, in an orderly, Singaporean fashion. And yet, when ‘citizen journalist’ Martyn Regional Background See made Speakers Cornered, a video documenting a very tame public protest staged during At the Video Vortex forum in Split, 2 I was asked to give some background about ‘policies and the 2006 IMF/World Bank meetings, the video was banned, See’s equipment confiscated, and strategies’ affecting online video in Southeast Asia. This is difficult, for two reasons. One is See himself subjected to interrogation and fifteen months of police investigation. The work is that, in much of the region, there are no such policies, or at least, the ones that most affect available on YouTube, and depicts the awkward, passive-aggressive ballet danced between online video were designed for older media (as with many national censorship regimes) or the paranoid state and its polite, repressed citizens – a ballet in which DV cameras are both in another place (as with ‘global’ standards set by multinational media corporations). Where dancers and choreographers. 3 The video was not conceived for the web, but is nonetheless new media policies have emerged, they tend to be geared towards cultural policing, or are very much a product of the net-video era, in which some distribution of controversial material cosmetics applied to national economic facelifts. In any case, they do not reflect a consistent is guaranteed in any place with (at least) liberal pretensions. The episode underscores one fact regional situation – and this itself points to a second, more profound problem: Southeast Asia about the role of video in the region: the unfaltering importance of the camera as witness, a does not really exist. Rather, it is a slippery, historical fiction born of the mid-century military function it serves not just in sousveillance, but also in fictional, experimental and ethnographic exigencies of Western colonial powers. It makes little sense in geographical, cultural, reli- film and video. And this ought to problematize the premature conclusion drawn by some gious, or linguistic terms. The 40 years of self-conscious regional association through ASEAN screen culture theorists that the evidentiary moving image died when the digital was born. – no less a child of the Cold War – has brought little if any cohesion. Global capital tends to make these nations competitors, rather than a unified bloc. Malaysia presents a more nuanced case: network expansion has been eagerly pursued as part of national economic planning, especially since the founding, in 1996, of the Multi- It is not surprising, then, that Southeast Asia is characterized by a very uneven network ge- media Super-Corridor, and has coincided with the decline of the Malay majority that has ography. The terrain ranges from the wealthy island republic of Singapore, wired to the hilt governed since independence in 1957. With a growing interracial bourgeoisie less beholden and broadly post-industrial; through to developing/stumbling economies such as Thailand, to older, racially defined interests, the Malay political elite has been obliged to give online Indonesia and the Philippines; and to more or less closed or offline societies such as Laos and discourse more latitude than it has older media. However, Malaysia has the added problem Myanmar. There is little to tie these places together structurally. The ‘knowledge economy’ of a state-sanctioned religious zeal – also on the rise in Indonesia – that polices cultural chan- means anything from outsourced animation farms and call-centres to the hopeful repackag- nels closely. Despite this control and strict media laws, the web sees some vigorous debate. 2. http://networkcultures.org/wpmu/videovortex/past-events/video-vortex-split. 3. h ttp://www.youtube.com/watch?v=aY1ilenkPaM. 166 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 167 In both Malaysia and Singapore, it’s fair to say that the web enjoys more latitude than live The Video Agenda in Thailand culture; and that online, text enjoys more latitude than image. By comparison with its neighbours, Thailand’s infrastructure is not bad. Communications and transport were priorities of the U.S. military’s Cold War gift economy, and continue to Indonesia is the most interesting site for video activity, with an ever-growing constellation be essential for the sake of industry, trade and tourism. Even at Thailand’s rural extremities, of local video clubs, community art and media groups and activist collectives. It was thus connectivity is fairly broad, if not particularly broadband. But looks can be deceiving: de- the obvious site for the Transmission workshop, a five-day camp focused on web-based spite this infrastructure and its relatively free press for much of the 20th century, Thailand video distribution. To my knowledge, Transmission was the only meeting with some regional is one of the worst offenders when it comes to censorship of the web. This is especially scope. 4 This strength is mirrored by a rich blogosphere in Bahasa Indonesia, a language the case since the rise of media tycoon and Prime Minister Thaksin Shinawatra, and his that facilitates translation with respect to both European languages (to which its Malay core subsequent military overthrow in 2006. In Thailand, the uptake of popular platforms such has been permeable for centuries) and data, thanks to its Roman alphabet. Still, video’s as web-boards, blogs, YouTube, and social networks like Myspace and Facebook has as- migration online has been slow, due in part to the country’s scattered geography, but also sumed epidemic proportions, but has secured only modest gains for the public sphere. to network instability which has made large uploads difficult for years, even in large urban Self-censorship is hardwired into the public culture; repressive measures are backed by all centres. 5 The Philippines has similar problems with access, infrastructure and centraliza- political parties and are typically enforced in the name of loyalty to the monarchy. One can tion. However, NGO (non-government organization) and activist networks have made some hardly keep track of all the websites, individuals and online publications – both anonymous online headway there too. and high-profile – that have fallen foul of the country’s medieval lèse majesté laws. As the country faces a looming royal succession crisis, censorship has become more acute, and However difficult it may be to define Southeast Asia, it may yet prove to be a meaningful the mass media are cowering from years of free-speech rollback. An intense struggle over frame for examining screen culture. But as yet, the subject is so under-studied and the broadcast infrastructure flared up during the recent political showdown that culminated field so nascent, that broad strokes are necessary to prompt further debate and research. with the military’s bloody dispersal of red-shirt protestors from central Bangkok in May. This While the technical and cultural landscapes are so varied, no formal or stylistic overview suggests that while online dissent is growing and closely monitored, its strategic importance will be of much use. But we might try to discern the video agenda – or the ‘program’ of is still secondary to that of broadcast media. It is a telling irony that one of few respectable video – in this region. I have in mind here something akin to that which Vilém Flusser called intellectual journals in the Thai language, the leftist Fah Deo Garn, and its new offshoot the ‘program of photography’, though perhaps with less focus on the Apparatus and more Arn magazine, digest much of the critique that can only happen fleetingly online, yet they on the Functionary and the Technical Image: an agenda visible not just within the frame largely confine themselves to the less threatening scale of indie print media. 7 of a medium in action, but in the socio-technical parameters within which video is made. It is these parameters that are likely to reveal some regional patterns. 6 Who has access to When it comes to the moving image, Thailand’s commercial movie industry is prolific, if not DV, as producers or consumers? How is it distributed, and how does it relate to other, older especially interesting, and provides many independent players with professional experience media? What does DV make possible that was not possible under earlier technical para- and income. DV has certainly broadened access to video, but the vast majority of video is digms? And if this activity is so little informed by video’s first-world history, or the special made by the middle class, for the middle class. Economically and politically speaking, this characteristics that mark a digital aesthetic in the West, what are the local conventions and group is far from homogeneous. Geographically it is more uniform, confined mostly to the histories that inform its production and secure its legibility? Before attempting to answer larger cities, with little penetration of poor or rural communities. Ethnically, there is a notable these questions from a regional standpoint, I will focus on the case with which I am most preponderance – as elsewhere in the region – of the mostly urban descendants of diasporic familiar, that of Thailand. Chinese, who enjoy some economic and educational advantage; but Sino-Thais are unlikely to identify as such, and even less likely to make films from that standpoint. Thailand has loose 7. This situation raises an interesting side issue, namely, that repression is carried on not according to the procedural push-and-pull of laws governing trade, publishing or free speech, but in the hysterical, symbolic/sovereign discourse of national emergency – the ‘special case’ that has 4. Held in Sukabumi (West Java), May 2008, http://transmission.cc/txap. For an overview of video’s become the norm – triggered by the ancient legal fantasy of an identity between sovereign and central place in Indonesia’s emerging visual cultures, see Krisna Murti, Essays on Video Art and people (whereby a threat to his person is tantamount to a threat to the nation). To be fair, this New Media: Indonesia and Beyond, Yogyakarta: IVAA, 2009. blade cuts both ways, as in the country’s duplicitous stance on intellectual property. The World 5. Nevertheless, the density and diversity of Indonesia’s video networks are unparalleled in the Trade Organization provides (under TRIPS) for local exceptions to global IP protections in cases region. For an overview, see KUNCI Cultural Studies Center and EngageMedia, Videochronic: of ‘national emergency’, and it is this same sovereign exception that Thailand has exploited, for Video Activism and Video Distribution in Indonesia, research report, Collingwood: EngageMedia, instance, in compulsorily licensing pharmaceuticals for the treatment of HIV/AIDS. It seems that 2009. access to information is, in some general sense, a sovereign concern, a proposition that deserves 6. Vilém Flusser, Towards a Philosophy of Photography, London: Reaktion Books, 2000. further study. 168 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 169 but enduring networks of indie film-makers, in which expertise, equipment and organiza- this material online? A cynic might see the privileged haute-bourgeoise parading her liberal tional effort are pooled and shared. 8 Many are plugged into international festival and funding credentials for her backers on the international festival circuit, transgressing a cultural taboo loops, yet the principle audience is still local, and gathers around both grassroots and more that few of her compatriots seem to consider a problem. It is true that public displays of affec- commercial festivals. Online channels are far more important for community building and tion are considered improper in conservative Thailand; what is less clear is that anyone cares. promotion than they are for the actual dissemination of DV work. Indeed, the idea did not exactly catch on; the only takers seem to have been a performance collective made up of young expatriates. Is this civil disobedience, or a form of elitist cosmo- By comparison, ‘new media art’ is almost invisible. In a recent paper on new media art in politanism? If nothing else, it is a good demonstration of the narrow scope through which the Thailand, I could highlight only a handful of Thai artists working with new media in reflexive network’s potentials are seen. 11 ways. 9 A paper on Thai internet art would have been a very brief affair indeed. Even the few who engage with network thinking seem compelled to ‘realize’ their ideas offline, in more tan- The lively indie film scene, of which Anocha is a leading figure, confirms this limitation. gible physical forms. Here, the pop-media projects of Wit Pimkanchanapong are exemplary. What is striking is that from this almost entirely digital field, the output is on the whole so not In these works, video, computer graphics and mobile and locative media converge not in multi-mediatized, so not networked, so not interactive, so not non-linear, so not recombina- virtual space, but in the very physical, social spaces of the shopping mall and the rock fes- tory or appropriative. That is, that ‘digital’ aesthetics, at least as they have been theorized tival. Wit is Thailand’s most conspicuous new media artist, but even in his practice, the web in the West, do not seem to have gained a foothold amongst people using similar tools and is only really a channel for promotion and documentation. Much of the work of conceptualist software. Indie video-making tends to be personal, the work of an auteur, and appreciably Pratchaya Phinthong, who would never claim to be a new media artist, revolves around social less observational than elsewhere in Southeast Asia. To explain this fact, it helps to consider and technical systems of knowledge dissemination. In his 2006 installation Alone Together, the peculiarities of documentary in Thailand. Classical documentary is done poorly and sel- Pratchaya created a quasi-domestic space in the gallery where visitors could watch cult and dom, yet a few recent efforts deserve mention: a long-form take on the conflict in Thailand’s art movies from a DVD library, as well as duplicate films to take home, or add to the library southern provinces directed by Manit Sriwanichpoom, Ing K. and outspoken senator, Kraisak from their own collection – a kind of offline peer-to-peer network. Again, new media thinking Choonhavan, Citizen Juling (2008); Panu Aree’s The Convert (2006) about inter-faith mar- (in this case concerning international film piracy and its local market nuances) gravitates riage, also shot largely in the south; and Pimpaka Towira’s The Truth Be Told (2007), a David towards shared, physical space, and the face-to-face encounter. and Goliath tale of a young journalist sued to within an inch of her life for defamation by the Thaksin regime. These are the best of a bad bunch. All were independent productions; Some analysis of recent video works – one mounted online, the other a ‘capture’ of online all ended up in the cinema, but in festivals only; and none really aspired to wider, com- culture for offline exhibition – will illustrate the limitations that characterize network aesthet- mercial distribution. All deployed a resolutely ‘objectivist’ documentary idiom, effacing the ics in Thailand. The first was by the lauded indie film-maker, Anocha Suwichakornpong. film-makers’ authorial and editorial presence and eschewing voiceover, with plenty of mobile The 2008 work Kissing in Public invited Thais to video themselves kissing in public, and to and handheld camera work; and all, it seems worth noting, are essentially biographical nar- upload and share the video via a blog. Anocha made a pilot kissing short, to kick-start the ratives. The epistemological assumptions of these works, the sort of viewing they imagine, project, which she described as ‘an exercise in socio-cultural politics’. Video was cast as the are those of celluloid documentary film. This is a romantic-journalistic idiom that leaves intact witness, evidentiary and transparent: ‘At the time where all eyes in Thailand and the media the evidentiary claims of a medium it no longer actually employs – often without the rigour focus on national politics, we’d like to open up space, not only for debates, but real practices, or transparency that bolstered such claims elsewhere. It seems that in Thailand, the moving on how the personal can and should be political, especially at this transitional period in Thai image either channels the romantic vision of the bourgeois individual, aspires to the veracity history’. 10 But the timing of this attempt to distribute authorship was awkward. To make the or authority of a public record, or both. street the battleground for the defiance of social norms seems an oddly naïve choice, given that Bangkok’s middle class – the only conceivable audience for such a work – was at the time rapidly becoming apathetic and desensitized to the street-protests that were shutting 11. Cf. Malaysia, where the witticisms and visual puns of Amir Muhammad’s video essays, for down parts of the city for months on end. That the site of this gesture would two years later instance, prod at the lighter and darker sides of Malaysian political culture. His scripts (and become a literal battleground, claiming 89 lives, only compounds the irony. Why even put subtitles) import the idioms of blogging, the timing and aesthetic of the chatlog. (See, e.g., his Malaysian Gods, 2009.) Yet as in Thailand, network aesthetics may not have penetrated much deeper than this. Recent online video projects such as One Malaysia (an array of artists and personalities fighting racism by pooling their sentimental nationalism), and an ostensibly political 8. These pools are perhaps less formal, and certainly less ethnically diverse, than those highlighted short film platform called 15 Malaysia, plug into the viral and link-based economies of Web 2.0, by researcher Gaik Cheng Khoo in neighbouring Malaysia. Gaik Cheng Khoo, ‘Just Do-It- and are emblematic of the emergent multi-racial cosmopolitanism (on which, see Khoo, op. cit.). (Yourself): Independent Filmmaking in Malaysia’, Inter-Asia Cultural Studies 8.2 (2007): 227- The ethos here, like the state’s, is more entrepreneurial than activist, harnessing the web as a PR 247. vehicle and a site for ethical consumption, rather than a new logic of production, dissemination 9. Presented at the ASEAN Art Symposium, Silpakorn University, Bangkok, 2008. or aesthetics. An analogous program in Bangkok, meanwhile – the Thai Film Foundation’s 10. h ttp://kissing-in-public.blogspot.com/. Nothing to Say (Pridi Banomyong Institute, October, 2008) – was a determinedly offline affair. 170 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 171 This partly explains, or at least corroborates, the unreflexive way in which video has migrated and struggle. But if, as I have suggested, the video agenda still includes the witness function, to the network. While digital video is increasingly viewed online, its aesthetics are generally this does not seem to have limited the different ways of looking entailed by DV practice in vari- not web-native. Its primary destination is still the indie film festival and, in some cases, the ous places. A clear divergence is notable between Thailand and Indonesia, for example, one gallery. The interface it imagines is live, spatial and social, rather than remote, distributed that may be characterized with the figures of the bystander and the observer. The bystander and hypermediated. This is not due to a lack of equipment or skills, but to a hangover from is incidental to the action; the observer is more like a monitor, a feedback conduit, and never old media that leaves the program of video harking back to a photo-journalistic past, and to neutral. The former inevitably carries the pejorative connotation of a passive sort of viewing, the unfinished business – we might say the unrealized modernity – of indexicality. It is per- while the observational stance may be considered a more active footing on which to make haps for this reason that Thailand’s outstanding video-makers are those working deliberately images – a tendency much debated in anthropology, as the latter has been disabused of its at the blurred border between documentary and fiction, as in the community-embedded earlier, objectivist aspirations. 14 practice of Uruphong Raksasad, for example, or Apichatpong Weerasethakul’s landmark ficto-documentary Mysterious Object at Noon (2000). This blurring may be traced back at Viewing recent Thai video practice through this filter, one notices a very obvious trend: the least as far as 1970s social realism, and probably even further. 12 The country’s leading video Thais making and circulating videos, whether these are playful or po-faced, seem to share a artist, Araya Rasjdamrearnsook, also tests documentary aesthetics, probing both the shock sense of impotence in the face of their country’s ongoing political woes. This will not surprise potential of the objective record, and the moving image’s more subtle effects on truth and anyone familiar with the political inertia and disillusionment of the Thai bourgeoisie. Yet it is identity. 13 striking that for members of this class, a confident grip on the DV apparatus does not seem to improve their purchase on civic affairs. They are almost always positioned on the sidelines – as In general, this blurring has been less about fictionalizing documentary forms – a play fa- the term bystander suggests – in their treatment of political events. The Thai national charac- voured by several prominent Malaysian video-makers – than it has been about the leakage of ter, a normative phantasm shared by foreign and Thai commentators, with few disagreements, documentary modes and aesthetics into fictional forms of film-making. Yet both paths lead to is said to mandate indirectness. The result on screen is metaphor or allegory, ranging from the the kind of video vérité that is often rewarded on the European festival circuit, where cinema earnest to the puerile. When video-making does become confrontational it is liable to deterio- is once again punctured by real life, by non-professional actors, and by a visible production rate into caricature and counter-propaganda, without the sense of purpose that makes good apparatus. This candour is probably the chief characteristic linking moving image practices agit-prop good. The more typical response is to drop the seriousness. in Thailand to those elsewhere in the region. It resonates with the ‘mixed reality’ of pioneer- ing celluloid film-makers such as Filipino Kidlat Tahimik, Indonesian Garin Nugroho, and The second work I will examine, while exemplary of political impotence, suggests that the Cambodian Rithy Pan; but also to the general flourishing, more recently, of observational observational tendency also takes specific local forms. There are two main components to video-making. Nawapol Thamrongrattanarit’s six-minute video, Bangkok Tanks: 15 the background is a fuzzy television screen bearing the unmistakable talking head of Thaksin being interviewed on BBC Bystanders or Observers? World. This image is overlaid by an MSN Messenger chat log in Thai (with English subtitles), Across Southeast Asia, the most obvious impact of DV technology is its different temporal of a conversation amongst a group of high school students. The conversation took place on 19 economy: DV demands less discipline, and tends to allow its subjects to perform, their stories September 2006 – the day when, with the country paralyzed by protests against Thaksin, the to unfold, in their own time. Scripts become more a series of propositions – starting points Thai military unseated him in a bloodless coup d’état. The kids pass on gossip and hearsay for a negotiation with reality – rather than a strict program to be executed. The camera tends about the events unfolding in the city around them and, most disarmingly, they chat about its towards interrogating its surroundings, rather than overcoding that environment with significa- effects on them: they speculate about likely restrictions of media and communication chan- tion or narrative. DV’s affordability has led to a surge of observational film-making, by artists nels; they joke about their alarmist parents and grandparents stockpiling domestic supplies; and non artists alike. New windows have opened onto everyday life, and onto sites of conflict they rejoice at the prospect of a day off school. Remarkable for its candour, Bangkok Tanks purports to be a document, but not a documentary. The correspondence here between ac- tuality and the moving image is incomplete: the latter pretends to show something ‘as it was’, the DV viewpoint fixed and uninterrupted, yet it makes no particular claim to transparency or 12. D avid Teh, ‘Itinerant Cinema: the Social Surrealism of Apichatpong Weerasethakul’, objectivity. The credits tell us the text comes from a chat log on a given day; but we don’t know (forthcoming). if it is a slice of a single, un-staged exchange, or to what extent it has been edited, if at all. 13. Video has been present in the Thai art since the 1980s, but its historical proximity to performance (another neglected, fringe practice in Thailand) perhaps explains the paucity of real-footage and documentary video in Thai contemporary art to this day. While DV appears 14. On this debate, see for example Eliot Weinberger, ‘The Camera People’, in Charles Warren (ed.) more and more in galleries, there are still very few calling themselves ‘video artists’, the medium Beyond Document: Essays on Nonfiction Film, Middletown, CT: Wesleyan University Press, instead having been absorbed – though tentatively and not everywhere – into the toolbox of the 1996. ‘fine artist’, without really challenging the art school’s disciplinary structures. 15. B angkok Tanks (dir. Nawapol Thamrongrattanarit, 2007). 172 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 173 The appearance of non-film ICTs (information and communication technologies), in this case what Castells called ‘networked individualism’ (a networked form, that is, of ‘sociability’), the the online chat, within the moving image is unusual in Thai indie video. Yet while it exposes a shapes it takes in Indonesia look more like what Ned Rossiter calls ‘organized networks’ - they local culture of use, and the interplay of online with older media such as broadcast and word are ‘transdisciplinary distributive and collaborative’. 18 This distinction is broadly confirmed by of mouth, the network does not actually structure the work at all – it is merely thematized in comparing the authorial modes that prevail in each country. a single channel short video. The discernible digital manipulation of the moving image is not common either, at least outside the field of animation. Other photo-media, especially photo- By way of a speculative conclusion, I will propose one further filter for identifying a regional graphs and television, appear frequently within both narrative and experimental videos. But digital aesthetic: voice. Again, this term deserves a local spin, for ‘voice’ has a rather different these other sources are seldom mainlined – that is, their frame almost always remains visible inflection in places where oral culture still prevails, or at least where it has not receded in the and distinct from that of the camera/screen. One might say they are represented, rather than face of modernity to the extent that it has in the West. That modernity has invested voice with channelled. This suggests that more direct appropriation – a cornerstone of DV aesthetics the politics of identity, as something ‘inalienable’ belonging to the individual subject, gradu- in other places – is somehow incompatible with the kind of authorship evolving around the ally recognized and secured by the modern state. This politics of voice does illuminate impor- medium in Thailand, and this is another reason Bangkok Tanks stands out. 16 tant struggles in Southeast Asia, and giving voice is integral to the video agenda. It would not, however, prejudice these efforts to note that in places where a politics based on expressions In most discussions of digital media, a hypermedia image is something other than an ob- of individual will is neither native nor entrenched – and where the state has largely been and servational one, if not directly opposed to it. I would argue that Nawapol’s video, although it largely remains its antagonist rather than its guarantor – the concept of voice denotes some- channels multiple sources, is ultimately observational. It is a non-evidentiary recording of a thing far more quotidian, variable, and shared. In such contexts, voice is just as likely to be a historic moment, packaged as an irreverent oral history. If such pseudo-documentary strate- vehicle for the proliferation and scrambling of identity codes. What might such a proliferation gies stand out in Thailand, it is because they do at least call into question the epistemological mean for a broader, regional video agenda? assumptions video inherits, but also adapts, from analogue film. There is less of a challenge, however, posed to networked media. The kids’ indifference to the country’s political implo- Video Voice: Towards a Regional Program sion tells us nothing about the wider digital ecology in which their chat sits, one subject to I have suggested that the documentary form in Thailand betrays a certain ‘biographic’ roman- endemic state and self-censorship. ticism. In Indonesia, DV has also borne witness to a flood of biographical material, but with telling differences: gone is the heroic subject, fighting losing battles with state, authority or In Thailand, the uptake of digital formats has not, by and large, been accompanied by a scru- prejudice; life stories are typically subjective rather than pseudo-objective; the subjects are tiny of those tools, or of their specific politics and aesthetics. Networks provide a certain social ordinary rather than exemplary. Of the Thai documentaries cited above, all the film-makers context, rather than an actual locus, for the rising tide of DV activity. However, this is not the are based in the metropolis of Bangkok, making films about provincial subjects. In contrast, case everywhere in Southeast Asia, especially not where activist and community media net- Indonesian film-makers tend to opt for what is close to them, focusing on familiar and local works are stronger. The opportunities the web presents for video-makers have been more fully subject matter. Their narratives are often incidental rather than deliberate, attuned to what realized in situations in which media literacy lies high on the socio-political agenda of users. Siegfried Kracauer has called the ‘found story’. The latter are far too numerous to survey here; Such networks are particularly strong in Indonesia. Interestingly, they have developed here as a few examples will have to suffice. Steve Pillar’s Irama Hari (Rhythm of a Day, 2008) is a much through engagement with mainstream broadcast media culture as in opposition to it. A short, wordless documentary about Jakarta’s street vendors, splicing the refrains with which recent volume of articles by pioneering Indonesian video artist, Krisna Murti, gives some sense they attract customers into a fugue of ‘found sound’. Andang Dan Sarjo (Andang and Sarjo, of the dynamism and openness of the younger generation. 17 Venzha Christiawan, a founder of 2004), by the Forum Lenteng collective, is an eight-minute oral micro-history, lifted from an the House of Natural Fibers new media lab in Yogyakarta (Central Java), favours the acronym everyday encounter (a haircut) with a mobile barber. And in Pengajian at My School (Islamic DIWO – ‘do it with others’ – as if to raise the stakes of the DIY mentality that already prevails Studies Club at My School, 2007), four young girls interview each other about the need for in Indonesian alternative media scenes. The thrust of such workshop-oriented organizations more dynamic pedagogy in their religious education. is not towards extending the audience for DV but, perhaps in keeping with an earlier spirit of post-broadcast media, to redefine the sender. If the video agenda in Thailand conforms to Although this selection indicates some bias towards socially marginal subjects, the latter usually relate to the film-maker, rather than to some heroic archetype, and their role is of- ten participatory. To these, we could add countless videos generated in the workshops of 16. In any case, the general paucity of digital appropriation is peculiar in a country renowned, in virtually every other medium – from comic books to statute law, from painting to industrial design, from music to fashion – for appropriation, copying, adaptation, piracy, knock-offs and 18. Manuel Castells, The Internet Galaxy: Reflections on the Internet, Business and Society, Oxford just about every form of cultural pilfering imaginable. Perhaps the unimaginative recycling that and New York: Oxford University Press, 2001, p. 129-, and Ned Rossiter, Organized Networks: reigns in commercial cinema has given appropriation a bad name. Media Theory, Creative Labour, New Institutions, Rotterdam: NAi Publishers and Institute for 17. Murti, Essays on Video Art and New Media. Network Cultures, 2006, pp. 13-14. 174 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 175 Jakarta’s biennial OK Video Festival, and from scores of similar initiatives across the archi- adopts a diaristic, and at times a very personal voice. 21 In Torres’ own very personal video- pelago. The authorial envelope is pushed by grassroots video clubs, NGOs and community memoirs, we find a similar form of tactical distraction or encryption, a diffraction of identity in video workshops – models unthinkable in the era of celluloid – or activist projects organized keeping with an era of total digital diffusion. around specific issues of community concern. Of course, the preference for local immediacy is not accidental, and such organizations play their part in determining the video agenda. Yet Consider Torres’ response to a question from late critic and curator Alexis Tioseco, about the in Indonesia, to put the DV camera in the hands of marginalized and poor people somehow multiplying voices in his feature-length video, Todo Todo Teros (2006): seems an obvious thing to do; and whether these initiatives overstep class boundaries or not, the overall effect is a staggering multiplicity of voices. 19 In general, indie videos are not AT: You have the narrative running through three channels – the voice-over, the on- circumscribed by the imagination of an individual video-maker, in marked contrast to their screen text, and the images themselves. What inspired your use of on-screen text and counterparts in Thailand. Video’s existential or phenomenological phase – exemplified by the is there a logic to its utilization? At times it contains the first person I … Is there a reason experiments of, say, Bruce Nauman or Vito Acconci, and characterized by Rosalind Krauss that you chose not to read these statements instead? as a kind of narcissism – seems to have been passed over in favour of a more popular mode privileging an actuality constituted socially, rather than individually. 20 Perhaps this represents JT: In the film I talk about being constantly under surveillance, so along with the char- a new kind of reflexivity: social media don’t just depict the social, they begin to presuppose acters, I try to communicate not just through voice but also through written word, SMS, collective articulation. The ‘program’ of video here dilates to encompass its constitutive social song, performance, drawn images, and even gibberish/invented language… I don’t bonds. Even if the latter are strongly informed by network technologies, online dissemination know, maybe all the wiretapping and the “mother of all tapes” coming out in the news is perhaps neither necessary nor sufficient for the validation of this sort of production. Who have prepared me to resort to this mode of storytelling (laughs). 22 needs networked video, when there are video networks? It is unclear what, exactly, Torres is implying about the relationship between ‘surveillance’ The devolution of authorship is just one symptom of the proliferation of voices. Digital media and the media he lists. Notably, however, the proliferation of formats is seen to promote also widen the range of tones available to the individual, as in the work of John Torres, an identification between the film-maker and his subjects. The auteur’s response to the end of emerging digital auteur from the Philippines. Torres’ images are remarkable for their unpol- privacy is, perhaps paradoxically, the media equivalent of speaking in tongues, a multi-vocal ished candour. His unstaged, clearly non-industrial manner of production yields a kind of channelling that undermines the unity of a single, authorial voice. digital personal realism, distinct from the celluloid social realism that looms so large in the Philippines’ film history. Torres’ videos exemplify the economy of ‘always-on’ digital media, In his recent ‘Altermodern Manifesto’, super-curator Nicolas Bourriaud observes that today’s culled from a constant, unscripted recording of quotidian life. His DV camera sits within a artists are ‘starting from a globalised state of culture’, one of the chief indices of which is wider ecology of convergent media – PCs, mobiles, dictaphones and voicemail, radio, televi- language. Thanks to ‘increased communication, travel and migration’, he writes, ‘[m]ulticul- sion, karaoke, and the web – which are both channelled and represented in his loose, poetic turalism and identity is [sic] being overtaken by creolisation ... This new universalism is based narratives. For a film-maker whose subject matter is relentlessly personal, this de-gearing of on translations, subtitling and generalised dubbing’. 23 My own survey of DV usage broadly authorial unity is pivotal. For while it may have the style of an auteur, Torres’ video direct is confirms this view; language and translation are pivotal sites of aesthetic play in DV practice marked by what Jacques Derrida terms démultiplication: a proliferation of channels, voices Asia-wide. Yet I would not accept the conclusion Bourriaud wishes to draw from this: that and tones. Derrida formulated this idea in an essay on ‘the apocalyptic tone’ in philosophy, hybridity (‘creolisation’) constitutes some kind of ‘universal’ project. For if digital media are and again in The Postcard – a book ‘stuffed with addresses, postal codes, crypted missives, facilitating translation and understanding, they are just as often used to thwart communica- anonymous letters, all of it confided to so many modes, genres, and tones’, in which he tion and foreground its failures. 21. Jacques Derrida, The Post Card: From Socrates to Freud and Beyond, trans. Alan Bass, Chicago: 19. In addition to those already cited, key networks include community video facilitators Kampung University of Chicago Press, 1987; and ‘On a newly arisen apocalyptic tone in philosophy’, Halaman and photo-media collective MES 56 in Yogyakarta, ruang rupa in Jakarta and Common in Peter Fenves (ed.) Raising the Tone of Philosophy: Late Essays by Immanuel Kant, Room in Bandung. The penchant for lateral social engagement may even be partly attributable, Transformative Critique by Jacques Derrida, Baltimore and London: Johns Hopkins University ironically, to certain policies of the authoritarian state. E.g., rural-urban exchanges, instituted by Press, 1993. Suharto’s militarist New Order government in the 1970s and 1980s, formed a kind of template 22. T orres is referring to an eavesdropping scandal involving the Philippines President during an for the strong NGO sector that was instrumental in bringing this regime down in the 1990s. election campaign: http://www.criticine.com/interview_article.php?id=22. These grass-roots networks had become channels for a generation of activists barred from direct 23. N icolas Bourriaud, ‘Altermodern Manifesto’, http://www.tate.org.uk/britain/exhibitions/ participation in the political sphere. See Vickers, A History of Modern Indonesia, p. 197. altermodern/manifesto.shtm. See also his catalogue essay in Altermodern: Tate Triennial 2009, 20. Rosalind Krauss, ‘Video: The Aesthetics of Narcissism’, October (Spring, 1976). London: Tate Publishing, 2009. 176 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 177 Such interventions against communication can be found in both Thailand and Indonesia. If RefeRenCes DV gives new currency to the vox populi – a form linking journalism to ethnographic film and Bourriaud, Nicolas. Altermodern: Tate Triennial 2009, London: Tate Publishing, 2009. oral history – it is also frequently an accessory to the deliberate warping of such feedback, by _____. ‘Altermodern Manifesto’, http://www.tate.org.uk/britain/exhibitions/altermodern/manifesto. artists seeking to prevent the ethnographic subject from communicating as such. Thai exam- shtm. ples include Prateep Suthathongthai’s Explanation of the Word Thai (2007) which features Castells, Manuel. The Internet Galaxy: Reflections on the Internet, Business and Society, Oxford and readings of Thai history in an ethnic minority language, rendered phonetically in subtitles; New York: Oxford University Press, 2001. and Marut Lekphet’s Burmese Man Dancing (2008), which takes Thai stereotypes about Derrida, Jacques. ‘On a Newly Arisen Apocalyptic Tone in Philosophy’, in Peter Fenves (ed.) Raising Burmese immigrants drawn from a vox pop survey and subjects them to an arbitrary trans- the Tone of Philosophy: Late Essays by Immanuel Kant, Transformative Critique by Jacques Der- lation into the unintelligible Symbol font. Both works turn on a translation that derails com- rida, Baltimore and London: Johns Hopkins University Press, 1993. _____. The Post Card: From Socrates to Freud and Beyond, trans. Alan Bass, Chicago: University of munication. In Indonesia, we find a similar typographic ploy in Muhammad Akbar’s Noise Chicago Press, 1987. (2008). In this work, the monologue of a Japanese exchange student is rendered – again, Flusser, Vilém. Towards a Philosophy of Photography, London: Reaktion Books, 2000. phonetically – in Sundanese, the widely spoken dialect of the artist’s hometown, Bandung. Khoo, Gaik Cheng. ‘Just Do-It-(Yourself): Independent Filmmaking in Malaysia’, Inter-Asia Cultural In fact, this language’s neglected script derives from Kanji, and thus has more in common Studies 8.2 (2007): 227-247. with written Japanese than with Bandung’s other, dominant scripts, Romanised Bahasa and Krauss, Rosalind. ‘Video: The Aesthetics of Narcissism’, October, (Spring, 1976): 50-64. Sanskrit-based Javanese. These works remind us that language can be both a lubricant and KUNCI Cultural Studies Center and EngageMedia, Videochronic: Video Activism and Video Distribu- a retardant of inter-cultural exchange. 24 Voices are subjected to a kind of formal scrambling, tion in Indonesia, research report, Collingwood: EngageMedia, 2009. Murti, Krisna. Essays on Video Art and New Media: Indonesia and Beyond, Yogyakarta: IVAA, 2009. recalling the cross-cultural slippage of karaoke - ironically, Asia’s pop-cultural lingua franca. Rossiter, Ned. Organized Networks: Media Theory, Creative Labour, New Institutions, Rotterdam: NAi Against the hybridization Bourriaud sees as symptomatic of some new (but not that new) Publishers and Institute for Network Cultures, 2006. internationalism, I would posit instead a wider logic of démultiplication. In mistranslation, Teh, David. ‘Itinerant Cinema: the Social Surrealism of Apichatpong Weerasethakul’, (forthcoming). and de-couplings of the oral from the written, the video image finds greater amplitude – vocal Vickers, Adrian. A History of Modern Indonesia, Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University rather than visual – without necessarily taking on the hypermediation associated with digital Press, 2005. convergence elsewhere. Weinberger, Eliot. ‘The Camera People’, in Charles Warren (ed.) Beyond Document: Essays on Non- fiction Film, Middletown, CT: Wesleyan University Press, 1996. How might such practices reflect on the epistemological status of DV in Southeast Asia? If my earlier proposition of a ‘non-evidentiary’ recording is sound, then the proliferation of voices would serve neither communication nor representation, but perhaps a collectiviza- tion of history’s emergent channels. That the output of such collective expression should be non-evidentiary suggests one possible framing for a regional video agenda: video-makers are refusing to play the game of absolute truth or indexicality. Rather than attempting to meet authoritarian discourse or official history on its own turf – to ‘speak truth to power’ – they prefer to put the new medium to work amongst themselves. This helps to explain why the output is overwhelmingly narrative – narrative knowledge, in these cultures, still reigns over analytic or theoretical knowledge – but also why it is so often observational, since one needn’t feign objectivity when the object is one’s own milieu. Finally, it suggests that for these users, DV’s greatest potential lies in its capacity to plug into, and channel, the older, oral modes of exchange that mass and broadcast media have largely passed over. 24. S ee also Ariani Darmawan’s Still Life (made in 2006 with Hosanna Heinrich), in which miscommunication is a metaphor for inter-communal conflict, as four women have an absurd argument in four different languages. 178 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 179 a chRonIcLe of VIDeo actIVIsm anD offline methods of distribution have developed, and revealing the beginnings of some ways onLIne DIstRIButIon In post-new oRDeR to map the different approaches to distribution. We then move into a discussion of online InDonesIa distribution, arguing that while the prospects for strongly networked digital distribution are im- mense, there are still many barriers, both technological and cultural in nature. feRDIansyah thajIB, nuRaInI juLIastutI, anDRew LowenthaL and aLeXanDRa cRosBy Video in Shifting Mediascapes Many analyses have pointed to how technologies have helped to mobilize dissent within In- donesia’s national political landscape, in particular leading to the demise of Suharto’s three- decade authoritarian government. 2 One prominent example is the role the internet has played In Indonesia, the relationship between social movements and the technologies of online video as an alternative civic space allowing political engagement to bypass the control of the nation- distribution has reached a very exciting phase. 1 The exhilaration felt in 1998, at the end of state. 3 Before the internet, however, video in its early stages was already beginning to alter the the repressive era of Suharto’s New Order, created a unique sense of momentum for activ- way that society constructed images of itself. ists working with new technologies. In particular, the sense that video could directly impact local, regional, national and global politics remains strong. However, as activists begin to According to theorist of globalization Arjun Appadurai, it is through visual information pro- develop more tactical approaches to changing technologies, how their videos will be dis- duced within ‘mediascapes’ that audiences can experience and transform ‘imagined lives, tributed becomes a recurring question. The many answers to this question arise from an their own as well as those of others living in other places’. 4 In Indonesia, these mediascapes array of conflicting interests, ideologies and identities emerging from what can no longer be can be traced back to the early 1980s. At this time, video technology entered into and thrived viewed as a single unified movement. Yet, alongside this divergence of approaches is the among a new middle class, that was rapidly increasing thanks to an economic growth period convergence of existing forms of cultural production and distribution, mediated by advanced resulting from the New Order’s boom in state-sponsored natural resource exploitation. This digital technologies. period was marked by the popularity of ‘imagined lives’ on screen: Indian Bollywood mov- ies, Hong Kong action series, and local films were consumed on Betamax and VHS video Access to video production tools, the internet and mobile technologies, while still limited in cassettes, and distributed by outlets called penjualan/persewaan or palwa (sales/rental). The Indonesia, is increasing dramatically. The proliferation of video production and the burgeon- consumption of these images contrasted sharply to the way video technology was simultane- ing online sphere has introduced new ways of communicating that intensify the connected- ously being manipulated by the state. Audiovisual content in Indonesia was implicated in the ness of agents from from different settings – including those initiating movements for social Indonesian nation-building project through the establishment of the first national television change, and those who would have once been considered the subjects of such movements. network Televisi Republik Indonesia (TVRI), and later by the launch in the late 1970s of the The writers of this article come from two organizations, KUNCI Cultural Centre and Engage- Palapa communication satellite. Both technologies became a means for Suharto’s New Order Media, both of which are firmly placed within the movement for social change, actively ma- regime to extend its political authority, sugar-coated with developmentalist logic. nipulating emerging technologies for activist purposes. In our ongoing work, we have begun to chart how a range of activist organizations are engaging with online video technologies Like many New Order cultural policies, however, the government’s approach to video was in the Indonesian context, addressing issues that emerge from the interplay between social fraught with contradiction. As stated in the preliminary study on the history of video in Indo- movements and technology, and exploring the potential and limitations of online video dis- nesia, Video Base, the analogue video period lasting from the 1970s to the late 1990s was tribution. We have worked with participants within Java and Bali, as video production and marked by the increased use of videocassette recorders (VCR), which the state decided had distribution activities are still concentrated in this part of Indonesia. Arguably, this is due to the potential to endanger its dominance. From that point, the New Order took anticipative the uneven development of the country’s communication infrastructure, which is very much measures to contain and control video-related practices, ranging from censorship and the bound by the scope of market activity. We are, however, aware that video-based activities are introduction of new taxes on the sale and screening of video cassettes, to the classification of burgeoning outside these islands even as we write. While this account is limited in geographi- cal scope, we hope that it becomes a solid point of departure for further research. We begin with a brief history of video activism in Indonesia, showing how and why some of the 2. Krishna Sen and David T. Hill, Media, Culture and Politics in Indonesia, Australia: Oxford University Press, 2000, pp. 195-217. 1. This article is a summary from Videochronic: Video Activism and Video Distribution in Indonesia, 3. M erlyna Lim, ‘Lost in Transition: The Internet and Reformasi in Indonesia’ in Jodi Dean, Jon 2009, KUNCI Cultural Studies Center (http://kunci.or.id) and EngageMedia, a collaborative Anderson and Geert Lovink (eds) Reformatting Politics: Networked Communications and Global writing by Ferdiansyah Thajib, Nuraini Juliastuti, Andrew Lowenthal and Alexandra Crosby. The Civil Society, 2006, pp. 85–106. complete PDF version is available in both English and Indonesian from: 4. Arjun Appadurai, Modernity at Large: Cultural Dimensions of Globalizations, Minneapolis, USA: http://www.engagemedia.org/videochronic. University of Minnesota Press, 1996, p.35. 180 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 181 videos to prevent piracy. 5 Aware that video is inherently a powerful medium of communica- A new conjunction in video-based practices emerged in the approach to the 1998 political tion, the authoritarian government also exploited the new technology to sustain its hegemony uprising, and in the recovery from it. This experience showed video-makers the power of by producing and disseminating images and information that reinforced its domination. This audiovisual representation and dissemination to generate extensive socio-political changes, was conspicuous, for instance, in the anti-communist propaganda film Pengkhianatan G30S/ by mobilizing people in support of particular causes. The residue of Suharto’s dictatorship, PKI (The Treachery of the 30th September Movement/Indonesian Communist Party), annual in which people’s experiences and memories of being used as objects of repression were screenings of which were compulsory every September on national television, in commercial deeply inscribed, was that media participation and first-person storytelling became crucial cinemas and in all Indonesian public schools. 6 agendas to pursue. Viewing video as a profound and flexible medium, activists are prompted to adopt it as a means of social recovery and transformation. Thus, post-Suharto Indonesia In the late 1980s, the production and consumption of analogue video images was increased saw an unleashing of media production and distribution, both commercial and non-profit. by the advent of private television stations. The stations showed a variety of content, but the With regional areas in Indonesia gaining more autonomy, calls for information decentralization format that dominated were the serial dramas named sinema elektronik (electronic cinema) and democratization became more widespread. Increasing consumption of cable television, or sinetron, akin to ‘soap operas’. The ubiquity of sinetron coincided with an increase in computers, the internet and mobile phones, along with growing numbers of local stations, video-production practices. Krishna Sen and David Hill have shown that between 1991 and brought mediated events further into people’s lives. From an activist perspective, this dissemi- 1994, when the celluloid-based Indonesian film industries went into rapid decline, feature- nation was perceived to have the potential to foster participation and broaden the agenda for length video production rose by almost 50 per cent. 7 Shortly after, in 1995, video production social change. In this context, the DV camera functioned as a kind of personal technology that experienced another boost when digital video (DV) cameras were released onto the market for allowed the operator autonomy and power over the production of content, which spurred the relatively low prices by manufacturers such as Sony, JVC, Panasonic, among others. 8 Being practice of citizen media. much cheaper than the previous analogue models, the recording technology became acces- sible to more diverse sectors of Indonesian society. In the approach to the Reformation, the media explored for supporting the cause of social justice was not limited to video. On the internet, communication media such as chat rooms From this chronological account, we witness how everyday video practices in Indonesia dis- and mailing lists flourished as forums for discussion that could circumvent militaristic state play the interconnection of production, distribution and consumption. While we may be able repression. Also, under the umbrella of the anti-New Order movement and the discourse of to trace the linear development from analogue to digital technology, and from expanding televi- change, several accomplishments were made by alternative print media in the form of com- sion broadcast to increasing quantity of video production, the same pattern does not appear munity newsletters. 11 The forms of distribution taken by these oppositional media, informally in all aspects of consumption and distribution. The pattern of video consumption and distribu- and anonymously using existing social networks, contributed to the formation of the hybrid tion, from video cassette technology, to laser disc, to VCD in about 1997 and then DVD about video distribution networks, which are discussed below. 2003, 9 engaged the public in an uneven way, rather than as a single audience. Only some steps in this development, such as the cheaply reproduced VCD, increased access for those Sketching a Map of Video Activism from lower economic classes and those living in rural areas. Although the picture quality is Departing from the above historical outlook, we can begin to sketch a map of video activism significantly lower than DVD, VCD is still widely used in Indonesia because both the player and in Indonesia today. The video-based activism observed in this project has taken a range of the disc are much cheaper. The mass distribution of pirated VCD and DVD materials under positions and includes individuals and groups from different social backgrounds, with different Indonesia’s official legal radar has also extended the scope of consumption beyond the divi- ideologies, approaches, sites of intervention and audiences. Here we identify three main prac- sions of economic class. 10 tices that currently exist: (1) activism working to transform grassroots communities through participation in video production (from here on addressed as ‘grassroots video activism’); 12 (2) 5. Forum Lenteng, Videobase: Video-Sosial-Historia, Jakarta, Indonesia, Pusat Informasi Data Penelitian dan Pengembangan Forum Lenteng, 2009. 11. Nuraini Juliastuti, ‘Whatever I Want: Media and Youth in Indonesia Before and After 1998’, Inter- 6. Forum Lenteng, Videobase: Video-Sosial-Historia. Asia Cultural Studies 7.1 (2006): 139-143. 7. Krishna Sen and David T. Hill, Media, Culture and Politics in Indonesia. 12. T he organizations that appear to have shared similar repertoires of grassroots activism are: 8. Dimas Jayasrana, ‘Fragmen Sejarah Film Indonesia’, unpublished article, 2008. The summary Kampung Halaman, based in Yogyakarta, Central Java, works with youth living in what Kampung text titled ‘A Fragmented History: Short Films in Indonesia’ is available from, http://www. Halaman term the ‘transitional districts’ using participatory video; Etnoreflika, also in Yogyakarta, clermont-filmfest.com/00_templates/page.php?lang=2&m=72&id_actu=494&id_rub=&mois. works among socially marginalized communities, according to their motto: ‘cameras for the 9. Dimas Jayasrana, ‘Fragmen Sejarah Film Indonesia’. people’; Kawanusa has been based in Bali since its foundation in 2004; while Ragam was the 10. Nuraini Juliastuti, Understanding Movie Piracy in Indonesia: Knowledge and Practices of Piracy, initiative of documentary film-maker Aryo Danusiri, formed to promote video as a medium for University of Amsterdam, unpublished thesis, 2008. cross-cultural exchange among different indigenous communities. 182 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 183 activism based on tactical 13 initiatives that produce video aimed at influencing public percep- was at risk due to plans to develop a cement factory nearby, community video organizers had tion and key decision-makers (from here on addressed as ‘tactical video activism’); 14 and (3) chosen to work with the community to produce a video – a process that Maruli considered activism based on technological experimentation and deconstruction of imagery as a means inappropriate considering the time available to produce a community-based video and the for shifting the relation between the audiences and the medium (from here on addressed as urgency of the situation faced by the community. This situation prompted Maruli to take the ‘experimental video activism’). 15 initiative to make an independent campaign video on the issue so that the information could start to circulate publicly, and advocacy for the case could be initiated right away. 18 It is worth noting here that the above distinctions are the result of an effort to envisage the dif- ferent dimensions of video activism, rather than to pigeonhole them. 16 Rather than being mu- We raise this example to point out that the steps taken by Maruli and the grassroots video tually exclusive, these three realms of video activism are situated along a spectrum of discrete activists he criticizes, while different in form, need not be perceived in opposition to it. Such yet interwoven practices, which shift according to technological and ideological dynamics. friction can be viewed as creating momentum towards a common end: the production of However, we are interested in rendering these activities at their points of coalescence in order information that counters that distributed by the local government and the corporation de- to relate these shifts to broader social movements. veloping the cement factory. Conducted simultaneously, video facilitation at a community level, production of socio-political content, and efforts to popularize video-based technologies The first group work and interact with specific communities to intervene at specific sites, constitute a new configuration in which video becomes a means to collectively transform so- while the latter two formations tend to be more mobile and flexible in their interventions. ciety. The key question is whether the collective activism in this field can sustain the strategic Although some groups adopting video-based approaches are independent entities, many interaction and communication among different factors required to open broader political op- of them are also embedded within other social change organizations that share common vi- portunities. Can video-based activism in Indonesia form a coherent and supportive network? sions and agendas. 17 Some major political differences can also be identified from the distinct How might online tools be employed to assist in such a formation? approaches of each group. In our focus-group discussion with video activists in Jakarta, Maruli from UPC expressed his concern about community video practices becoming a way Most of our informants have shown hesitance toward, if not outright rejection of, the idea of of ‘flirting with new media’. In a particular traditional community in Java, whose environment working together as a single strategic network across the three categories we identified. The main reason identified for this hesitance was the limited capacity of groups to function as a network, especially when it comes to the availability of human resources. For example, Yoga 13. The term ‘tactical video’ here is an extension of Michel de Certeau’s concept (1984), which Atmaja from Kawanusa pointed to the lack of available staff to open and manage network- distinguishes strategic and tactical actions in the domain of popular culture. Theorists and ing activities, as the group is already exhausted by its existing commitments working with activists David Garcia and Geert Lovink extended de Certeau’s concept of tactics to the field of communities. More pertinent still are the significant political differences between the various media activism, by identifying a class of producers who amplify temporary reversals in the flow of groups. The organizations discussed here are in no way homogeneous, and run the gamut power by exploiting ‘spaces, channels and platforms’, necessary for their practices. http://subsol. from alternative commercial enterprises, to medium-scale NGOs, to all-volunteer radical ac- c3.hu/subsol_2/contributors2/garcia-lovinktext.html. tivist collectives. Additionally, issues of conflicts of interest between actors have often tainted 14. T his grouping encompasses video-makers who are engaging with tactical uses of video content existing networks or led to the disbanding of early network formations. While the technologies production and distribution. Included in this group are: Offstream, established by Lexy J. Rambadetta and focusing on documentary work; KoPI, which is based in Bandung, West Java, that enable the easy creation of sophisticated networks are available, without a shared politi- and also working in the documentary genre; Fendry Ponomban and Rahung Nasution, who, cal vision for the purpose of the network, it could not be successful; an affinity for the medium aside from forming Jaringan Video Independen (JAVIN), also independently produce videos with of video and a political commitment alone are insufficient. political content; Maruli Sihombing, who is active at the Urban Poor Consortium (UPC); and Gekko Studio, in Bogor, West Java, which concentrates on environmental issues. Even so, the activists interviewed did not dismiss the possibility of partnerships with other 15. This group includes ruangrupa, a Jakarta-based artist initiative founded in early 2000 in Jakarta; groups with similar interests. However, how soon the relationships could be built remains VideoBabes, formed by three female video artists based in Bandung, West Java. In Semarang, uncertain, as a convincing video-networking model that can inform the activists of how to Central Java, Importal works to open alternative public space for video works. The final group in this category is Forum Lenteng in Jakarta which specializes with introducing video techniques move forward is yet to appear. The success story of the student movement in toppling the among youths and collaborative development of audiovisual research methods. New Order government in 1998, for instance, although organized through networks of dis- 16. In the interviews conducted, we asked the respondents where their activism fitted in with parate groups, is considered by many as too fluid to be characterized as an example of an contemporary movements, and received many nuanced reflections. Only a few video activists established network. could give a clear label to their practices, while most located themselves within a diverse range of movements and contexts. 17. For instance, Gekko Studio collaborates on projects with environmental NGOs, and Etnoreflika has partnerships with organizations assisting marginal communities such as street kids and sex 18. T his video is available from: http://engagemedia.org/Members/maruli/videos/gunungkendheng1. workers. avi/view. 184 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 185 Networking challenges are also evident within the global social-justice movement, with which Layar Tancap, Community Television and Other Offline Channels many of the groups in this study intersect. As has been argued by Manuel Castells, 19 the In Indonesia, various offline methods of distribution are still more popular than online meth- global formation of social movements has been profoundly transformed by the intensification ods, both because of the limitations of internet infrastructure already outlined, and because of communication. Traditional movement structures have been abandoned as new informa- of the rich culture of social events and communication that already exists across the country. tion technology allows for resource mobilization, information-sharing and action-coordination Some of the most common methods of distribution are screening programs, festivals, exhibi- on a larger and faster scale. Furthermore, Jeffrey Juris 20 notes that the emergence of the tions, television broadcasts, home-video distribution and hand-to-hand distribution. cultural logic of networking among global social-justice activists, which is facilitated by digital technologies, not only provides an effective method for the organization of social movements, For activists, alternative screening methods outside mainstream venues have been politically but also represents a broader model for creating alternative forms of organization. as well as practically motivated. 22 Screenings become peripheral projects, using a range of indoor sites as well as layar tancap (literally ‘freestanding screen’), and are often held out- However, the insights of such observers of global internet culture have not yet shed light on doors in sports fields or other open spaces. Combine Resource Institution uses this method how digitally mediated social networking can be appropriated in non-Western countries such and adds an interesting twist to it, by downloading related videos from YouTube to use in the as Indonesia, where insufficient technical infrastructure and a range of different cultural screenings. Screenings are also held in foreign cultural institutions, independent cinema- backgrounds produce distinct challenges for social movements. Certainly, the underdevel- houses, art galleries, campuses, political centres, village halls, or even more privately, among oped internet infrastructure did not hinder the proliferation of political dissent in Indonesia in friends in boarding houses or family homes. 1998. 21 And yet, the establishment of horizontal networking between activists in the digital sphere to sustain such dissent is not yet manifest, even though internet infrastructure is now Some of the video activists, such as KoPI, Offstream and VideoBabes, frequently send their far superior and much more widespread than it was in 1998. Bandwidth may still limit the work to festivals and exhibitions in Indonesia and overseas. Some groups hold their own possibilities of video, but most other media can take reasonable advantage of the current festivals: Kawanusa has been organizing the Community Video festival in Bali since 2007; infrastructure. This lack of networking is indicated by the almost complete lack of hyperlinks ruangrupa in Jakarta has been producing OK.Video biannually since 2003. In the meantime, between groups surveyed on their respective websites, even though hyperlinks have been there are a very large number of video festivals operating around the world, and they often available as a technology for more than 15 years. Clearly, the issue is not merely the avail- form a central focus for video-makers. The focus on this method, however, can prevent video- ability of the tools, but the strategic and imaginative implementation of such. How can an makers from formulating broader approaches to distribution. Online distribution of a video approach to the technology that is more confident, playful, creative and grounded in local is sometimes an obstacle to being invited to festivals that, even in this age of massive online contexts be manifested? distribution, will sometimes refuse to screen films that can already be found online. Calibrating Hybrid Distribution Methods Television broadcast as a mechanism for distributing video has not been discounted by pro- Whether the responsibility for distribution is assumed by the video-makers themselves, sup- ducers and distributors of non-mainstream videos. However, as indicated by Sofia Setyotrini ported by offline programs such as festivals, screenings or exhibitions, based on commercial of In-Doc (an agency working for the development of local documentary films), royalty fees opportunities, or developed through online channels, the challenges are significant. This for screening on television constitutes a considerable obstacle. National television stations do discussion is based on the assumption that an established form of independent distribution not provide royalties to independent video-makers because they regard the video material is yet to be created in Indonesia. The groups studied view the possibility and necessity of as non-profit in nature, and claim that video-makers should be grateful for the free access such a model differently, simultaneously inventing new schemes, referring to systems already they gain to wider audiences. These reasons are accepted by some groups, such as Gekko, employed abroad, taking advantage of mainstream screening services, or even choosing not which views cooperation with television stations as an effective strategy for broadcasting to distribute their work at all. The problem of distribution is inseparable from the challenges of environmental concerns. access to technology. While the ideologies associated with each are interrelated, we approach the video distribution schemes in two sets of practices, offline and online. Many video activists feel that distributing their work through mainstream and commercial channels undermines the antagonistic nature of their work, although this view has the flow- on effect of limiting their distribution. On the other hand, too much attention to the possibili- 19. Manuel Castells, The Power of Identity. Oxford, UK: Blackwell, 1997. 20. Jeffrey S. Juris, ‘Networked Social Movements: Global Movements for Global Justice’, in Manuel 22. O ne reason attributed to the number and variety of independent screening programs in Castells (ed.) The Network Society: a Cross-Cultural Perspective, Cheltenham: Edward Elgar, Indonesia is the slowness of commercial cinema networks (e.g. 21 Group) to adopt digital 2004, pp. 341-362. projection technologies that would allow for the screening of video as well as film. This has meant 21. M erlyna Lim, ‘From War-net to Net-War: The Internet and Resistance Identities in Indonesia’, that video-makers, whether activists or not, have initiated their own screening programs rather The International Information & Library Review 35.2-4 (2003): 233-248. than rely on mainstream opportunities. 186 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 187 ties of using mainstream television as a distribution mechanism can overlook the potential The video-makers selected are encouraged to duplicate and sell copies of the compilation of alternative channels currently developing on a local level, such as the burgeoning media for their own profit. While the VCD distribution VideoBattle offers is relatively limited, its open of community television. 23 Between the ongoing discourses concerning community televi- endorsement of duplication has contributed to its recognition not only within Indonesia, but sion and video activism, there exists some kind of communication gap. On one side, the also by international audiences including those in Australia and Europe. community television organizers experience difficulty maintaining consistent programming due to a lack of supply of material; on the other, video-makers claim a lack of channels to Viewing the structural complexity of mass video distribution in light of their own limited re- distribute their works to the public. The creation of online databases of video content could sources, some activists develop distribution models based on personal or institutional rela- greatly facilitate interaction between content producers and those running local television tionships. One interesting form this has taken is the manual distribution method used by stations, particularly if both parties utilized technologies that made it easy to transfer large, Offstream’s Lexy J. Rambadetta who, apart from festival and television distribution, often high-resolution files, such as FTP and BitTorrent, so those downloaded videos could then be uses a barter system rather than monetary exchange for his videos. Many groups also trade broadcast. Downloading a high-resolution, one-hour video might take a whole day, but this their own videos for those produced by other activists, generating an underground economy is still dramatically faster and cheaper than sending it via post, with the added benefit of a that keeps people up-to-date with trends in video content and style. This form of distribu- searchable database of content. tion is supported by a range of video library spaces, such as that maintained by VideoBabes member Ariani Darmawan at Rumah Buku in Bandung, where the public can consistently The economic dimension of offline distribution is also engaged by groups and individuals have access to recently produced work. selling their work in the form of hard copy DVDs or VCDs. The Marshall Plan, an independent DVD label created specifically for Indonesian alternative films, readily took up this method, While small in scale, these hand-to-hand distribution methods take place frequently, and and has been creating video compilations which it distributes through its own networks and continue to develop as activists prioritize public access to a range of information. Rather than screening programs since 2008. However, some problems emerge rather quickly with this making them obsolete, online video distribution has the potential to enhance these methods model. In order to be direct and open in the selling of independent videos in DVD format, and become part of the infrastructure of such initiatives. the group faces daunting regulations. Dimas Jayasrana of The Marshall Plan explains that in distributing their products to outlet franchises that sell DVDs, ‘The DVD products need to Online Distribution: Prospects and Barriers have a minimum of 1000 copies, meaning they need to be pressed commercially instead For many video activists in Indonesia, technical barriers have prevented the prioritization of of duplicated on a small scale’. Furthermore, ‘All the products need to have an attached tax online distribution. The greatest technical problem is limited bandwidth, particularly outside ribbon issued by the Film Censorship Board’. Given that anti-censorship is a key feature of urban centres. Many audiences trying to view online video are faced with an intermittent an independent video movement, censorship regulations thus become another barrier in stream of images, which is both tiring and boring. For the producer or distributor, upload- circulating alternative video works to the public. ing the video takes a very long time, and often fails altogether. These issues, however, are reflective of the common approach to online distribution. While there are many ways to use Most groups choose to tap into existing commercial distribution networks that simply ig- the internet as part of a holistic distribution strategy, the user expectation is built around a nore government regulations, such as those of Minikino, Boemboe Forum, HelloMotion and YouTube-style experience, in which videos are viewed immediately through a browser. Fourcolourfilms. 24 By developing consignment systems with distro (independent music and One massive challenge activists face is keeping up with rapid changes in the technological clothing shops) or other alternative outlets such as bookstores, they are able to supply small landscape. Internet usage in Indonesia has soared in the last decade. Data indicates that the numbers of copies according to demand. Given the bureaucratic challenges of legal legiti- number of users has risen from 1.9 million in the year 2000 to 25 million in 2007, assisted macy, this model suits the present situation better, however it doesn’t necessarily enable by the flourishing warnet (internet cafe) businesses and the deregulation of the 2.4 GHz band video-makers to support themselves financially. in Indonesia, which lead to the expansion of Wi-Fi access. 25 As of 2009, the number of users may well be up to 30 million. Of these, however, only 0.08 per cent have home broadband Another example of offline distribution is used by VideoBattle in Yogyakarta, which has been access, due to its relatively high cost. 26 A home connection may cost between 300-800,000 disseminating its video compilations as disc sets since 2004. VideoBattle selects and com- rupiah a month (US$30-US$80), which is more expensive, on average, than in places such piles five-minute videos from entries of any style in an effort to challenge preconceived ‘gen- res’. The format used by Video Battle is VCD, due to its accessibility and low production cost, which means that the videos, branded in collectable sets, can be sold at low prices. 25. Imam Prakoso, Conditions of Communication Environment for Freedom of Expression in Indonesia, Combine Resource Institution and Global Partner Associated, UK (unpublished version), 2008. 23. For example, the emergence since 2002 of community television stations such as Grabag TV 26. Marc Einstein, ‘Predictions for Indonesia’s telecommunications market’, The Jakarta Post, (Central Java), Rajawali TV (Bandung), and Bahurekso TV (East Java). See Hermanto, 2009. 07/28/2009. Also available from, http://www.thejakartapost.com/news/2009/07/28/predictions- 24. Alex Sihar, ‘Prospek Distribusi Film Alternatif di Indonesia’, Ikonik 1 (2007): 33-42. indonesia039s-telecommunications-market.html. 188 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 189 as Australia, where the average income is far greater and internet speeds much faster. Most literacy. Between those who are constantly exposed to the internet, such as activists, NGO people access the net through the warnet or through cheaper dial-up connections, which workers, and media professionals, and those who are not, a cultural chasm exists – a local are monopolized by the state-owned telecommunication company, Telkom. However, rapid manifestation of what has been globally termed ‘the digital divide’. 28 Despite the celebratory changes to online infrastructure in Indonesia mean that statistics such as these are not accounts of a global technology revolution, some local video activists respond quite critically relevant for long. The Indonesian Government has reportedly called for tenders to oper- to the prospect of online distribution. Yoga from Kawanusa points out that the inequality in ate Worldwide Interoperability for Microwave (WiMax), 27 which may allow for speeds up to access to information technology can, in turn, establish new power relations between infor- 60Mbps. Currently, WiMax in Indonesia has begun trials, but the official roll-out is uncertain. mation ‘haves’ and ‘have-nots’: Yet, if the project is realized, it would dramatically change the online landscape in Indonesia and directly increase the viability of online video. While the technology is limited at present, Video distribution is prioritized among community members for its “ceremonial” aspects; both speed and access to the net have the potential to improve continuously. Video activists to achieve public recognition of their work. They want their videos to be launched at an would do well to take full advantage of these future possibilities. event attended by people they know. We are talking about people living in the villages. They don’t have access to the internet, and perhaps they don’t need to have any. Why Aside from broadband limitations and the need to lower the cost of internet access, the publish the videos online if they don’t know who is accessing them? If we insist on doing ever-increasing size of video files is also a concern. While it is becoming easier to shoot very so, who will actually benefit? Of course, the answer is: those who are already literate. high-resolution footage, it is difficult to deliver high-resolution versions of long videos online in Indonesia, given the internet speeds. The fragility of Hypertext Transfer Protocol (HTTP) as a In this sense, it makes sense for grassroots activists to prioritize offline connections. For transfer mechanism also hinders this, with connections often breaking down during upload. many, the immediate concern is to have the video works collectively appreciated at the sites Both a conceptual and technical change in approach is required: on the technical side, to where they are made. But most activists consider facing the challenges of the internet as enable access and develop the skills to use technologies such as BitTorrent and File Transfer part of their social justice mission. Various critiques 29 regarding the risk of social divisions Protocol (FTP) for uploading and downloading larger videos; and on the conceptual or pro- reproduced by unequal relations of knowledge and power point out that issues other than duction side, to develop formats oriented towards the web that may be shorter in duration or technology need to be considered in the attempt to democratize video for social change. that focus on the downloading rather than streaming of content. Aspects such as the society’s cultural readiness to interact with new media, the divergent economic settings of grassroots communities, and the various desires and approaches to This issue could also relate to the euphoria that often surrounds video production in Indo- consuming information are some of the issues that cannot be addressed simply by pro- nesia, which generally celebrates the spirit of do-it-yourself video-making, which relegates curement of media technology or technical-content training. New media require advanced distribution and reception to the bottom of the video-maker’s agenda. According to Hafiz of strategic applications. Forum Lenteng, this condition is symptomatic of a society that has only recently been liber- ated from a regime that strongly hegemonized information-production processes. Hafiz adds The lesson from Indonesia is that the fluidity and flexibility of technology is instrumental that attempts by community members to stream these activities towards more socially con- to the various coalitions, movements, and identities in play. This has not only led to em- structive practices are also increasing. Also, skills such as scriptwriting and editing are rare, powerment and democratization, but has also served to reproduce relations of dominance and resources in Indonesian scarce. On the other hand, Ade Darmawan from ruangrupa and exclusion, such as is promoted by fundamentalist religious groups. 30 Along with these points out that the limitations of online formats could actually inspire video-makers to explore trajectories, which are certainly incongruent with the goals of the activists discussed in this new ways to create video content that is specific to an online viewing experience, so that they research, we can also anticipate increasingly banal content flooding the internet. The ubiq- might abandon, for example, traditional narrative structures. uity of mainstream video sharing services such as YouTube and Facebook, and the rapid spread of 3G-based video on mobile phones, has become an arena so extensive that social- In some cases, the tentative attitude towards online video distribution can be traced to public justice and environmental video content is outshone by terabytes of information. Posting perceptions of the rise of internet technology. For example, Kampung Halaman co-founder work online is not enough for activist content; an audience must then view it – and then, Dian Herdiany describes how members of some of the communities they worked with (es- ideally, take some form of action. pecially parents) refused the group’s proposal to install internet facilities in their village, and cited the risk of exposure to pornographic materials as a reason for refusing. In this instance, the moral panic saturating national debates about the internet had also influenced local communities. This case illustrates the difficulty in working across a wide spectrum of internet 28. S ee David J. Gunkel, ‘Second Thoughts: Toward a Critique of the Digital Divide’, New Media & Society 5 (2003): 499–522. 29. See Sassi Sinikka, ‘Cultural Differentiation or Social Segregation? Four approaches to the Digital Divide’, New Media & Society 7.5 (2005): 684–700. 27. ‘RI to have WiMax Soon’, The Jakarta Post, 19/05/2009/. 30. M erlyna Lim, ‘Lost in Transition: The Internet and Reformasi in Indonesia’. 190 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 191 Many of the online videos that grab the public’s attention are those that expose footage of cor- For tactical video activists, online distribution is seen as one of many ways to launch their ruption and dirty politics, violence and pornography. On one side, this new media landscape content publicly. Aware of the multiple barriers to reaching Indonesian audiences, activists has been made manifest in the digital convergence currently prevailing in which ‘amateur’ turn to internet distribution to target audiences in other parts of the world. By uploading their video agencies, including forms of citizen journalism, increasingly flow across media, ranging work to their own websites or video services, whether on general-use sites such as YouTube, from television and mobile phones to the internet. On the other hand, the forms, themes and DailyMotion or specific ones such as EngageMedia, they remain optimistic about the avail- content of these flows quickly become limited – if not homogeneous – as they are shaped by able channels to garner international solidarity on the issues presented in their works. Moreo- the expectation of immediacy and the available technological features. Through new distribu- ver, these activists, as explained by Rahung of JAVIN, believe that by disseminating their tion models, activists propose to punctuate these flows of amateur videos with social change videos to a global audience, they increase the opportunities to gain resources for ongoing content that already exists in offline forms so that audiences can become more receptive to production of social-justice videos. the diverse range of video works available. Online distribution is strategically adopted by some experimental video activists who view Regarding the issue of audience receptiveness to information through online video, Ade Dar- distribution processes, both offline and online, as yet another way in which to experiment mawan from ruangrupa has called for more advanced strategies in designing online video and interact with forms of media. Forum Lenteng, for example, encourages the community of interfaces. One strategy would be to employ a ‘curatorial logic’: participants from the Akumassa project to embed their videos in a dedicated blog and to add comments and notes to encourage discussion about the content. For online video sharing Basically, online video sharing channels need to provide clearer frameworks to as- services, several new distribution schemes are being developed. In Yogyakarta, Video Battle sist the audience in contextualising the work being presented. Given the immensity of is developing online methods to expand the distribution of their compilations, as one solu- content flooding the internet nowadays, how are we going to attract audiences relevant tion to the difficulties they experienced with offline distribution and to encourage more video to specific topics presented in the videos? If there is no curatorial explanation, I think art productions. The group is optimistic about online distribution, and has created a video there won’t be much difference in the experience from watching YouTube. subscription channel enabling video podcasting in Miro and iTunes, as well as the ability to watch Flash video versions directly from their website. 31 In addition to the need to democratize access through structural provisions, it is clear that strategies are required to address the particular cultural characteristics of the internet in The technical and cultural challenges discussed here are just some of the issues impacting order to not only allow, but also enable equal public participation. One element that is lacking the many methods of distribution demonstrated by the groups in this research. One of the is a local, successful example of online distribution being used to garner a wide audience or commonalities between the video projects discussed and their distribution systems is that to generate real change, an example that others could find convincing and worth replicating. both explore new terrain for the groups and communities involved. Given this range of technical, economic and socio-cultural barriers in relation to online video What Do We Want? When Do We Want It? distribution, the practices of Indonesian activists must be tactical. As far as having an online For various reasons, none of the groups presented in this research work together as a presence, almost all the groups represented in this research have their own website, and horizontal offline or online network in more than an informal sense. However, each set of communicate through email, instant messaging, mailing lists, and forums as well as publish- video activists has formed a basis for collective action. In our thinking, if this collective ing weblogs. Kampung Halaman, Etnoreflika, Ragam, Gekko Studio, Offstream, Javin, UPC, framework could be harnessed to form a coherent network, the chance to create changes and Forum Lenteng all use social networking sites such as FaceBook and Multiply, and in the public sphere, or even at a structural level, would be greatly increased. upload content to existing online video sharing sites such as YouTube, Vimeo, and DailyMo- tion. Also emerging are more specific online video sharing spaces such as Video Battle, and Although we are fully aware that working as a network does not guarantee a smooth proc- EngageMedia. ess free from tension and conflict, we do think that both existing and new networks could be directed towards mobilizing resources to respond to the variety of obstacles to the Even within these common ways of using the internet, each group generates different cultural production and distribution of video content. However, the fact that the technology exists practices. To the grassroots video activist embedded in local communities, resource mobili- and certain groups have an affinity for video is not enough to form effective networks. zation is focused on community empowerment. Even though the groups integrate information Networks must begin from common political goals and shared understandings, some of and communication technology into their daily activism, the basis of their interaction with which we hope to have identified through this research. Online distribution tools and com- communities is often based on face-to-face contact. Therefore, the distribution of the videos munication spaces can be an effective means to create network constellations, to form produced tends to also be through physical means. To realize the goals of online distribu- tion requires additional support and access to hubs that would enable ongoing connections between the communities and diverse networks of global social movements. 31. S ee: http://video-battle.net. 192 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 193 common identities and build collective endeavours that create the foundations for stronger logic of networking discussed above. Neither one single approach to the internet, nor the movements towards social change. creation of a single network, will improve the distribution and effectiveness of activist video in Indonesia. As the groups described in this research continue their important work of using Concerns over the lack of an effective model became one of the main obstacles in translating video as means of addressing social justice, human rights, cultural and environmental issues, existing local frameworks into a network of movements. Ade Darmawan of ruangrupa, for ex- online distribution of such video will undoubtedly be part of their future. The last 10 years ample, has qualms about the idea of realizing a digitally based network without more ground- have shown that adjusting to internet-distribution models, for politicians, commerce, creative work, especially considering how new virtual communication is in comparison with traditional industries and mainstream media, among others, is absolutely necessary to establish and patterns of communication. This conclusion clashes with theories which view the internet maintain a global and local presence. We believe the same to be true for activists. as the perfect tool for facilitating the formation of a networking structure that supports a horizontal organizational logic. 32 To argue about whether offline or online development must come first would throw us back into the classic dispute concerning eggs and chickens. We feel that different technological applications need not be framed as substitutions for preexist- ing relationships; more often than not, online and offline modes can complement each other. It is interesting to compare the above projects to the Indymedia experiments, 33 which have been emblematic of the effective configuration of a wide-reaching social-justice network, us- ing digital technology that complements and contributes to a movement’s work as a whole. The Indymedia experiences of networking at a global level have demonstrated digital reper- toires characterized by participatory principles, independent infrastructures, open-content and resource sharing, which have radically contributed to the strengthening of movements on the ground. How can we learn from the successes and failures of these previous attempts, and create future iterations of effective networking in Indonesia and beyond? Networks are needed to enable people to come together to overcome many of the obstacles discussed above, as well as functioning as a strategic end in themselves. The networking framework can allow for diverse modes of distribution, that effectively respond to burgeoning forms of media convergence and the different capacities of participating groups and indi- viduals. Networks should encourage the sharing of knowledge and skills and the pooling of resources, in order to enhance the effectiveness of political formations and to apply political pressure to achieve improved social or environmental conditions. In that sense, networks are both the outcome of improved communications and political effectiveness, and also the necessary basis for them. A network of video-makers could enable the creation of a locally managed activist video sharing space, which might prove more responsive to local needs than the variety of inter- national options and commercially oriented spaces. These possibilities will be explored as the experiences and insights of those experimenting with online spaces and their network- ing potential grow. We anticipate that the future of video activism will involve a strategic and tactical approach to online video distribution, as a way for video activists to move toward the 32. See for example Manuel Castells, The Rise of the Network Society, Oxford, UK: Blackwell, 1996; and Jeffrey S. Juris, ‘Networked Social Movements: Global Movements for Global Justice’. 33. Jeffrey S. Juris, ’The New Digital Media and Activist Networking within Anti-Corporate Globalization Movements’, Annals of the American Academy of Political and Social Science 597 (2005): 189–208. See also Victor W. Pickard, ‘United yet Autonomous: Indymedia and The Struggle to Sustain a Radical Democratic Network’, Media Culture Society 28 (2006): 251. 194 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 195 RefeRenCes stILL moBILe: netwoRkeD moBILe meDIa, Appadurai, Arjun. Modernity at Large: Cultural Dimensions of Globalizations, Minneapolis, USA: VIDeo content anD useRs In seouL University of Minnesota Press, 1996. Castells, Manuel .The Rise of the Network Society, Oxford: Blackwell, 1996. LaRIssa hjoRth _____. The Power of Identity, Oxford: Blackwell, 1997. de Certeau, Michel. The Practice of Everyday Life, trans. Steven Rendall, Berkeley, USA: University of California Press, 1984. Forum Lenteng, Videobase: Video-Sosial-Historia, Jakarta, Indonesia, Pusat Informasi Data Penelitian dan Pengembangan Forum Lenteng, 2009. Garcia, David and Geert Lovink. ‘The ABC of Tactical Media’, http://subsol.c3.hu/subsol_2/contribu- In each location, what constitutes the ‘online’, and hence online video, is different. These are tors2/garcia-lovinktext.html. shaped by technological, socio-cultural, linguistic and governmental factors – to name just a Gunkel, David J. ‘Second Thoughts: Toward a Critique of the Digital Divide’, New Media & Society 5 few. In technologically innovative locations such as Seoul, where fourth generation (4G) mo- (2003): 499–522. bile media has been a reality since 2006, participation in the online takes a particular form. Jayasrana, Dimas. ‘Fragmen Sejarah Film Indonesia’, unpublished article, 2008. Summary text titled For example, it is not uncommon to find public spaces such as subways filled with people ‘A Fragmented History: Short Films in Indonesia’ is available from: http://www.clermont-filmfest. com/00_templates/page.php?lang=2&m=72&id_actu=494&id_rub=&mois. watching videos on Digital Multimedia Broadcasting (DMB), commonly known as mobile TV Juliastuti, Nuraini. ‘Whatever I Want: Media and Youth in Indonesia Before and After 1998’, Inter-Asia or as ‘Takeout TV’ (TU Media). Cultural Studies 7.1 (2006): 139-143. _____. Understanding Movie Piracy in Indonesia: Knowledge and Practices of Piracy, University of By March 2010, more than 48 million people owned mobile phones in Korea 1 or, in other Amsterdam. unpublished thesis, 2008. words, more than 90% of Koreans possess a mobile phone. A more recent trend is to own two Juris, Jeffrey S. ‘Networked Social Movements: Global Movements for Global Justice’, in Manuel phones, being dubbed the ‘second mobile phone era’. 2 With approximately 94% of Koreans Castells (ed.) The Network Society: a Cross-Cultural Perspective, Cheltenham: Edward Elgar, 2004, having a high speed internet connection 3 and being considered the leader in 3G (third gen- pp. 341-362. 4 _____. ‘The New Digital Media and Activist Networking within Anti-Corporate Globalization Move- eration) mobile technologies, Korea provides a complex and technologically sophisticated ments’, Annals of the American Academy of Political and Social Science 597, 2005, pp. 189–208. model for 21st century technocultural practice. In 2005, South Korea (henceforth Korea) was Hermanto, Budhi. ‘Sejarah Pertumbuhan Televisi Komunitas di Indonesia’ in Muzayin Nazaruddin the first location to launch and successfully implement DMB and thus the nation became a dan Budhi Hermanto (ed.) Televisi Komunitas; Pemberdayaan dan Media Literasi. Jakarta, Indo- model for global stargazing for 21st century media. From older women congregating around nesia, Combine Resource Institution, Program Studi Ilmu Komunikasi FPSB UII and Jakarta Arts one DMB watching television dramas, to young lovers watching music clips, to boys playing Institute, 2009. online games, the diversity of the multimedia experience of the online via mobile media is ob- Lim, Merlyna. ‘The Internet, Social Network and Reform in Indonesia’ in N.Couldry and J.Curran vious. These types of mobile media practices demonstrate the creative ways in which online (eds) Contesting Media Power: Alternative Media in a Networked World, Lanham, MD, USA: Row- man and Littlefield, 2003, pp. 273–288. culture in Korea is embedded with the collective nature of spaces – be they public or private. _____. ‘From War-net to Net-War: The Internet and Resistance Identities in Indonesia’, The Interna- One look around and we can see many forms of interaction with online content. These ac- tional Information & Library Review, 35 (2003): 233-248. tivities transgress the mobile and immobile, public and private, and the young and the old. _____. ‘Lost in Transition: The Internet and Reformasi in Indonesia’ in Jodi Dean, Jon Anderson and Geert Lovink (eds) Reformatting Politics: Networked Communications and Global Civil Society, Seoul has long demonstrated a high degree of engagement with the multimedia capaci- London: Routledge, 2006, pp. 85–106. ties of mobile media – from camera phones, video and games – often resulting in the city Pickard, Victor W. ‘United yet Autonomous: Indymedia and the Struggle to Sustain a Radical Demo- being showcased as one of the greatest images of 21st century networked mobile media. cratic Network’, Media Culture Society 28 (2006): 315-336. Prakoso, Imam. Conditions of Communication Environment for Freedom of Expression in Indonesia. A significant element of this revolution of mobile media and its attendant forms of engage- Combine Resource Institution and Global Partner Associated, UK, unpublished version, 2008. Sen, Krishna and Hill, David T. ‘Wiring the Warung The Global Gateways: The Internet in Indonesia’, Indonesia 63 (1997): 67–90. 1. KCC (Korean Communications Commission) May 2010, Statistics of subscribers of wired/wireless _______. Media, Culture and Politics in Indonesia. Australia: Oxford University Press, 2000. communication service in Korea, http://www.kcc.go.kr/user.do?mode=view&page=P02060400&d Sihar, Alex. ‘Prospek Distribusi Film Alternatif di Indonesia’, Ikonik 1 (2007): 33-42. c=K02060400&boardId=1030&cp=1&boardSeq=29191. Sinikka, Sassi. ‘Cultural Differentiation or Social Segregation? Four approaches to the Digital Divide’, 2. JI Lee, ‘Opening new era of 2 mobile phones per person in Korea’, Asia Economics 2009, New Media & Society 7.5 (2005): 684–700. http://www.asiae.co.kr/news/view.htm?idxno=2009010207554653133&nvr= 3. O ECD 2009, OECD Broadband Portal 2009, http://www.oecd.org/document/54/0,3343, en_2649_34225_38690102_1_1_1_1,00.html. 4. R esearch and Markets 2009, South Korea-Mobile Market-Overview & Statistics, http://www.researchandmarkets.com/research/915801/south_korea_mobi. 196 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 197 ment has been the rise of user created content (UCC) and user generated content (UGC). Cyworld’s minihompys, and online multiplayer games often played in the social, communal However, beyond this image of technologically savvy mobile media literates is a complex and spaces of the PC room, such as PC bang. This usage of technological spaces is not about culturally-specific model of online participation. From camera phone self portraits (selca) substituting the virtual for the actual, it is rather about supplementing actual relationships. and DIY videos uploaded to the main social networking system (SNS) Cyworld minihompy, The relevance of the technology is intrinsically linked to the maintenance of face-to-face to online games played in computer rooms (PC bangs), the technoculture of Seoul provides social capital. a nuanced and vibrant online culture that perpetually engages with its offline practices. The specific growth and deployment of such media as camera phones by both industry and us- As a burgeoning centre for innovative technologies and with a conspicuous usage of tech- ers in Korea has created a particular online culture with its own type of networked visuality. nologies in the everyday, Korea’s capital Seoul could be viewed as a showcase of techno- This technoculture weaves the online with the offline, the mobile with the immobile. One nationalism. The projection of ‘dynamic Korea’ (the tourism slogan used from 2005–2007) is way of understanding this online phenomenon is through the difference between UCC and one that has fused the notions of Korea’s power as a nation with that of technological innova- UGC. While the former denotes the user’s agency in the creation process — that is, the user tion. With over 20,000 PC bang gracing the second levels of most commercial buildings, and becomes a ‘produser’ 5 — the latter is marked by the user’s role as a node in the circulation with over one third of Korea’s population spending hours everyday in Cyworld minihompy, process. In short, UCC is made by the user, while UGC is circulated by the user. one could be mistaken for believing that online identity and relationships were surpassing offline sociality. Although Koreans do, in general, place a great deal of trust in technological In Korea, the rhetoric of UCC has been foregrounded since the demonstrations of ‘people spaces such as the internet as sites for reliable information and democratic communication, power’ which led, for example, to the election of ex-President Roh in 2002, to the protests the online is still no substitute for offline sociality. It should also be noted that this trust is against the importation of beef from the U.S. in 2008, and which are evinced by democratic linked to the fact that users have to lodge their offline citizenship details when joining an SNS media such as OhMyNews, which pioneer models of citizen journalism. While Korea’s model like minihompy or online games. of networked, mobile media can be seen as indicative of the ‘smart mob’ 6 phenomenon, other narratives of media agency and civic engagement are being played out. I argue that For Kyongwon Yoon, the rise of handupon technology in Korea after 1997 was linked to these dominant and undercurrent narratives of online practice are best understood through the rise of youth cultures, and the often-subversive use that saw youth labelled ‘Confucian the paradigms of UCC and UGC. In particular, through this paradigm I will discuss and cyberkids’. 9 Parallels can be made between the ‘youth problems’ associated with the rise contextualize the unique characteristics of Seoul’s online video culture. In order to do so, I of mobile technologies in both Korea 10 and Japan, 11 and the reorientation by government will first outline the specifics of Korean technoculture, such as the pivotal role played by the and industry to rectify the negative press. However, there is another side to the youth media dominant social networking system Cyworld minihompy, and then camera phones, in the ‘problem’. As Cho has observed, the increasingly competitive culture around education and rise of online video. Following this will be a discussion of findings from preliminary fieldwork youth — in which only a few will succeed — has lead to a new generation of ‘losers’. 12 Much conducted in 2009 in Seoul to explore the reality of agency and performativity surrounding of this competition is played out through media deployment: the successful ones use the me- the online UCC and UGC. dia to enhance their upwardly mobile lives, whilst the unsuccessful often absorb themselves within media in which they can live out their desires and fears. Being Mobile: Locating the Korean Technoscape In Korea, internet and mobile telephonic spaces are helping to progress Korean forms of As Yoon’s ethnographic study of young people’s use of mobile phones noted, the mobile democracy. For Korean sociologist Shin Dong Kim 7 and anthropologist Haejoang Cho, 8 the phone helps to reinforce physical contact and exchange. 13 In Hjorth’s and Heewon Kim’s rise of a specific type of democracy in Korea has been supported in part by new technologies ethnographic study on youth using Cyworld’s minihompy community, it was found that virtual such as mobile phones. In particular, in Seoul one can find two types of youth sociality predi- connecting was always about the need and desire to be connected on various levels and cated around two convergent technological spaces: firstly that of the mobile phone (‘hand phone’ or handupon), and secondly that of the internet through virtual communities such as 9. K yongwon Yoon, ‘The making of neo-Confucian cyberkids: representations of young mobile 5. The word ‘produser’ denoting the synthesis of ‘producer’ and ‘user’. Axel Bruns, ‘Some phone users in South Korea’, New Media & Society, 8.5 (2006): 753-771. Exploratory Notes on Produsers and Produsage’, Snurblog, 3 November, 2005, http://snurb.info/ 10. Kyongwon Yoon, ‘Retraditionalizing the Mobile: Young People’s Sociality and Mobile Phone Use index.php?q=node/329. in Seoul, South Korea’, European Journal of Cultural Studies, 6.3 (2003): 327-343. 6. Howard Rheingold, Smart Mobs: the Next Social Revolution, Cambridge, Mass.: Perseus, 2002. 11. Mizuko Ito, Daisuke Okabe, and Misa Matsuda (eds) Personal, Portable, Pedestrian: Mobile 7. Shin Dong Kim, ‘The Shaping of New Politics in the Era of Mobile and Cyber Communication’, in phones in Japanese life, MIT Press: Cambridge, MA, 2005. Nyiri K (ed.) Mobile Democracy, Vienna: Passagen Verlag, 2003, p. 325. 12. Hae-Joang Cho, ‘Youth and Technology in Seoul’, Inter-Asia Cultural Typhoon conference, Tokyo, 8. Hae-Joang Cho, ‘Youth, Internet, and Alternative Public Space’, presented at the Urban June, 2008. Imaginaries: An Asia-Pacific Research Symposium, Lingnan University, Hong Kong, 2004. 13. Y oon, ‘Retraditionalizing the mobile’. 198 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 199 never about substituting for face-to-face contact. 14 Thus, the overlap between virtual and offline experiences. 20 From the uploading of selca with friends, to images and videos of food actual was inevitably about offline relations and connections. For example, functions such as cooked or eaten, to virtual objects given to each other’s miniroom (a virtual room in which ‘search people’ allow users to reconnect with old friends they have lost contact with. friends’ avatars can visit and share), Cyworld minihompy provides one centralized form of the online amongst all the other SNS services (i.e. me2day, which is like Twitter). As one of In Florence Chee’s persuasive ethnography on PC bang and the politics of online multiplayer the longest standing SNS globally, Cyworld minihompy has withstood various trends and has games, she argues that these spaces are social spaces that are viewed as ‘third spaces’ maintained a stronghold in Korea. While ‘global’ sites such as YouTube and Twitter may be between home and work. 15 For Korean youth, most of who still live at home before getting used, it is often the minihompy where UCC is shared and UGC disseminated. married, these third spaces operate as private spaces in which to connect with other people. As Jun-Sok Huhh observes, PC bang ensured the success of online games in Korea by nur- Cyworld’s success has been, in part, attributed to dominant lifestyle trends in Korea, such turing both the culture and the business side of the industry; thus the online game is seen as as the ubiquity of high-rise blocks of flats and the easy accessibility of broadband coverage. synonymous with the PC bang. 16 According to Hee-jeong Choi, the bang is an independent The importance of Cyworld is demonstrated by the fact that over one-third of Korea’s 48 mil- space for the sharing of ideas that is ‘static in form, yet flexible in functionality’. 17 In other lion people regularly use their own and visit their friends’ minihompy. In Cyworld friends are words, the bang does not have a predetermined purpose — instead, the occupants sharing called ilchon, a concept once used to denote one degree of distance from family members the space actively determine its use. 18 in a traditional Korean kinship (i.e. one’s mother is one chon). Cyworld has re-branded its cyber-rooms with the notion of ilchon and non-chon to infer ‘friends’ and ‘non-friends’. Ilchon Given Korea’s strong techno-nationalism, which boasts of some of the best joint government can gain a greater degree of access to their fellow ilchon’s information and be invited to visit and industry policies, 19 much work has been done on making positive press between in- their cyber-room; non-chon can only gain cursory access. novative media usage and Korean culture. The role of technology is bound up in the way in which Korea exports its mobile technology products such as Samsung and LG globally, as As a broadband ‘centre’ with the world’s highest penetration rates and fastest speeds, Korea well as the way in which the local market of 48 million people consumes local technologies represents a prime example of innovative convergent mobile technologies. 21 The success and service providers. Parallel to the industry and governmental regulations that nurtured of DMB and mobile media such as camera phones has seen Korean companies such as Japanese local industries and ensured innovation on a global scale, the consumption of mo- PandoraTV and afreeca allow users to have their own broadcast channel that they and oth- bile technologies in Korea is tightly bound to explicit and implicit forms of nationalism. The ers can view on their mobiles and computers. This growth in UCC content and distribution hardware and software components are made in Korea, serviced by Korean telecommunica- systems is also marked as a period in which Korean users are shifting from being defined tion companies, and with conservative estimates of 78% penetration rates, the Korean mobile by activities such as ‘scooping’ or per-na-ru-gi (i.e. copying or transferring of other people’s phone success story has taken global centre stage. content — UGC) to new patterns of actively creating their own content. 22 The coordination between mobile and computer usage of the internet to access and update SNS has seen the The dominant SNS, Cyworld minihompy, is a great example of an online space that not only emergence of new forms of UCC in Korea. 23 This phenomenon is partly linked to changes in intersects with the offline but provides numerous sub-spaces (or bangs) to archive and share the expressive and communicative practices of users, as well as to the ways in which industry is trying to emphasize the importance of UCC. Indeed, for industry, UCC in its various forms still provides free content that can be used to gain the attention of audiences. 14. Larissa Hjorth and Heewon Kim, ‘Being There and Being Here Gendered Customising of Mobile 3G Practices through a Case Study in Seoul’, Convergence, 11.2 (2005): 49-55. 15. Florence Chee, ‘Understanding Korean Experiences of Online Game Hype, Identity, and the Menace of the “Wang-tta”’, presented at DIGRA 2005 Conference: Changing Views-Worlds in 20. Unlike in many western contexts in which Facebook has dominated as the SNS, in Korea it has been Play, Canada, 2005. Cyworld minihompy. Cyworld was started by four KAIST (Korean Advanced Institute of Science and 16. Jun-Sok Huhh, ‘Culture and Business of PC Bangs in Korea’, Games and Culture, 3.1 (2008): Technology) graduates in 1999, using modest means. It was acquired by telecommunications giant 26-37. SK in 2003 for $8.5 million USD. Starting with only 450,000 users in 1999, Cyworld minihompy’s 17. Jee-Hoang Choi, ‘The City, Self, and Connections: Transyouth and Urban Social Networking in subscription has now reach more than 25 million users in March 2010 — or more than 55 times Seoul’, in Stephanie Hemelryk Donald, Therese Anderson and Damien Spry (eds) Youth, Society more users. Whilst minihompy’s heyday has been and gone, it is still the dominant SNS. and Mobile Media in Asia, London, New York: Routledge, 2009, p. 93. 21. Organisation for Economic Co-operation and Development (2006) OECD broadband statistics: 18. J ee-Hoang Choi and Adam Greenfield, ‘To Connect and Flow in Seoul: Ubiquitous Technologies, http://www.oecd.org/sti/ict/broadband; OECD 2009, OECD Broadband Portal 2009, http://www. Urban Infrastructure and Everyday Life in the Contemporary Korean City’, in Marcus Foth (ed.) oecd.org/document/54/0,3343,en_2649_34225_38690102_1_1_1_1,00.html. Handbook of Research on Urban Informatics: The Practice and Promise of the Real-time City, 22. Soohyun Yoo, ‘Online Community and Community Capacity’, in Gerard Goggin & Mark McLelland New York: IGI Global, 2009, p. 27. (eds) Internationalising Internet Studies, Routledge: London, 2009, pp. 217-236. 19. David. M. West, Global e-government, 2006. Providence, Rhode Island: Center for Public Policy, 23. S . J Yang and Y.J. Park, ‘A Study on the Motivation and the Influence of Using Personal Brown University, 2006. Community’, Journal of Consumer Studies 16.4 (2005): 129-150. 200 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 201 However, even if it is made by users, in Korea UCC isn’t necessarily user-driven. This has ‘ordinary’ blogs and UCC. This blurring between user-made and industry-made UCC is clearly lead to a situation in which companies pay a so-called user to make something that looks ‘au- spearheaded by the case study of the Korean girl doing a Lady Gaga song via an iPhone video, thentically’ UCC, which is then circulated as UCC that can indirectly advertise the company. which has attracted much attention. 26 Is it a clever form of UCC? Or viral marketing for iPhone? Another model of this industry-driven UCC is the competition organized by public Korean bus companies, in which they advertised for users to create UCC around bus stories, in order to The particular and unique conditions for online video in Korea are shaped not only by socio- win various prizes. 24 In the case of public transport, it is not surprising to find a lot of UCC cultural factors, but also by the vicarious local ICT industries. Companies such as Samsung made within the spaces of both trains and buses, given that for most Seoulites traveling for at and LG have long been leaders in convergent ICT media, especially in terms of the mobile least one hour to and from work or school is not uncommon. phone. The success of the mobile phone as a vehicle for producing and consuming content in Korea is unmistakable. It is not uncommon to see both young and old people participat- In fieldwork conducted in September 2010 (following up on research done in 2009), this ing in online media, especially videos, via mobile phones. For Jung Youn Moon, the subway difference between UGG and UCC was further highlighted through curious examples of UCC. is such an important space for various everyday activities that it can be seen as ‘mobile When one thinks of UCC, one tends to picture the numerous viral images of singing and bang’. 27 That is, it is a communal space that has numerous significant functions in the lives of dancing we find on YouTube. However, in Korea, UCC has taken a slightly different route, in Seoulites. Much of this is coordinated through mobile media to provide a variety of multime- part engineered by the vicarious ICT (information and communication technologies) indus- dia experiences and interactions. The rise of the camera phone in Korea has been pivotal tries. For some, UCC is synonymous with UGC – there is much forwarding of favourite URLs in both changing and documenting shifts in everyday life in Seoul. Given that Korean com- about celebrities, or interesting hobbies like cooking. For others, UCC is an example of 21st panies such as Samsung were some of the first to pioneer high-resolution camera phones century creativity — something they hold in great regard. When we asked respondents if they whose images could be easily sent to online sites such as minihompy, it is not surprising that had made UCC, some had; others wanted to but had not. When asked why not, they replied Korea has witnessed an active networked visual culture. 28 that they felt their skills were not good enough. For these respondents, it was important that what they uploaded looked good, otherwise they wouldn’t upload it. They noted that UCC Picture This: Networked Visuality in Seoul takes much time and skill, and that they felt they couldn’t compete with many of the experts Since the first camera phone was introduced into the Korean market in 2002, the camera making UCC. This discussion highlighted that in Korea UCC isn’t characterized by DIY tech- phone has evolved into an important part of everyday mobile media. 29 Parallels can be made niques; rather, it is a form of creativity that requires the skills of very talented individuals. between the rise of the webcam and ‘reality’ aesthetics associated with the handheld camera The idea of needing much time, creativity and talent to make UCC in Korea has meant many in television and film, and the rise of the camera phone and sharing internet communities young people feel unable to participate in the creation of online content. Instead, they hap- such as Cyworld, MySpace and YouTube. As a convergent communicative media premised pily forward other people’s UCC. In the highly competitive world that is contemporary Korean on the logic of gift-giving, the various ways in which camera phone images can be ‘stored’, society, many young people feel the pressure to succeed at everything they do. The idea that ‘shared’, and ‘saved’ 30 are relevant to how the images are read and contextualized. With the UCC could just be something one has fun with and plays with doesn’t strike a cord with many low-resolution giving greater ‘authenticity’ and ‘realism’ to the ‘voice of the people’ aesthetic, 31 young people. Instead, if you are going to participate in making online videos you need talent. the camera phone provides a glimpse into the user’s personal world — a genre and technique that remains consistent despite the rise of high-resolution and superior lenses. One young female respondent, a freshman, spoke about some of the seniors who had made some great UCC and then went on to establish their own media company. This company, M- MEDIA Works, 25 began being employed by companies to create mock UCC – that is, media 26. h ttp://www.youtube.com/watch?v=nzh2UygPwDU&feature=player_embedded. that looks like UCC made by everyday users but is in fact commissioned by companies to sell 27. Jung Youn Moon, The Mobile Bang: visual depictions of the subway, Master’s thesis, RMIT something. From there, the company has gone on to produce music clips for famous singers in University, June, 2010. Korea. For this young respondent, these students’ leap from amateur to professional via UCC 28. See Dong-Hoo Lee, ‘Women’s Creation of Camera Phone Culture’, Fibreculture Journal 6 (2005), was inspiring, and gave her significant insights into the changing nature of media techniques. http://journal.fibreculture.org; Dong-Hoo Lee, ‘Re-imaging Urban Space: Mobility, Connectivity, and a Sense of Place’, in Gerard Goggin and Larissa Hjorth (eds) Mobile Technologies, Even she had been employed by a company, 7eleven, to write a pretend blog about some Routledge: London/New York, 2008, pp. 235-251; Dong-Hoo Lee, ‘Mobile Snapshots and of their products. Since that job, she has become suspicious of the authenticity of so-called Private/Public Boundaries’, Knowledge, Technology & Policy, 22 (2009): 161-171; Larissa Hjorth, ‘Being Real in the Mobile Reel: A Case Study on Convergent Mobile Media as Domesticated New Media in Seoul, South Korea’, Convergence: The International Journal of Research into New 24. For examples of UCC competitions in Korea see the following: http://award.ts2020.kr/; http:// Media Technologies, 14.1 (2008): 91-104. ucckahp.com/ucckahp/; http://experience.koreabrand.net/season4_summary_01.asp?lang=en; 29. L ee, ‘Mobile Snapshots and Private/Public Boundaries’. http://tvpot.daum.net/project/ProjectView.do?projectid=419; http://www.metro.daejeon.kr; http:// 30. M izuko Ito and Daisuke Okabe, ‘Camera phones changing the definition of picture-worthy’, contest.jobkorea.co.kr/Contest/List.asp?cate=0109. Japan Media Review, 2003, http://www.ojr.org/japan/wireless/1062208524.php. 25. www.m-media.co.kr/xe/about. 31. H jorth, ‘Being Real in the Mobile Reel’. 202 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 203 In March 2006, Samsung released a ten mega-pixel camera phone in Korea that would revo- the Apple iPhone is the most popular camera among Flickr users. 38 This popularity could lutionize the ‘digital divide’ between the quality, and thus content, allowed by camera phones be symbolic of SNS UCC in general. Moreover, given the prevalence of camera phones in and stand-alone digital cameras. One of the dominant differences in the relationship between contemporary networked visuality, one might argue that its particular characteristics are im- the two was linked to the depiction of, and association with, official and unofficial occasions. pacting upon photographic practice generally. The camera phone was always there, both literally and metaphorically ‘on hand’ to capture the trivialities of the everyday. 32 By contrast, the high-resolution stand-alone camera was pur- Dong-Hoo Lee’s ethnographic work on camera phones usage in Korea has demonstrated that posely brought along to events deemed ‘special’. As Ilpo Koskinen has noted, camera phones these practices can reinforce female empowerment, and allow for new ways of seeing and partake in ‘the aesthetic of banality’; 33 in other words, by taking images of the everyday, cam- creating. 39 As Lee notes, by 2004 mobile phone penetration rates were around 75%, with era phones images represent a ‘common banality’ 34 that is ordered by ‘vernacular creativity’. 35 36.1 million people owning one or more handsets. The role of the phone and mobile media in Korean everyday life is all-pervasive, with users upgrading their phones every ten months A second difference related to the context for sharing. As Mizuko Ito and Daisuke Okabe on average. In 2004, 73% of the handupon sold were equipped with built-in digital cameras, have observed in Japan, camera phone imagery are contextualized by what they see as the and by the beginning of 2006 it was virtually impossible to buy a handupon without the inte- three S’s: sharing, storing and saving. 36 Camera phones have ‘sharing’ built into their logic, grated camera. As Lee and Sohn note, the changing representational codes and accessibility with quick functions such as MMS (Multimedia Messaging Service), Bluetooth and the facil- of image making and distribution technologies are affording opportunities to groups that were ity of uploading to a blog almost instantly. By contrast, the digital camera had to be taken previously excluded from that domain of production, particularly women. 40 In their study, Lee to an often stationary computer before the content can be uploaded. The launch of the ten and Sohn found that women were more active in adopting new multimedia functions of the mega-pixel camera phones represented the connection of these worlds. No longer would the mobile phone, and that their willingness to adopt such functions was significantly stronger camera phone images just be trivial and ‘fun’; they had the potential to be printed in high- than men’s. resolution, blurring the world between amateur and professional digital photography. The introduction, in 2007, of a new breed of quasi-professional camera phones that have profes- With Korea’s status as the most broadband-enabled country in the world, the relationship sional lenses and capabilities such as LG viewty, which allows users to create and edit movies between online and offline is seamless, even if offline communication is still valued more and upload to UCC sites such YouTube, along with workshops and competitions for UCC, highly. Online virtual communities such as Cyworld minihompy are used by both young and highlighted the visible push towards making Korea global leaders in UCC. However, despite old, and play a significant part in most people’s everyday lives. The role of UCC and UCG in all these advances in screen technology that provides users with state-of-the-art technology, Cyworld is significant. Many of the still and moving images uploaded to Cyworld are done so the aura of banality – that is, low-resolution images of the everyday – still reigns. Such content via mobile phones. Online videos are watched and forwarded while users are on the move. predominates to the extent that the authenticity of UCC is still very much linked to the banality These images are often forms of UCC that operate as snapshots of everyday life. According of its content and images. However, as noted earlier, often this banality can be deployed as a to Moon, 41 there are around 6.2 million photographs uploaded to Cyworld everyday, many technique in industry created UCC. of which are camera phone images. Through UCC, consumers become active co-producers of mobile media. 42 With the ubiquity of camera phones, images of the banal and significant The significance of camera phones in the rise of UCC can be noted in one of the biggest can be easily taken, saved and shared at increasing speed. From citizen journalism, to the photo sharing SNS, Flickr. 37 Even though there are famous brands of stand-alone cameras, mimicry of media in the form of paparazzi-style shots of friends and everyday objects, camera phones play a pivotal role in the types of UCC images and video that are being shared. However, after the arrest in April 2009 of blogger Park Dae-sung, known as ‘Minerva’, and 32. Ilpo Koskinen, ‘Managing Banality in Mobile Multimedia’, in R. Pertierra (ed.) The Social also as the ‘Prophet of Doom’, for his posts that presciently commented on the financial ad- Construction and Usage of Communication Technologies: European and Asian Experiences, ministration of President Kim, many younger Koreans were suddenly seeing the democratic Singapore: Singapore University Press, 2007, pp. 48-60; Lee, ‘Women’s Creation of Camera Phone Culture’. 33. Koskinen, ‘Managing Banality in Mobile Multimedia’. 34. Mørk Petersen, Common Banalities, PhD thesis, ITU, Copenhagen, Denmark 2008. 38. Petersen, Common Banalities. 35. Jean Burgess, ‘“All Your Chocolate Rain Are Belong to Us”? Viral Video, YouTube and the 39. Lee, ‘Women’s Creation of Camera Phone Culture’. Dynamics of Participatory Culture’, in Geert Lovink and Sabine Niederer (eds) The Video Vortex 40. D ong-Hoo Lee and Soo-Hyun Sohn, ‘Is there a Gender Difference in Mobile Phone Usage?’, in Reader: Responses to YouTube, Amsterdam: Institute of Network Cultures, 2008, pp.101-110. S.D. Kim (ed.) Mobile Communication and Social Change conference proceedings, South Korea, 36. Mizuko Ito and Daisuke Okabe, ‘Everyday Contexts of Camera Phone Use: Steps Towards October, 2004: 243-259. Technosocial Ethnographic Frameworks’, in Joachim Hoflich and Maren Hartmann (eds) Mobile 41. Iris Moon, ‘E-Society: My World is Cyworld’, BusinessWeek Online, September 26, 2005, http:// Communication in Everyday Life: An Ethnographic View, Frank & Timme: Berlin, 2006, pp. 79-102. www.businessweek.com/magazine/content/05_39/b3952405.htm. 37. h ttp://www.flickr.com. 42. Hjorth, ‘Being Real in the Mobile Reel’. 204 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 205 space of the online transformed into a government-regulated dark space. According to some Epitomized by UCC, cartographies of personalization are best understood through the re- reports, Minerva was charged and acquitted for spreading false information that supposedly lationship between media convergence and intimacy. They are marked by the shift from intentionally depressed market sentiment. 43 Minerva even predicted events in the foreign the mobile phone, as a means of communication, to mobile media as a form of creativity market, including the collapse of Lehman Brothers. It is in light of the Minerva incident that I and expression, and the consequent production of new forms of gendered intimacy and conducted fieldwork in Seoul to see what users were thinking about participation in the online labour. Personalization is linked to, and expresses, the attendant and varied forms of social, and the fate of UCC. geographic, technological, economic mobility. It also reflects emerging forms of gendered labour, and the more intimate or ‘affective’ forms of labour just described. Personalization Snapshots: A Case Study of UCC and UGC by Users in Seoul takes material and immaterial forms that converge as they manifest at the micro level of the In September 2009, I visited Seoul to conduct fieldwork consisting of focus groups and one- individual and the macro levels of communities, and national and transnational relations. on-one interviews with 50 users aged 18 to 35 years old. In September 2010, I returned to in- terview both previous and new participants about their online practices. In the second study Through the rise of mobile media characterized by the appearance of the active user, new the age group was widened to include respondents up to the age of 60. In the 2009 study, the forms of mobility, intimacy and labour occur. The transformation of everyday users into pho- spectre left by the Minerva incident was felt by some respondents who had, after the arrest, tojournalists was highlighted by the rise of netizen media such as online OhMyNews, and the become hesitant to disclose too much personal information online. In over five years of study election of President Roh in Korea. These examples demonstrate shifts in labour and citizen of media usage in Seoul, this was the first time that such tentative attitudes had been voiced. agency, where unofficial imaging communities become part of official media expressions. As Manuel Castells et al. observe, ‘communication can be both instrumental and expressive’. 47 In the 2010 fieldwork, the relationship between UCC and UGC became more apparent, with With tools such as texting, emailing, camera phone imagery, video and sound, the mobile users clearly understanding the difference between the two, and industry increasingly try- phone provides many vehicles for self-expression. These forms of expression play across ing to deploy UCC as part of its advertising strategy. The idea of industry-driven UCC could individual, social and cultural levels at once. Such practices as texting can ‘express social in- be viewed by many as an oxymoron; after all, isn’t UCC supposed to be something that is equalities’ 48 concurrent to creating ‘an amplification of inner subjectivity’. 49 These practices user-driven and speaks of the user’s thoughts and desires, rather than re-packaged industry can be found in online cultures, expressed in how and what people watch, make and share. advertisements? Put differently, isn’t UCC supposed to be indicative of a 21st century push The significance of personalization was apparent in the focus group sessions and interviews towards ‘conversational’ media, rather than of the 20th century pull of ‘packaged’ media? I conducted in 2009. Through mobile media, online videos are accessed by people of all ages, anywhere, anytime. As one male, aged 25, noted: One way to comprehend UCC is through the rise of personalization. According to Clay Shirky, the personal has been hijacked, shifting from a space between people to an adjunct of tech- I think in my opinion, the Korean environment of mobile or video is very developed. nologies. 44 Indeed, new media technologies such as mobile media and social media do de- The mobile phone is very important to many people. It is part of their identity. Many ploy the notion of the personal in complex ways — from material customization of hardware people use it, regardless of age. Many Korean middle-aged people are very connected and software to being, in a McLuhanesque sense, an immaterial extension of the owner. 45 to internet through the mobile phone. It’s cheap and many people are using the mobile These processes of personalization recruit new types of labour that are predominantly social, and video. It is common to see young and old people using the mobile phone to view creative, affective and emotional. As Julian Kücklich observes in the case of gamers who (online) videos. If they like it, then they comment and pass it onto friends. modify games, the labour is underscored by a notion of ‘playbour’. 46 Playbour, as a form of UCC, involves the active user/gamer’s deployment of creative, emotional, affective and social One of the areas that led to discussions about UCC and UGC was the changing relationship forms of labour, which is then transformed into economic capital for the industry. between the amateur and professional. This was particularly the case in terms of power- blogging, in which blogs have so many followers that they become powerful enough to earn money for their makers. In Seoul, powerblogging is marked by the movement away from overtly political subject matter to a kind of ‘personal is political’ ethos, in which we find 50 43. John Abell, ‘South Korean “Prophet of Doom” Blogger Acquitted’, Wired, April 20, 2009, http:// ‘wifebloggers’ blogging about such things as cooking. Successful wifebloggers can not only www.wired.com/threatlevel/2009/04/south-korean-pr/. 44. Clay Shirky, ‘Here Comes Everybody’, presented at the Aspen Ideas Festival, June 30-July 8, 2008, Aspen Colorado, http://fora.tv/2008/07/06/Clay_Shirky_on_Social_Networks_like_ 47. Manuel Castells, M. Fernandez-Ardevol, Jack Qiu and A. Sey, Mobile Communication and Facebook_and_MySpace#chapter_01. Society: A Global Perspective, Cambridge, Mass.: MIT Press, 2007, p. 153. 45. Larissa Hjorth, Mobile Media in the Asia Pacific: Gender and the Art of Being Mobile, Routledge: 48. Raul Pertierra, Transforming Technologies: Altered Selves, Philippines: De La Salle University London, New York, 2009. Press, 2006, p. 100. 46. Julian Kücklich, ‘Precarious Playbour: Modders and the Digital Games Industry’, Fibreculture 49. Pertierra, Transforming Technologies, p. 101. Journal 5, 2005, http://journal.fibreculture.org/issue5/kucklich.html. 50. Dong-Hoo Lee, ‘Wifebloggers’, Crossroads, Lingnan University, Hong Kong, June, 2010. 206 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 207 make money from the blogs but also gain contracts for books and television series. Power- On sites like me2day or Twitter so much information, writings or images are from some- bloggers are known for their ‘professional’ media, both still and moving. But the idea that one’s (mini)hompy or blog. I mean it’s not original, just reproduced. This reproduction is a these powerbloggers are professionals defeats the point. Rather powerbloggers, whilst mak- big feature of online content today. Often I get sent the same content from various people. ing difficult things like cooking look easy, do so through the guise of the amateur. Here we see how the labour involved in powerblogging is absorbed into an image of playbour — when For another female, aged 22, online content was about selling a type of offline image. She in reality, many wifebloggers have to be of a certain class to afford the time to powerblog. As noted the amount of time many of her friends spent uploading images and videos to their one female respondent aged 32 stated: minihompy to give an image of a lifestyle. Another respondent, a male aged 24, concurred: I started following a cooking powerblogger. What I liked about her was that she wasn’t I remember reading an article that says they don’t post their daily lives. They post to a cook — she was just a mother, just like my mother. They can use the online to not make people believe that they have certain a lifestyle. For instance, most people don’t just be in their home but many people’s homes. If they are really popular they can earn take photos of some shitty restaurant. They only take pictures of some fancy places… money through a book publishing deal. This has created a booming area in Korea — how to be a powerblogger. Many people want to be a powerblogger, but few can. It So despite the everydayness and banality of mobile media in its constitution of online content, is very inspirational — my mother and aunt follow such blogs and also want to write much of the banality is actually rehearsed, conspicuous consumption. For another respond- one to earn quick money from companies that advertise on the blog... Sometimes the ent, a female aged 33, blogging and being online was about the personal. She often uploaded company tries to find some bloggers, good bloggers, and then just use the bloggers content and posted purely for her own consumption. She also spoke of an example in which commercially because they can gain access to the right audience. UCC inspired more UCC: There was a guy who became famous for imitating the famous singer Rain 53 by vide- When asked about the difference between UCC and UGC, the discussion shifted to whether oing himself dancing to his songs in the train and uploading them to sites such as the online was viewed as an avenue for the expression of personal or public opinion. This YouTube and Naver [the dominant portal site in Korea]…Once he created one and also evoked the discussion of the need for increased media literacy in wading through the became well-known he then made another. In the next one, people in the train now mass of online material. As one male respondent aged 22 observed: knew him from the viral video and they laughed and videoed him. This time there were Many people today use blogs to share the content — what they are good at, or what various videos of the same event, taken by the many people in the train. I liked that it they have. This can be videos they have made or watched and want to share. So was about people sharing the joy of the experience. basically everyone does it. The main drawback is that there is too much information. So you can’t decide sometimes what to watch… sometimes you will just watch a few Indeed much of the UCC on sites such as YouTube is about ‘ordinary’ users celebrating moments of many things… [Interviewer: So it’s hard to know what’s good and what’s popular cultural vehicles such as music clips in their own way. Two of the key features of this bad?]… Yeah, what’s real and what could be false information. So I think this change UCC are both its ‘vernacular’ and ‘situated’ creativity. 54 By mimicking UGC like famous music requires people to be smarter and more sensible about when they use the information. clips of popstars, users can make UCC that speaks to many other users. For another user, the I think that’s a drawback…But that could be a good thing, it makes people smarter and compulsion to personalize media and make UCC isn’t just a fun thing but rather something sensible about information…It’s also much easier to form an opinion online if there’s she feels obliged to do. Here we see the other side of the gift-giving culture of online partici- less pressure. And I think that’s a good change overall. pation, whereby users have to add material and comments in order to maintain a presence online. This was highlighted by one female respondent aged 24, who stated: The above respondent’s comments about watching little bits of many things reflects not only a general 21st century screen engagement characterized by what Chris Chesher calls I am studying Media at University so I use the computer a lot and also my cell phone, ‘glaze’, that is, in between the filmic gaze and television glance culture regimes . 51 However, I cannot live without my cell phone. I always turn it on and not only text messaging it is also indicative of Chal-na-jok: whilst ‘Chal-na’ means ‘instant’, ‘jok’ refers to a ‘tribe’ – a with my friends but also allowing things—dictionary things. I also use my Cyworld a feature observed in the INNOCEAN report. 52 When asked about UCC in relation to creativity, lot and I can’t live without it. Actually, in the daytime, I play with my friends and take one female respondent aged 28 stated: pictures and at night I upload. I use it all the time. I have no choice. It is something my friends and I do. But I am only ‘active’ (i.e. making UCC and uploading) when it’s relevant to me. 51. C hris Chesher, ‘Neither Gaze nor Glance, but Glaze: Relating to Console Game Screens’, SCAN: Journal of Media Arts Culture, 1.1 (2004), http://scan,net.au/scan/journal. 52. DK Lee, ‘Catch the digital new tribes, “Chal-na-jok”’, Yonhap News, http://app.yonhapnews. co.kr/YNA/Basic/article/new_search/YIBW_showSearchArticle.aspx?searchpart=article&searchte 53. ‘Rainism’ UCC in the subway, http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=iGA-UuddjX8. xt= &contents_id=AKR20100417073700003. 54. Burgess, ‘“All Your Chocolate Rain Are Belong to Us”?’. 208 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe asia online 209 For another respondent, a female aged 27, her usage of, and participation in, the online had RefeRenCes changed. While at one time she used minihompy to upload photos and videos, she now uses Bruns, Axel. ‘Some Exploratory Notes on Produsers and Produsage’, Snurblog, 3 November, 2005, it for social reasons: http://snurb.info/index.php?q=node/329. I don’t make UCC anymore. I used to use minihompy for expressing myself by uploading Burgess, Jean. ‘“All Your Chocolate Rain Are Belong to Us”? Viral Video, YouTube and the Dynam- some photos because I like to take photographs and I want to store them in one space. ics of Participatory Culture’, in Geert Lovink and Sabine Niederer (eds) The Video Vortex Reader, Amsterdam: Institute of Network Cultures, 2008. So minihompy was used for an archiving and sharing space from around 2005. But after Castells, Manuel, M. Fernandez-Ardevol, Jack Qiu and A. Sey. Mobile Communication and Society: A that, as minihompy became more popular I use that more essentially for social purposes. Global Perspective, Cambridge, Mass.: MIT Press, 2007. Chee, Florence. ‘Understanding Korean Experiences of Online Game Hype, Identity, and the Menace Many of the respondents used both minihompy and peer-to-peer (P2P) to download videos of the “Wang-tta”’, presented at Changing Views: Worlds in Play, DiGRA Conference: Vancouver, and music. One female respondent, aged 31, spoke of her scepticism about such material: Canada, 16-20 June, 2005. Chesher, Chris. ‘Neither Gaze nor Glance, but Glaze: Relating to Console Game Screens’, SCAN: Jour- I see a lot of things where I’m not sure if it is UCC or UGC because you see a lot of nal of Media Arts Culture, 1.1 (2004), http://scan,net.au/scan/journal. people upload lots of images, and figures, and stuff. But most of them are usually using Cho, Hae-Joang. ‘Youth and Technology in Seoul’, presented at Inter-Asia Cultural Typhoon confer- TV shows as their reference. Sometimes I’m not sure because it’s such a recipe that ence, Tokyo, Japan, June, 2008. it’s hard to know if UGC material is originally UCC or something from a company. Many _____. ‘Youth, Internet, and Alternative Public Space’, presented at Urban Imaginaries: An Asia- companies these days use ads that are like UCC. Pacific Research Symposium, Lingnan University, Hong Kong, May 24, 2004. Choe, S.H. ‘In South Korea, All of Life is Mobile’, The New York Times, 24 May, 2009, http://www. Conclusion nytimes.com/2009/05/25/technology/25iht-mobile.html?pagewanted=all. Unsuccessfully introduced in 2006, the reintroduction of mobile video calling in 2010 has Choi, Jee-Hoang Choi and Adam Greenfield. ‘To Connect and Flow in Seoul: Ubiquitous Technologies, been more popular. It will be some time before we see the impact of this application on the Urban Infrastructure and Everyday Life in the Contemporary Korean City’, in Marcus Foth (ed.) Handbook of Research on Urban Informatics: The Practice and Promise of the Real-time City, New types of online video people upload and share. On the one hand, we could argue that it will York: IGI Global, 2009, pp. 21-36. generate more familiarity and interest in using video. On the other hand, it could be argued Choi, Jee-Hoang, Marcus Foth and Greg Hearn. ‘Site-specific Mobility and Connection in Korea: that video will then be viewed as direct communication rather than as expressive, as much Bangs (rooms) Between Public and Private Spaces’, Technology in Society, 31 (2009): 133-138. of the shared online video is today. Choi, Jee-Hoang. ‘The City, Self, and Connections: Transyouth and Urban Social Networking in Seoul’, in Stephanie Hemelryk Donald, Therese Anderson and Damien Spry (eds) Youth, Society and In this paper I have located Korean online video culture within its specific type of networked Mobile Media in Asia, London, New York: Routledge, 2009, pp. 88-107. visuality. As I have argued, the technoculture that is Seoul weaves the online with the offline, Huhh, Jun-Sok. ‘Culture and Business of PC Bangs in Korea’, Games and Culture, 3.1 (2008): 26-37. the mobile with the immobile. One way of understanding this online phenomenon is through Hjorth, Larissa. Mobile Media in the Asia Pacific: Gender and the Art of Being Mobile, Routledge: the difference between UCC and UGC. The UCC/UGC paradigm that underscores much London, New York, 2009. of online video culture globally has a particular flavour in Korea. With a voracious industry _____. ‘Being Real in the Mobile Reel: A Case Study on Convergent Mobile Media as Domesticated and sophisticated technoculture, Seoul presents a curious landscape for considering the New Media in Seoul, South Korea’, Convergence: The International Journal of Research into New Media Technologies, 14.1 (2008): 91-104. relationship of UCC to the user and industry. Rather than UCC being essentially user-driven, Hjorth, Larissa and Heewon Kim. ‘Being There and Being Here Gendered Customising of Mobile 3G increasingly it is becoming industry-driven. While many users can’t necessarily distinguish Practices Through a Case Study in Seoul’, Convergence, 11.2 (2005): 49-55. between UCC and UGC, the difference is being further blurred by advertising posing as UCC. Ito, Mizuko and Daisuke Okabe. ‘Everyday Contexts of Camera Phone Use: Steps Towards Technoso- This shifts the role and function of UCC dramatically, from being a tool for the user’s expres- cial Ethnographic Frameworks’, in Joachim Hoflich and Maren Hartmann (eds) Mobile Communi- sion and storytelling, to just another vehicle for advertising. This, in turn, shapes how users cation in Everyday Life: An Ethnographic View, Frank & Timme: Berlin, 2006, pp. 79-102. engage and relate to UCC and online video cultures. _____. ‘Camera Phones Changing the Definition of Picture-worthy’, Japan Media Review, 2003, http:// www.ojr.org/japan/wireless/1062208524.php. Ito, Mizuko, Daisuke Okabe and Misa Matsuda (eds) Personal, Portable, Pedestrian: Mobile Phones In this paper I have discussed online video in the context of Seoul’s vibrant technoculture in Japanese life, Cambridge, Mass.: MIT Press, 2005. and techno-nationalism, which has seen much of online video being watched and shared in KCC (Korean Communications Commission) May 2010, Statistics of subscribers of wired/wireless hybrid spaces, such as the subway or bangs, or through DMB. The associated mobility af- communication service in Korea, http://www.kcc.go.kr/user.do?mode=view&page=P02060400&dc forded by DMB is indeed changing how and where users interact with online content. While =K02060400&boardId=1030&cp=1&boardSeq=29191. the context provided by Seoul is unique, it also constitutes a signpost towards a particular KOGIA (Korea Game Industry Agency), Summary of White paper on Korean games 2009, Ministry of direction for online video, in which both users and companies blur the boundaries between Culture, Sports and Tourism & Korea Creative Contents Agency, http://www.kocca.kr/knowledge/ UCC and advertisements. This phenomenon will, in turn, bring new challenges to the ways in trend/internal/1276414_1218.html#none. Kim, Shin Dong. ‘The Shaping of New Politics in the Era of Mobile and Cyber Communication’, in which users relate to the content and context of online video. 210 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 211 Kristof Nyiri (ed.) Mobile Democracy, Vienna: Passagen Verlag, 2003, pp. 317-326. DeGeneRacy In onLIne VIDeo pLatfoRms Kim, H. ‘Korea is leading in the e-world [News in Focus]: From personal to government systems, the nation is a model for other countries’, Joong Ang Daily, 2010, http://joongangdaily.joins.com/article/ matthew wILLIamson view.asp?aid=2918498. Koskinen, Ilpo, ‘Managing Banality in Mobile Multimedia’, in R. Pertierra (ed.) The Social Construc- tion and Usage of Communication Technologies: European and Asian Experiences, Singapore: Singapore University Press, 2007, pp. 48-60. Kücklich, Julian. ‘Precarious Playbour: Modders and the Digital Games Industry’, Fibreculture Journal 5(2005), http://journal.fibreculture.org/issue5/kucklich.html. At the 2010 International Experimental Media Congress held in Toronto, Canadian artist Lee, Dong-Hoo. ‘Wifebloggers’, Crossroads Conference, Lingnan University, Hong Kong, June, 2010. Michael Snow sat on a panel entitled ‘The Place of Medium’. In response to a comment _____. ‘Mobile snapshots and private/public boundaries’, Knowledge, Technology & Policy, 22 about his film Wavelength having been watched on YouTube 50,000 times, Snow compared (2009): 161-171. watching his films online to seeing a ghost, and stated that those people had not actually seen _____. ‘Re-imaging Urban Space: Mobility, Connectivity, and a Sense of Place’, in Gerard Goggin and the film at all. When discussing media migration, 1 the question of online viewing is lumped Larissa Hjorth (eds) Mobile Technologies, Routledge: London/New York, 2008, pp. 235-251. together with other concerns about form, but how is the line drawn between videos on one _____. ‘Women’s Creation of Camera Phone Culture’, Fibreculture Journal 6 (2005), http://journal. fibreculture.org. website or another? In our day-to-day interactions with online video, does it matter whether we 2 3 Lee, D.K. ‘Catch the digital new tribes, “Chal-na-jok”’, Yonhap News, http://app.yonhapnews.co.kr/ are watching the ghost of Michael Snow’s Wavelength on YouTube or Tudou? Can Keyboard YNA/Basic/article/new_search/YIBW_showSearchArticle.aspx?searchpart=article&searchtext= Cat 4 be watched on break.com, ebaumsworld.com or collegehumour.com with the same ef- &contents_id=AKR20100417073700003. fect? Are other practices, such as projects that comment on online culture, affected by who Lee, J.I.. ‘Opening new era of 2 mobile phones per person in Korea’, Asia Economics 2009, http:// is hosting them? Surely if there is a case to be made for the significance of format in regard to www.asiae.co.kr/news/view.htm?idxno=2009010207554653133&nvr=. Snow’s film, there is one to be made for Charlie Schmidt and his deceased cat Fatso. Moon, Iris. ‘E-Society: My World is Cyworld’, BusinessWeek Online, September 26, 2005, http://www. businessweek.com/magazine/content/05_39/b3952405.htm. Moon, Jung Youn. The Mobile Bang: Visual Depictions of the Subway, Master’s thesis, RMIT Univer- In many discussions of video sharing culture, the only service mentioned by name will be sity, June, 2010. YouTube. YouTube is arguably the generic trademark for online video, yet it is far from ge- Organisation for Economic Co-operation and Development (2006), OECD broadband statistics: http:// neric. While it is reasonable to begin the discussion with YouTube, we have reached a point www.oecd.org/sti/ict/broadband. at which the plurality of hosting options, and the importance of these options to the whole OECD 2009, OECD Broadband Portal 2009, http://www.oecd.org/document/54/0,3343, of online culture, requires exploration. For a working definition of video hosting, Wikipedia en_2649_34225_38690102_1_1_1_1,00.html. provides a definition broad enough to encompass many sites, stating that: ‘A video hosting Pertierra, Raul. Transforming Technologies: Altered Selves, Philippines: De La Salle University Press, service allows individuals to upload video clips to an Internet website. The video host will then 2006. Research and Markets 2009, South Korea-Mobile Market-Overview & Statistics, http://www.research- store the video on its server, and show the individual different types of code to allow others to 5 6 andmarkets.com/research/915801/south_korea_mobi. view this video’. A fast and easy index of sites can be found on Wikipedia, as can charts Shirky, Clay. ‘Here Comes Everybody’, presented at the Aspen Ideas Festival, June 30-July 8 2008, showing some of the differences between sites. 7 Aspen, Colorado, http://fora.tv/2008/07/06/Clay_Shirky_on_Social_Networks_like_Facebook_and_ MySpace#chapter_01. Online video is used in a lot of different ways: vlogs, remixes, amateur special effects, and Rheingold, Howard. Smart Mobs: the Next Social Revolution, Cambridge MA: Perseus, 2002. your mom’s vacation videos will all find a home somewhere. Some of the larger video sharing West, David. M. Global e-government, 2006. Providence, Rhode Island: Center for Public Policy, sites play host to a great number of overlapping communities, but others will only tolerate Brown University, 2006. Yang, S. J and Y.J. Park. ‘A Study on the Motivation and the Influence of Using Personal Community’, specific behaviours and forms of video. For example, Flickr accepts video, but only if it is Journal of Consumer Studies 16.4 (2005): 129-150. below 90 seconds in length. Yoon, Kyongwon. ‘The Making of Neo-Confucian Cyberkids: Representations of Young Mobile Phone Users in South Korea’, New Media & Society, 8.5 (2006): 753-771. ______. ‘Retraditionalizing the Mobile: Young People’s Sociality and Mobile Phone Use in Seoul, 1. Alain Depocas, Jon Ippolito, and Caitlin Jones, (eds) Permanence Through Change: The South Korea’, European Journal of Cultural Studies, 6.3 (2003): 327-343. Variable Media Approach, co-published by the Guggenheim Museum and The Daniel Langlois Yoo, Soohyun. ‘Online Community and Community Capacity’, in Gerard Goggin & Mark McLelland Foundation for Art, Science & Technology, 2003. (eds) Internationalising Internet Studies, Routledge: London, 2008, pp. 217-236. 2. ‘ wavelength’ (dir. Michael Snow, 1967) http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=lzPwuP6AmCk. 3. ‘ Wavelength.(Michael.Snow).1967’, http://www.tudou.com/programs/view/UkBCsMeL6qI/. 4. ‘Charlie Schmidt’s “Keyboard Cat”! - ORIGINAL!’, http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=J---aiyznGQ. 5. http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Video_hosting_service. 6. http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/List_of_video_sharing_websites. 7. h ttp://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Comparison_of_video_services. 212 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 213 Clay Shirky’s presentation at the 2005 Long Now conference 8 discussed ‘degenerate’ sys- here, the decision by Apple to not support Flash on its popular iPhone platform, 11 and the tems of classification and archiving: systems with a high level of redundancy, or overlap. subsequent decision of a number of sites to experiment with HTML5, demonstrates how Shirky offered the example of a city as a highly degenerate system. Rather than having one political the technical details of video formatting can be. Vimeo, Dailymotion, and YouTube area for residents and one for business, people can work and live in a number of different have the resources to experiment with HTML5 so that they can gain market share by serving areas. This means the city can accommodate the preferences of different people, and is re- mobile devices, but smaller players may not have those resources. Those that operate with silient to re-zoning and other geographic changes. A second example offered by Shirky is the different goals have less to worry about, or can afford to wait until the technology becomes Rosetta Stone, which was discovered in 1799. As the stone has the same text written in three more popular. While standardization makes these exchanges possible, different configura- different languages, it possesses a degree of redundancy that eventually made it possible to tions make each service unique. recover the lost languages. As I opened with reference to the legendary Michael Snow – whose structural film Wave- My own example, online video, possesses more degeneracy than it can handle. While length was the roundabout inspiration for this essay – this is an appropriate point at which YouTube has become the generic brand of online video, droves of video hosting sites cater to discuss the technological influences upon what might be termed ‘structural online video’. to similar but overlapping groups of users. This degeneracy creates cultural artifacts that are There are many historical and contemporary examples of media art that play with the limits themselves worthy of preservation and consideration. Why does a user choose one site over of the technology available. Two good examples of structural impulses on YouTube are ‘The another? Shortest YouTube Video Ever’ 12 and its companion ‘Longest video on YouTube!’ 13 Just as Snow’s Wavelength centres on a long zoom into a photograph of the sea, the two YouTube These sites have numerous identical or similar features, functions and design elements that videos mentioned take the technical limits of their medium to an equally absurd conclusion. bind them together as a genre. Each, however, is the product of a complex negotiation of The capacities of different codecs to limit file size also comes into play in the creation of on- social, cultural and technological influences. In a work entitled Here Comes Everybody 9, line video, giving rise to a compression arms race for the longest video capacity. There are at Shirky describes three factors at play: a ‘plausible promise, an effective tool, and an accept- least five videos claiming to be the longest, with the reigning champion clocking in at over 36 able bargain for the user’. These terms — promise, tool, and bargain— used in the context of hours. On the other hand, the shortest video is limited by the constraints of video editing and video are not necessarily the most authentic to his original coinage, but will be used through- exporting. As it is impossible to go below one frame, one user has created a video that plays out this essay (though not in that order) as they are useful in identifying the differences and upon the multiple meanings of the term ‘short’, 14 creating a video with the shortest height, similarities between online video sharing systems, between disparate platforms. rather than length – a move of which I am sure Snow would approve. Here we see the princi- ple of degeneracy at work. The longest video on YouTube is 24 hours, and on Vimeo it is just As Sean Cubitt has pointed out, ‘there is no exchange of moving pictures without stand- two hours – but that is like comparing apples and oranges, for Vimeo’s structural tendencies ardisation of the codecs on which the various proprietary players can function’. 10 Such is are towards production technology. Vimeo has positioned itself as a site for video enthusiasts, the importance of the video sharing service as a tool. Subtle technical differences in codec, and as such the technical possibilities and restrictions are significant. For example, groups scripting, and resolution can have enormous implications for the unique possibilities of a on the site are often devoted to specific cameras. This creates a number of videos that exist platform, and can have significant political implications. The users of X platform expect the only to show off technological ability. 15 convenience offered by Y platform. Because codec specifications are connected to many dif- ferent organizations, each with their own agenda, they cannot be ignored in this discussion. The bargain aspect of online video is complicated, but one way to look at it is through the And yet, because the impact of proprietary codecs are for the most part ignored by the user relationship between the site creators and site contributors. Relationships between users base of most sites, codecs only become involved in the negotiation between the user and the are incredibly important, but the primary contract underpinning all others is the end user site when they are part of the underpinning of the community, such as with EngageMedia, a agreements or terms of service. Terms of service documents are important for understanding video sharing organization and website that is specifically devoted to social and environmen- how a service is guided by its owners, thereby leading and limiting the behaviour of the user tal change. Nowhere can this be seen more clearly than in the recent divide that has emerged base through official standards of conduct. Each service or site has its own agenda, which is between HTML5 and Adobe Flash. While I will not discuss the finer points of that debate often commercial, but can occasionally be altruistic. The agenda may be expressed in visu- 8. Clay Shirky, ‘Making The Digital Durable’, The Long Now Conference, San Francisco, California, 11. JR Raphael, ‘Apples’s iPad and the Flash Crash’, http://www.pcworld.com/article/188185/ November 14th, 2005. apples_ipad_and_the_flash_clash.html. 9. Clay Shirky, Here Comes Everybody:The Power of Organizing Without Organizations, New York: 12. ‘The Shortest YouTube Video Ever’, http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=GVxhaBU7sOI. Penguin Press, 2008. 13. ‘Longest video on YouTube’, http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=VmoeXjsVzTk. 10. Sean Cubitt, ’Codecs and Capability’ in Geert Lovink and Sabine Niederer (eds) Video Vortex 14. ‘ Shortest Video On YouTube!’, http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=M4Cw80OhBv8. Reader: Responses to YouTube, Amsterdam: Institute of Network Cultures, 2008, p. 46. 15. ‘RED 4K TEST’, http://vimeo.com/6618681. 214 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 215 ally implicit ways such as design, or through explicit content restrictions and terms of service the site for copyright violation. 19 A user named yuridvm currently has the most viewed video policies. Differences can cut across long-standing political divides, evidence of which can be on Megavideo. Viewed more than two million times, the video depicts a trio of young men seen in open source discourse. Just ask EngageMedia, who have developed Plumi, ‘a free attempting to perform a dance move, and ends with one of the men landing on his face. This and open source video sharing platform for building your own online video community’. 16 video also appears on YouTube, and at first sight appears to be much less popular on this With tools such as these, micro-communities can run their own hosting services that never site. However, closer inspection reveals that all of this user’s videos are derived from popular engage with the dominant practices of YouTube. There are no Keyboard Cat videos here. ‘viral’ videos that are available on YouTube. It seems that the appeal of rewards points en- courages a different type of sharing than is usually seen: the user is using curated material to To briefly consider a site with quite different aims, Pornhub provides a link to its ‘18 U.S.C. increase their viewership. This example, among many others, demonstrates that Megavideo 2257 Records Keeping Requirements Compliance Statement’, 17 as is required by all pro- is a community that values ‘stats’ above all else. ducers of pornographic content. This section of the site also notes that the owners of the site are not the ‘primary producer[s]’ of content on the website, and that the content is perhaps At this point, we have a set of technological limitations backed up by a large body of legalese. not ‘100% accurate’. They stress that they follow procedures to ensure that all content is In addition, we have a social contract, either explicit or implicit, which modifies the user’s provided by adults and depicts adults. They also provide links in their terms of service to laws behaviour. The promise offered by a video service is the basic premise for participating. regarding child pornography and assert the seriousness in which they treat this matter. Not all Some of the promise of a particular platform can be attributed to branding and managerial sites make their terms so obvious, yet this example helps underscore how officially encoded oversight. Given the complexity of large sites, where there might be a wide variety of reasons the behavioural limits are of these sites. to participate, the size of the community itself can be a part of the promise. For example, sci- encestage.com is best summed up by its tag line ‘Streaming Knowledge, Advancing Careers’. Discussing the differences between Facebook and MySpace, social media researcher danah The promise here is financial mobility, and the emphasis upon knowledge as opposed to boyd states that ‘aesthetics are more than simply the “eye of the beholder” - they are cultur- information. Vimeo positions itself as a haven for original content, as their introductory state- ally narrated and replicated’. 18 Although boyd is discussing a different form of social media, ments make clear: ‘Vimeo is a respectful community of creative people who are passionate the importance of interface design and personalization options applies to the present subject, about sharing the videos they make. We provide the best tools and highest quality video in because the options offered to users by those who run the site represent the bargain every the universe. See for yourself and Join today!’ Launched in late 2004, Vimeo currently has a user enters into. Compared to the behemoth YouTube, which offers a wealth of personal community of over 3 million users. information on the profile page, and customizable color schemes, other sites like Vimeo are clean and consistent. The example I will focus on here, Megavideo, is also designed Henry Jenkins states that ‘YouTube’s value depends heavily upon its deployment via other with little opportunity for personalization or personal information, with only a list of videos, social networking sites’. 20 This is equally true of other sites. Since the presence of online comments, friends and a few other personal details available. A large number of users have video pervades almost all corners of online activity, the promise can be something that is essentially blank profiles. Megavideo employs a three-tiered membership structure: Non- external to the site itself. The way that a particular online community views itself often has a members, Members, and Premium. Non-members have access to a time-limited amount of large part to play. As we have seen with Megavideo, the incentive can be money, attention, video; they can watch 72 minutes of video before having to take a 52-minute breather. Mem- or both, but there are other factors involved. As Isabel Pettinato states, ‘a negligible number bers have the same limited access to video, but are able to post their own videos. Premium have achieved a place among the Top Ten of most-viewed videos’. 21 There are a number Membership offers a slew of benefits, including file hosting, ad-revenue sharing, and priority of tiers of participation and while getting over a million hits may be a goal for some, it is not for streaming and converting video. Most interestingly, a Megaupload Premium Membership necessarily the prize for all. If a video seems inane or banal to you, it probably means that you offers access to the ‘rewards program’, which offers points when people view your videos. are not a part of the community. Participation and communication within these parameters Rewards are redeemed by decreasing the cost of membership and, at the highest levels, in are values in and of themselves. cash. While this is not uncommon, it is important to consider in light of accusations against 16. http://www.engagemedia.org/about-us. 19. wconeybeer, ‘Streaming video websites creating new piracy challenge’, http://www.myce.com/ 17. http://www.youporn.com/2257. news/streaming-video-websites-creating-new-piracy-challenge-34604/. 18. danah boyd, ‘Viewing American class divisions through Facebook and MySpace’, ‘Viewing 20. H enry Jenkins, ‘Nine Propositions Towards a Cultural Theory of YouTube’, Henry Jenkins Weblog, American class divisions through Facebook and MySpace’, Apophenia Blog Essay, 24 June, 28 May, 2007, http://www.henryjenkins.org/2007/05/9_propositions_towards_a_cultu.html. 2007, http://www.danah.org/papers/essays/ClassDivisions.html. 21. I sabel Pettinato, ‘Viral Candy’, in Olia Lialina and Dragan Espenschied (eds) Digital Folklore Reader, Stuttgart: Merz & Solitude, 2009. 216 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 217 The poem ‘I love my Motherland’ originated on the message board Tianya.cn, and quickly be- Having considered a number of video sharing platforms, it is possible to see that the high came a viral hit spawning many remixes. 22 This exchange, however, took place for the most level of degeneracy is key to the continued growth of online video as a cultural practice. In part on Chinese video sharing sites Tudou and Youku, whereas there was much less of an order to understand the effects of video sharing, it is important to observe it at a macroscopic impact on Western sites. Tudou.com is a video sharing site based in the People’s Republic of level that takes into account all forms of practice. There is a danger in branding YouTube (or China, and is one of the most popular non-English sites for video sharing. Their recent move even one particular community on YouTube) as typical of video sharing culture. The choices into the creation of original content 23 for their own site – created in an episodic televisual available in video sharing sites are typical of ‘long tail’ economies. 32 In fact, freely avail- style – shows that their interest is in a traditional broadcast relationship. A low viewership for a able PHP scripts allow anyone who is reasonably tech-savvy to run their own video sharing commercial program would be quite embarrassing, but in the face of this particular commu- website. 33It is important to note that in each instance of this culture taking hold, there is a nity, personal video sharing is less important. At the extreme end of this scale is Zeroviews. negotiation between the social and technological rules of participation. biz, a blog that shames YouTube videos that have not received a single view. Ironically, by promoting these videos, or even just by finding them, zeroview.biz negates their value as hav- Applying Shirky’s concepts of tools, bargain and promise to the context of video helps to ing been unwatched. 24 The specific promise of YouTube (broadcasting) steers expectations identify similarities across disparate platforms. The messy technological, social and emo- of high viewership. A zero views blog for Vimeo or Tudou would not nearly be as interesting, tional promises are the life or death of any site. The reasons not to be ‘mainstream’ have to as the implicit arrangement is not predicated on popularity. 25 be enticing, offering opportunities that cannot be reasonably attained elsewhere. As Shirky points out, ‘it is now cheaper to keep things by accident than to delete them on purpose’. 34 The most obvious difference between platforms is language. For example, Rutube 26 operates The increased cost of medium specificity cannot be recouped by appealing to quality. The in Russian, but popular memes like Standing Cat 27 and Double Rainbow 28 are still found plurality of available circulation methods provided by different platforms means that concerns there. Thus, sites do not exist in a vacuum, even across the easily prescribed boundaries of related to the medium have been superseded in importance by the needs of a community. In language. ‘Lipdubs’ which began on Vimeo 29, have spread across all platforms. The same other words, the needs of the many outweigh the needs of the few. can be said of popular YouTube memes such as Keyboard Cat and Double Rainbow. The wa- ters are indeed quite murky when trying to differentiate between communities, and draw easy In response to Michael Snow’s statement, Kevin McGarry states: ‘As an immaterial thing, how lines of classification. Even on sites considered ‘mainstream’, 30 these lines are blurred. In a a moving image looks constitutes what it is, and what concern could be more primary than study of anime music videos, Mizuko Ito has found that, although the practice of creating and what the thing is?’ 35 Although I am not arguing for medium specificity, I am suggesting that sharing these clips had moved to other video sharing sites, 31 the centre of the community ‘what the thing is’ is only as important as its availability. To be inaccessible is to be invisible. continues to be animemusicvideo.org. When community behaviours occur across a number Moving to a landscape that takes media migration for granted offers video culture the op- of different sites, it is clear that community has become more important than medium. portunities for growth in audience participation and awareness that outweigh other concerns. 22. F auna, ‘I love My Motherland’ Poem Rejected, Becomes Viral Hit’, http://www.chinasmack. com/2009/stories/i-love-my-motherland-poem-viral-hit.html. 23. ‘Tudou “That Love Comes” Original Drama Series Debut’, http://www.prnewswire.com/news- releases/tudou-that-love-comes-original-drama-series-debut-105015184.html. 24. ‘ Zero Views: Blog Celebrates The Best Of YouTube’s Worst’, videos, http://www.huffingtonpost. com/2010/08/27/videos-0-views-viral_n_697455.html. 25. This recalls early self-referential video art, such as Vito Acconci’s Theme song, at http://blip.tv/file/3608518, or Richard Serra’s Television delivers people, http://www.tudou.com/ programs/view/c-R1GWCHAn8/. 26. rutube.ru. 27. , http://rutube.ru/tracks/3687916.html?v=14cb1a677afea4a4009d2ef69acf8d27. 28. , http://rutube.ru/tracks/3424781.html?v=8daab3c65a03f62bc44fdb13d71752 32. C hris Anderson. ‘The Long Tail’, Wired, October 2004, 6c. 33. http://www.mediamaxscript.com/Video-Hosting-Script. 29. ‘Lip Dubbing: Endless Dream’, http://www.vimeo.com/123498. 34. Clay Shirky, ‘Private, Public, and the collapse of the Personal’, in Lauren Cornell, Massimiliano 30. Mizuko Ito, ‘The rewards of non-commercial production: Distinctions and status in the anime Gioni and Laura Hoptman (eds) Younger Than Jesus: The Reader. New York: Steidl & Partners, music video scene’, First Monday 15.5 (2010), 2009. http://www.uic.edu/htbin/cgiwrap/bin/ojs/index.php/fm/article/view/2968/2528. 35. Kevin McGarry, Medium Quality: The 2010 International Experimental Media Congress, 21 April, 31. Edited anime television shows and movie set to music. 2010. http://rhizome.org/editorial/3478. 218 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 219 RefeRenCes BLockInG, tRackInG, anD monetIzInG: Anderson, Chris. ‘The Long Tail’, Wired, October 2004, http://www.mediamaxscript.com/Video-Host- youtuBe copyRIGht contRoL anD the ing-Script. DownfaLL paRoDIes boyd, danah. ‘Viewing American class divisions through Facebook and MySpace’, Apophenia Blog Essay, 24 June, 2007, http://www.danah.org/papers/essays/ClassDivisions.html. anDRew cLay Cubitt, Sean. ‘Codecs and Capability’ in Geert Lovink and Sabine Niederer (eds) Video Vortex Reader: Responses to YouTube, Amsterdam: Institute of Network Cultures, 2008. Depocas, Alain, Jon Ippolito and Caitlin Jones (eds) Permanence Through Change: The Variable Media Approach, The Guggenheim Museum and The Daniel Langlois Foundation for Art, Science & Technology, 2003. As a media corporation, YouTube has a legal obligation to reassure other media corporations Ito, Mizuko. ‘The rewards of non-commercial production: Distinctions and status in the anime music video scene’, First Monday 15.5 (2010), http://www.uic.edu/htbin/cgiwrap/bin/ojs/index.php/fm/ that it is doing everything it can to uphold copyright law, in the face of the infringement of article/view/2968/2528. YouTube users. When users remix commercial media content they are potentially contraven- Jenkins, Henry. ‘Nine Propositions Towards a Cultural Theory of YouTube’, Henry Jenkins Weblog, 28 ing the company’s terms and conditions and blackening YouTube’s reputation as a secure May, 2007, http://www.henryjenkins.org/2007/05/9_propositions_towards_a_cultu.html. site to do business. YouTube’s Content ID system attempts to ‘keep everybody happy’ by McGarry, Kevin. Medium Quality: The 2010 International Experimental Media Congress, 21 April, facilitating the blocking, tracking, and monetizing of commercial assets uploaded by users 2010. http://rhizome.org/editorial/3478. who do not own the rights to them. For instance, Sony monetized the unauthorized use of Pettinato, Isabel. ‘Viral Candy’, in Olia Lialina and Dragan Espenschied (eds) Digital Folklore Reader, a song by Chris Brown on the very popular user-generated ‘JK Wedding Entrance Dance’ Stuttgart: Merz & Solitude, 2009. Shirky, Clay. ‘Private, Public, and the Collapse of the Personal’, in Lauren Cornell, Massimiliano Gioni. video. In this case, Sony was a spectacular winner, but the system as a whole favours the Laura Hoptman (eds) Younger Than Jesus: The Reader. New York: Steidl & Partners, 2009. rights-holder and dismisses the commercial rights of the remixer who has added value to the –––––. Here Comes Everybody:The Power of Organizing Without Organizations, New York: Penguin product through their creativity. Other examples of online video remix culture, such as the Press, 2008. Downfall parodies, demonstrate how YouTube’s system can break down. YouTube is part of a culture in which mediation is intensified, and in which people are encouraged to transform themselves into media. Not only can the culture of sharing be at odds with the culture of com- mercialism with which it attempts to engage, it can illustrate some of the important limitations of our ability to experience the world authentically and to pay sufficient attention to the forces of consumerism. YouTube Content ID and the ‘JK Wedding Entrance Dance’ Video In March 2007, Viacom filed a one billion dollar lawsuit against YouTube, alleging direct and indirect infringement of copyright. The latest ruling, in June 2010, went in YouTube’s favour, with the judgement suggesting that the burden of responsibility for policing and monitoring copyright lies with the copyright holder. YouTube was judged to be immune from claims of copyright infringement by corporations such as Viacom under the ‘safe harbor’ provision of the 1998 Digital Millenium Copyright Act (DMCA), by virtue of its implementation of compli- ant ‘notice and takedown’ procedures. YouTube has been able to demonstrate that it oper- ates legally, by responding promptly to official claims of infringement by removing or disabling the audio on videos. However, this does not mean that YouTube is passive or neutral con- cerning copyright infringement, or that its actions are without controversy. Whereas YouTube sees itself operating ‘a creative ecosystem where everybody wins’, 1 ‘free culture’ advocate Lawrence Lessig terms this a ‘perverse system’. 2 1. Mary Gould Stewart, ‘How YouTube Thinks About Copyright’, http://www.ted.com/talks/margaret_ stewart_how_youtube_thinks_about_copyright.html. 2. Lawrence Lessig, ‘Re-examining the Remix’, at http://www.ted.com/talks/lang/eng/lessig_nyed.html. 220 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 221 Viacom’s litigation is the most public expression of conflict between the corporations and ity marks a significant new development in the cooperative relationship between YouTube YouTube users who want, and are able, to upload copyright infringing material belonging and media conglomerates. The Content ID system lets rights-holders decide whether to block to media industries such as television, music, and cinema. YouTube is caught between the the upload altogether, monetize the video, or track the video to gain information about how competing demands of these entities: corporations feel uneasy about the lack of control, and it is being used. The tracking is achieved by ‘YouTube Insight’, a reporting tool that identifies users dislike corporations interfering. 3 Corporations take the position that their products are ‘user sentiment’ by recording views over time, analysing the most viewed parts of the video creating value for YouTube through traffic-driven advertising revenue, revenue to which they (‘Hotspots’) or the least interesting (the parts where people lose interest and close the clip therefore claim some entitlement. Some corporations believe that they should be benefiting down); provides demographic and regional viewing statistics; compares the ‘claimed video’ more substantially from YouTube, hence the size of the Viacom lawsuit, and the refusal of (such as an unofficial visual interpretation of a piece of music) with the official versions; and Warner Music Group (WMG) to re-negotiate its 2006 partnership deal with YouTube at the identifies which external websites the video is being embedded in, and the keywords used to end of 2008, because WMG regards it as an under-valued revenue-sharing arrangement. find the video in search engines. However, corporations may also have wider cultural concerns regarding how copyright in- YouTube employs several mechanisms to identify the 24 hours of video material uploaded fringement on YouTube challenges the way that corporations have traditionally been able every minute, using reference files supplied by the participating rights-holders. Algorithms to determine the reproduction and distribution of their own products. They might feel that are used to convert complete video files into shorter, fixed-size datum files, or ‘MD5 Hashes’. the ability of YouTube users to copy, re-edit, and share audio and video creates a worrying The hashes generated from new uploaded files can be compared to the database of refer- cultural situation in which new contexts of use are afforded to consumers, enabling them to ence hashes, allowing identical video files to be noted. Newer methods work in a similar way, become producers of cultural objects outside of the monetizing traditions of corporate intel- providing ‘fingerprint’ files that match reference files to audio and video uploads that have lectual property. It is unlikely that corporations such as WMG would see YouTube as a ‘vital minor degradations or discrepancies (such as moving image reversal). The fingerprint files cultural archive’, or user video uploads of copyrighted works as ‘fair use’ within new forms of are spectrograms: visual representations of the separated audio and video signals generated participatory and networked society. 4 from algorithmic frequency variations over time. 5 If the system finds a match, it follows whatever rules are attached in the database. The database can be updated on a rolling basis On the issue of copyright infringing videos, YouTube seems to prefer concord over conflict. according to the decisions made by the rights-holder, or to cope with different instructions in It has attempted to create a stable business, increasing potential advertising revenue by de- relation to different regions. veloping tighter controls of uploads and extending its partnership arrangements with rights- holders. YouTube provides a manual DMCA takedown notice system using a ‘Copyright Com- Mary Gould Stewart, a User Experience Manager at YouTube, has given an illuminating video plaint Form’ that anyone can use to request the removal of an uploaded video. It also runs an presentation on this topic. In ‘How YouTube Thinks About Copyright’, 6 Stewart suggests that ‘Audioswap’ facility that offers the uploader an opportunity to automatically replace the audio ‘rights management is no longer simply a question of ownership’, but is a ‘complex web of track of a video with one approved by YouTube’s content partners. The ‘Partner Program’ is relationships and a critical part of our cultural landscape’. Stewart maintains that YouTube is used by YouTube to recruit content partners into revenue-generating opportunities that might empowering content owners by providing a ‘culture of opportunity’, where ‘progressive rights circumnavigate infringement problems. YouTube partnerships allow the sharing of revenue management and new technology’ offer an alternative to simply blocking all re-use of intel- between YouTube and the content partner by using tools such as ‘InVideo’ adverts overlaid lectual property. YouTube’s approach, she argues, sustains new audiences, art forms, and over videos, banner ads, and other forms of marketing and branding. revenue streams that would otherwise be circumscribed. More advanced tools are available for professional content producers to protect their in- In her presentation, Stewart refers to an example of which YouTube appears particularly proud, tellectual property. The ‘Content Verification Program’ allows content to be verified and if the ‘JK Wedding Entrance Dance’ video. 7 This video consists of a five minute real- time re- necessary to use the information supplied to make bulk submission copyright complaints. cording of the beginning of the wedding ceremony of Jill Peterson and Kevin Heinz, who were The major tool used by YouTube against copyright infringement is ‘Content ID’, including married in St Paul, Minnesota on 20 June 2009. The first upload by ‘TheKheinz’ was posted a ‘Audio ID’ and ‘Video ID’, which allows the swift removal of unapproved videos, and at the month after the wedding, when the bride’s father requested that the video be shared with rela- same time provides the opportunity to monetize infringing videos without removal. This facil- tives unable to attend the wedding. The video begins conventionally enough, with the closing 3. Jean Burgess and Joshua Green, YouTube: Online Video and Participatory Culture, Cambridge: 5. E liot Van Buskirk, ‘YouTube Search-and-Delete Code Makes Money for Rights-Holders’, 21 Polity, 2009, p.5. August, 2009, http://www.wired.com/epicenter/2009/08/how-copyright-holders-profit-from- 4. Paul McDonald, ‘Digital Discords in the Online Media Economy: Advertising versus Content infringement-on-youtube. versus Copyright’, in Pelle Snickers and Patrick Vonderau (eds) The YouTube Reader, 6. See: http://www.ted.com/talks/margaret_stewart_how_youtube_thinks_about_copyright.html. Stockholm: National Library of Sweden, 2009, p. 402. 7. http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=4-94JhLEiN0&feature=related. 222 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 223 of the church’s entrance doors. However, its departure from the norm of homemade wedding official music video as a product placement arrangement, a consequence of Doublemint videos quickly becomes apparent, as R&B singer Chris Brown’s track ‘Forever’ begins to play funding the recording costs to develop the music into a full song. In March 2009, and prior over the building’s public address system, and the groom and best man throw their service to the upload of the JK Wedding Entrance Dance video, Brown was charged with assault sheets into the air and begin to dance down the aisle toward the camera. against fellow R&B singer and then girlfriend, Rihanna. Just two days after the Heinz’s wed- ding, Brown pleaded guilty to the charges. Part of his sentence included having to attend Those familiar with ‘surprise first wedding dance’ videos taken at a reception will recognize domestic violence counselling. Brown’s behaviour clearly did not affect the Heinz’s choice of this as a variation upon the tradition of a bride and groom secretly rehearsing choreography music for their occasion, but it has affected how they have reacted to the popularity of their to entertain their guests and produce a memorable ‘surprise’ experience. 8 However, as video. In line with the normal system, the Heinzs were not included in the revenue genera- the ‘JK Wedding Entrance Dance’ video continues, the scale of the choreographic prepara- tion arrangements made between YouTube and Sony. While they cannot benefit directly from tion is revealed, as more and more of the wedding party become involved in the elaborate Sony’s music, they have ‘monetized’ their fame by creating a charitable website that channels entrance dance, and the congregation catch the mood by laughing and clapping along. At donations to an institute that addresses the problem of domestic violence. 10 They have also first the entrants appear singly and in pairs, sometimes performing ambitious moves such as created a piece of popular culture that has been referenced by mainstream television – a handstands and forward rolls, but eventually the whole entrance party can be seen swaying parody of the wedding entrance dance was incorporated into the ‘Niagara’ episode of the and swaggering in exaggerated imitation of dancers from R&B music videos as they make U.S. television comedy The Office in October 2009. their way to the front of the church, with choreography responding to the changing pace of the rhythms in the song. Most of the dancers are wearing ‘cool’ sunglasses, and although However, it is possible to challenge the cosy commercial relationships championed by YouTube. the dancers and congregation that can be seen in the video are almost entirely white, there Lawrence Lessig’s video presentation ‘Re-examining the Remix’ challenges YouTube’s pride is clearly a lovable reference to this black music style, and the sentiments of the song are about its rights management procedures. 11 Lessig views the act of adding video imagery to matched to the feelings of Jill and Kevin on their ‘big day’. The overall effect of the video music protected by copyright as a form of social creativity, a collective expression in which is joyful. The preparation and execution of the choreographed entrance is delightfully well people communicate with others through symbolic performance and inter-video dialogue and executed, and the dancers’ enthusiastic abandonment of the conventions of the wedding imitation. Lessig conceptualizes two major cultures of creativity – commercial and sharing – procession reaches a tearful highpoint with the entrance of the jigging bride. and argues that the latter should not suffer from the former’s strict copyright controls. Lessig suggests that we need well protected spaces of ‘fair use’, so as to respect the rights of the crea- The YouTube Content ID system identified the audio to the wedding video as belonging to tor of remix. Lessig sees YouTube’s Content ID system as a ‘perversion of freedom’ because it Sony, and the instruction was to track and monetize the video as it stood, rather than block can perform a DMCA takedown that might well be challenged and overturned on grounds of the audio track. Within the first two days the video was viewed 3.5 million times, by the end fair use, which the system cannot recognize. YouTube’s system effectively places the power of the first week this had reached 10 million. In 2009, the video was the third most watched of judgement mainly on automatic recognition of infringement and disregards the context of on YouTube, and was publicized by the appearance of Jill and Kevin, and a live recreation of social and cultural sharing in which the copyrighted material might exist. their dance, on American television. In January 2010, the video had been viewed 41 million times. YouTube Insight created new marketing information for Sony, and identified a different By erring on the side of the rights-holders by default, even when the remix may be legal demographic for the song. Click-to-Buy (CTB) links were run over the video and the oppor- under fair use provisions, YouTube’s rights management systems are heavily weighted in tunity to buy the track through Amazon and iTunes led the track to return to the top ten of support of commercial culture. In the case of the ‘JK Wedding Entrance Dance’ video, Sony the download charts 15 months after its original release. Sony also received a share of the waived their right to block the audio track and decided to wait for monetizing opportuni- revenue from Google text ads on the video’s page itself. The CTB rate was double the average ties. Jill Peterson and Kevin Heinz’s planning and rehearsal transformed a sober ritual into for the YouTube site as a whole and a 2.5 times increase on the Clickthrough rate (CTR) of good-natured revelry, and a unique and special event with the help of a piece of commercial the official ‘Forever’ music video (which is currently blocked in the UK). 9 music. Once uploaded to YouTube, however, the Heinz’s video became an object that could be commercially exploited by the-rights holder, while denying the couple any right to direct The ‘JK Wedding Entrance Dance Video’ demonstrates how online rights management is a commercial benefit from their own creativity. A piece of music that began as a musical ‘hook’ ‘complex web of relationships’, as Stewart states. Chris Brown’s ‘Forever’ began its life as for a chewing gum commercial became the soundtrack to a mediated DIY musical wedding a jingle for a Doublemint chewing gum commercial, and the gum can also be seen in the ceremony, which itself became a ‘music video’ working for the profit of a media corporation. Around the grey, largely untested legal area of fair use, practice is actually unfair and iniq- 8. See for example ‘best first dance brubaker’, http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=aeoi16lScf4. 9. Chris LaRosa and Ali Sandler, ‘I now pronounce you monetized: a YouTube video case study’, YouTube Biz Blog, 30 July 2009, http://ytbizblog.blogspot.com/2009/07/i-now-pronounce-you- 10. See: http://www.jkweddingdance.com/. monetized-youtube_30.html. 11. Lawrence Lessig, ‘Re-examining the Remix’. 224 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 225 uitous in terms of the power relationship it institutes, whereby commercial culture exploits Since the first remixes appeared on YouTube, Constantin Film have been issuing ‘cease-and- sharing culture using prohibitive copyright law – a practice that YouTube supports and imple- desist orders’ and have used selective manual DMCA takedowns. They have also had to re- ments with enthusiasm. spond to complaints from companies whose products have been ridiculed in the video. One such product was Microsoft’s Xbox Live, the parody of which was the most popular Downfall Constantin Film and the Downfall Parody video with over four million views at the time of its takedown in 2007. The video in question If Sony’s video of a lively wedding entrance allows YouTube to claim a dubiously harmoni- ‘Hitler Gets Banned From Xbox Live’ 16 was made by UK computing student Chris Bowley ous ‘spreading of joy’ for its rights management systems, there can be no doubt about the when he was 19. Bowley claims the idea came to him late one night as he was trying to sleep. difficulty and conflict over YouTube’s rights management for the Downfall parody videos. He got up, and uploaded his video an hour later. Here was a spontaneous thought turned Downfall (Der Untergang), 12 a film about Hitler’s final days, is an internationally co-produced into action, as Bowley drew upon the experience of friends who had had their Xbox consoles feature film directed by Oliver Hirschbiegel for the German production company Constantin turned off due to copyright infringement issues. The video is a bit of fun; instead of depicting Film. For the last four years or so, hundreds of user-remixed clips from the film have been up- Hitler as a Microsoft figurehead, he is transformed into an Xbox-using gamer victim, angry loaded regularly to websites such as YouTube. The remix has most commonly taken the form at Microsoft’s drastic action against its consumers. The satire is quite gentle, yet Bowley was of alterations to the English subtitles, which are re-written to replace the originals, leaving the threatened with legal action by Constantin Film, presumably via a Microsoft complaint. rest of the clip unaltered. The scene that has been used repeatedly is set in the war room of the Führerbunker in Berlin, as Hitler discovers that he has lost the war, and excoriates his Unlike Sony, Constantin Film has shown no interest in monetizing its property. The company officers, calling them cowards and traitors. 13 Subjects of these parodies include American merely wants to block the use of its content. The company’s more recent blanket approach to political figures such as Obama, Palin, and Clinton; issues in sports such as relegations and assert copyright control of Downfall can be viewed as an attempt to reassert control over their transfers in football; the latest technological gadgets such as the iPad; and events in popular property in the face of embarrassing appropriation and time-consuming management of in- music such as the death of Michael Jackson, or the split-up of Oasis. However, more local or fringement. Above all, it may appear that the company is not in control of its imagery – which is personal subjects such as problems with car parking or council politics can also feature. In ironic, given that the power of the clip is its depiction of a person who has so dramatically ‘lost April 2010, Constantin Film requested a more systematic takedown of the Downfall parodies, it’. Individuals who have worked on the film, such as director Hirschbiegel, have stated that which is possible using YouTube’s Content ID technology. Even though it is likely that the they have no problem with the parodies. Hirschbiegel sees the parodies as an amusing ad- remixes would be considered legal under fair use copyright legislation, YouTube acceded to aptation of history for participation in contemporary culture, although he regrets that he does the request. As we now know, YouTube just wants to keep everyone happy: not receive any royalties from the parodies. 17 The reaction of online cultural interest groups to the systematic takedown of the videos has been largely negative. The company’s decision Content ID has helped create an entirely new economic model for rights holders. We has been characterized as misguided, heavy-handed, and a possibly illegal violation of fair use are committed to supporting new forms of original creativity, protecting fair use, and legislation. For instance, Nicholas Lovell of the games business blog ‘Gamesbrief’ has made a providing a seamless user experience – all while we help rights owners easily manage number of suggestions of the ways that Constantin Film could have monetized the parodies, their content on YouTube. 14 such as building a YouTube channel, claiming revenue for them, using a Facebook fan page, and creating a website to host remix competitions. 18 However, this vision of friction-free ‘con- In public, Constantin Film are asserting their rights and discouraging unauthorized use of vergence culture’, which castigates Constantin Film for missing out on commercial opportuni- copyright. They say they feel ambivalent about the attention, as it publicizes the film, but has ties, fails to acknowledge the larger issues that the company has had to deal with, and that a negligible effect on sales. Having to monitor the uploads and respond to complaints and could be exacerbated if the company were to be seen as directly profiting from the remixes. controversial uses of the clip has proven tiresome and, one suspects, damaging. 15 12. Downfall (dir. Oliver Hirschbiegel, 2004). 13. These remixes, known as ‘Downfall parodies’ are also referred to as the ‘Hitler Finds Out Meme’, the ‘Hitler Gets Angry Meme’, or simply ‘The Hitler Meme’. See, ‘Downfall / Hitler Meme’, http:// 16. ‘Hitler banned from Xbox live’, http://www.dailymotion.com/video/x27sh3_hitler-banned-from- knowyourmeme.com/memes/downfall-hitler-meme. xbox-live_videogames. 14. Shenaz Zack, ‘Content ID and Fair use, Broadcasting Ourselves blog, 22 April 2010, http:// 17. Oliver Hirschbiegel, telephone interview with New York magazine, widely reported online, for youtube-global.blogspot.com/2010/04/content-id-and-fair-use.html. example, http://www.switched.com/2010/01/18/downfall-director-loves-the-hitler-mashups. 15. Martin Moszkowicz (head of film and television at Constantin Film), AP press release, widely 18. Nicholas Lovell, ‘Are Constantin Film the stupidest company in the entire world?’, Gamesbrief reported online, for example, http://mediaissues.org/2010/04/21/popular-internet-meme- blog, 21 April, 2010, http://www.gamesbrief.com/2010/04/are-constantin-film-the-stupidest- removed-from-youtube. company-in-the-entire-world/. 226 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 227 Fair Use and Fair Dealing the very clip they are trying to block. Templeton went out of his way to produce a clean video Leaving aside the perceived economic benefits of a more permissive ‘free culture’ allow- by buying a copy of the DVD, and copying it without circumventing the encryption. And yet, ing for creatively building on what has gone before, as advocated by Lawrence Lessig, the he nevertheless ended up predicting the ‘downfall’ of his own clip. His video was taken down major concern of the supporters of online user-participation has been that Constantin Film’s by YouTube in April 2010. It was, however, reinstated when Templeton filed a dispute claim. systematic takedown could be illegal according to the fair use provision in U.S. copyright leg- islation that may allow for remix-type activity. In this respect, Brad Templeton, a former chair The fair use defence of parody seems to have worked in favour of those uploading Hitler and current board member of the Electronic Frontier Foundation (EFF) has been particularly meme videos, as many such videos are still available on YouTube. Constantin Film’s public prominent. The EFF is a U.S.-based non-profit organization that campaigns for civil liberties blocking response may well have sent the message that the downfall of the Downfall parody in relation to computing and telecommunications. In relation to user-generated video content, had begun, and the news may have discouraged further infringement, yet Constantin Film the EFF states: have not made any detectable progress in their attempts to end the use of their film. The downfall, in fact, was a temporary downturn, as many of the videos that were removed Online video hosting services like YouTube are ushering in a new era of free expression have returned. Furthermore, new parodies have been uploaded: there are clusters of videos online. By providing a home for “user-generated content” (UGC) on the Internet, these about events that have occurred since April 2010, such as the World Cup in South Africa services enable creators to reach a global audience without having to depend on tra- and the Deepwater Horizon BP oil spill. ditional intermediaries like television networks and movie studios. The result has been an explosion of creativity by ordinary people, who have enthusiastically embraced the Spoof, Parody, and Satire opportunities created by these new technologies to express themselves in a remarkable Regarding parodic practices in online video, Rebekah Willett has claimed that parodies are variety of ways. playful transformations of the text, placed on the continuum between homage and satire. Satire, she states, creates distance from the original work, whereas homage imitates the text Furthermore, the organization claims: more closely. 21 Speaking literally, the Downfall parodies transform nothing but the subtitles, yet this itself is transformative: it creates substantial transformative distance from the host The life blood of much of this new creativity is fair use, the copyright doctrine that per- text, like a cuckoo in the nest. The original work functions as a pretext, a medium for speak- mits unauthorized uses of copyrighted material for transformative purposes. Creators ing about other issues. The transformation in the Downfall videos is achieved by making a naturally quote from and build upon the media that makes up our culture, yielding new dramatic scene comedic. At the same time, as Virginia Heffernan observes in the New York works that comment on, parody, satirize, criticize, and pay tribute to the expressive Times, the parodies reveal Downfall as a ‘closeted Hitler comedy’. Hitler, Heffernan writes, is works that have come before. These forms of free expression are among those pro- played as ‘flat-out melodrama’ by Bruno Ganz’s ‘goofy, trembling, hopeless rage’. Through tected by the fair use doctrine. 19 repetitive, contentious, and allusive iteration by the remix videos, Downfall’s realist humaniza- tion of Hitler is revealed as excessive melodrama. 22 Fair use remains a grey area in American copyright legislation, but it is more permissive than the U.K.’s ‘fair dealing’ equivalent, which allows for criticism but not for parody. When as- In relation to the question of whether or not the Downfall videos are parodies that comment sessing fair use of copyrighted material, one factor under consideration is whether the new on the work itself, or employ that work to satirize another issue, Templeton suggests that the work is transformative, as opposed to derivative, of the existing work. Cases of fair use have transformative defence applies to all Downfall parodies: established parody as acceptable, where parody is defined as using a work in order to poke fun or comment on the work itself. Satire, however, is defined as using one work to poke fun While my video obviously does qualify as criticism, even the videos about unrelated or comment on something beyond the original work. topics like X-box live are sending up the over the top nature of the scene, at least to a small degree, and illuminate the character of the scene in a new way, though that may In fact, Templeton made his own exemplary fair use Downfall parody, ‘Hitler, As “Downfall” Pro- not be their primary goal. 23 ducer, Orders A DMCA Takedown’. 20 His declared purpose was to make fun both of the meme and of the actions of Constantin Film, in a video which re-imagines the bunker as the Con- stantin Film offices, Hitler as a company producer, and Hitler’s generals as lawyers. The video 21. Rebekah Willett, ‘Parodic Practices: Amateur Spoofs on Videovideomaker Sites’, in David attempts to enlighten the viewer about DMCA and satirizes the actions of the company using Buckingham and Rebekah Willett (eds) Video Cultures: Media Technology and Everyday Creativity, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 2009, pp. 115-132. 22. V irginia Heffernan, ‘The Hitler Meme’, The New York Times, 24 October, 2008, http://www. 19. E lectronic Frontier Foundation, ‘Fair Use Principles for user Generated Video Content’, http:// nytimes.com/2008/10/26/magazine/26wwln-medium-t.html?_r=2. www.eff.org/issues/ip-and-free-speech/fair-use-principles-usergen. 23. Brad Templeton, ‘YouTube makes statement on Content-ID takedowns’, Brad Ideas, 24 April, 20. S ee: http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=PzUoWkbNLe8. 2010, http://ideas.4brad.com/youtube-makes-statement-content-id-takedowns. 228 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 229 Thus, Templeton is implying that even though most of the Downfall videos are satirical and engage with the wider issues of deep water oil production and the forces that drive it. In the therefore might not qualify as fair use, they are in fact fair use because they build on and most popular video of the collection, ‘Hitler rants about the Deepwater Horizon oil spill’, Hitler therefore transform the resonant exaggeration of the character’s anger which is integral to is written as a concerned environmentalist who gets angry with incompetent officials about the original work, and thus these parodies are not just a comment on another topic. This the death of his pet duck Sammy. 25 In other versions, Hitler’s beach house is ruined, his distinction is clearly debatable. And yet, as long as such debates remain untested in court, planned holiday cruise is jeopardized, and he cannot help the cleanup operation because he participatory video practice continues to challenge the YouTube ecosystem and vex those is trapped in a YouTube video (this at least is witty). 26 Even if the videos were to be politically affected by speculative DMCA takedowns. Interestingly, as ‘The Hitler Meme’ has matured, smarter, funnier, and more widely viewed, this would not make Downfall remixes politically it has become more overtly parodic. The self-named ‘Der Untergangers’ or ‘The Downfallers’ efficacious. use an online ‘Downfall Parodies Forum’, subscribe to each other’s channels on YouTube, and have expanded the remixes beyond the most commonly used clip to other scenes from Mediatized Creative Play for Sociability the film. 24 Other videos use or reference historical films containing contemporaneous figures In relation to the activities of the ‘Untergangers’, Willett studied a similar group of online video such as Stalin, or actual footage of Hitler speeches. In this way, attention is turned towards content generators. These are largely groups of young men making spoof videos of films and the film itself, and the story world surrounding it. television programs and, as Willett shows, are displaying their cultural capital and showing off their production skills for the purpose of male bonding and identity construction. In ef- However, the Downfall parodies should ultimately be regarded as the product of satirical fect, they had shifted some of their socialization through media from talking about a media practice, as well as a long-running, faithful and prolific meme. The practice has endured product, as members of an audience, to making and sharing their own imitative media. As because of the ease with which the original subtitles can be replaced, and the adaptability Willett rightly concludes, this is not the same as Henry Jenkins’ ‘convergence culture’, for of the scene’s narrative to the mapping of unrelated current events. It is like a mini-film, traditional media consumption is still important, and is consumed in parallel with the pro- constituted of three acts: the delivery of bad news; the lengthy rant in reaction to this news; duction of user-generated content. What Willett is describing is mediatized creative play for and then quiet resignation to the new situation. For a long while – for nearly the entire his- sociability facilitated by our changing relationship to technologies of media production, for the tory of YouTube, in fact – the scene has managed to bear repetition thanks to the wit of the development of ‘sharing culture’. The Downfall remixes, then, are not an example of Jenkins’ remixers, and the novelty added by new referents. The popularity of the parodies depends on convergence culture: amateur media practice converging with traditional media. Rather, they a number of factors, including the timelines of the video, and the size of the groups to which possess a supplementary, mediatized sociability: people drawing upon their own personal the videos might appeal. The videos are particularly popular if they address topics likely to interests and experiences, and mediatising them. As social, sharing objects, the mutually op- appeal to the groups most likely to view them. Thus, one of the most widely viewed Downfall posed concepts of amateur and professional are not helpful when describing these videos. In videos, Chris Bowley’s ‘Hitler Gets Banned From Xbox Live’, simultaneously taps into gaming contrast to the vast majority of people who continue to participate in both traditional and new and geek technology culture, and to the issue of Microsoft’s response to the users of pirated media as non-producing users, these are people creating meaningful objects as aesthetic software. The video includes plenty of references to authentic console and online gaming experiences about events and subjects they find worthwhile. culture, such as the PlayStation3 console, and the need to have spent months ‘finding the agility orbs on Crackdown’. These ‘in-jokes’ make the video appealing to insiders, without It is difficult to think of a film clip that has invited participation to the same extent as the alienating wider audiences. Downfall clip. However, we might recall the major meme of pre-YouTube web video, the ‘Star Wars Kid’ (SWK), which showed 15-year-old Ghyslain Raza, whose private moment The removal of this video in 2007 is evidence that it caused irritation to Microsoft and Con- of imitating a Jedi warrior from Star Wars became very publicly remixed into other media. stantin Film at the time. However, these video practices are not a model for engaged and On this newer occasion, the offended party is not the private individual, but the production effective civic engagement and dialogue between citizens, governments and corporations. company Constantin Film. Both examples are sustained by a largely young, male subculture Consider the handful of Downfall videos that take the Deepwater Horizon oil spill as their sub- seeking the admiration of their peers, and wider fame. However, unlike the SWK culture, the ject. The disaster began on 20 April 2010, the day before Constantin Film initiated its blanket Downfall or ‘Hitler Gets Angry’ (HGA) meme is not mere postmodern parody, but often clever takedown. And yet, despite the global interest in this environmental catastrophe, the videos and engaging satire. It is also a more conflicted example of remix culture because it began made by young, American ‘Untergangers’ have failed to capture significant audiences. They and continues within the corporate space of YouTube. HGA is not SWK, but it continues to are unfunny, and inevitably treat a complex issue simplistically. The videos do not recognize that BP is a global corporation – all-too-conveniently blaming the ‘Fucking Brits’ – and do not 25. B enad361, ‘Downfall Parodies’ channel. As of October 2010, the video had 51,000 views. See: http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=LICAosO79nA. 24. The Downfall Parodies Forum is available at http://s1.zetaboards.com/downfallparodies/index/. 26. ‘ Hitler find out about the BP oil spill’, http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=YC5paVe1Fjw, ‘Hitler See YouTube user channels such as ‘Sine! Cosine! Tangent!!!’, http://www.youtube.com/user/ finds out about the BP oil spill’, http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=9mDIUZy7omw, and ‘Hitler is Edudn01 and ‘Downfall Parodies’, http://www.youtube.com/user/hitlerrantsparodies. informed about the oil spill’, http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=_-y7Ri3EmMo. 230 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 231 highlight how the web can act as a playground for the re-purposing of traditional media, video participation, in which the individual and the collective can more harmoniously co- that chases ‘the logic of late modernity as the personalization of media and the validation of evolve, the relationship may become stalled in the power games of media corporations and individualism’. 27 traditional rights management. YouTube videos might circulate predominantly in a conven- tional culture of monetization, rather than in more alternative forms of meaningful dialogue. Stiegler, ‘Attention Resources’, and the Politics of Memory The Downfall parodies, which make use of corporate intellectual property in order to mediate Reference to the critical philosophy of Bernard Stiegler enables a consideration of the broad- everyday personal and collective experience, expose some of the fault-lines in YouTube’s er significance of video practices such as the Downfall parody. Stiegler predicts that the glo- rights management. They do not work entirely in the favour of Constantin Film, nor entirely bal teletechnologies will destroy our ability to reflect upon our world. 28 We are being reduced, for the freedom of the user. One can’t help thinking that, for all the joy created by Jill and Stiegler suggests, to a stock of ‘attention resources’ for the purposes of stimulating consump- Kevin Heinz’s video, its memorialization of life is severely tarnished by its incorporation into tion, and we need to rejuvenate our sense of time to think, be free, and to take care using a the global economy of attention that has characterized the ecology of industrially produced new ‘politics of memory’, the temporal retention of experience. 29 Stiegler equates conscious- cultural objects. ness with cinematic montage, variously constituted by primary experience, secondary recol- lections of experience, and tertiary temporal objects, such as films and television programs. Conclusion His concern is that industrially produced temporal objects from media corporations will come The conflict over participatory culture is in part due to the fact that ‘media consumers want to constitute an increasing proportion of our experience of the world, thus harming our abil- to become media producers, while media producers want to maintain their traditional domi- ity to experience the world authentically. 30 On a voluntary basis, cinematic temporal objects nance over media content’. 33 At the moment, ‘commercial culture’ seems somewhat at have monetized our ‘free time’, which is not ‘free’, in any case, but leisure as a form of labour. odds with that which Lessig terms ‘sharing culture’. The rights management and copyright The consumer, as alienated proletariat, is unaware that they are buying industrially-produced infringement systems used by YouTube are either ineffectual and possibly illegal, or overzeal- consciousness. 31 ous ways of monetizing other people’s creativity. Lessig’s claim that the YouTube system of copyright control is ‘perverse’ is perhaps overstated, yet no more so than YouTube’s assertion Stiegler argues that we need to counteract this industrialization of experience, and that the that they operate ‘a creative ecosystem where everybody wins’. YouTube’s Content ID system internet may contribute to this political goal, because it profoundly modifies the oppositional favours corporate needs over the wishes of ordinary users. It is a shame that the fate of the relation between the producer and consumer. A new industrial economy of memory may ‘JK Wedding Entrance Dance’ video lies with Sony and that the video’s creators cannot mon- enable a transformative participation in the consumption and production of temporal objects etize their own creativity beyond channelling charitable donations. Yet, YouTube’s copyright such as film and video, facilitating a healthier relationship between the individual and the control system is also a blunt instrument for dealing with fair use remixes of cultural objects, collective. In other words, internet technologies may allow the individual to contribute to a such as the Downfall parodies. The system does not allow Constantin Film to exercise control, more dialogic production/consumption of experience. 32 Although this is a theoretical pos- and it both antagonizes remixers and leaves them in its thrall. The ‘Untergangers’, apparently sibility, given the blocking, tracking, and monetizing ecosystem championed by YouTube, as desperate for survival as Hitler himself, use strategies such as ‘flipping’ or ‘mirroring’, we should be circumspect about the development of read/write, participatory or ‘sharing which avoids Content ID blocking by reversing the image; create multiple accounts in case culture’. YouTube videos constitute a new form of tertiary external memory of experience and of suspension; and provide detailed information on their channel regarding their fair use of temporal objects. Rather than encouraging a truly transformative reciprocal culture of online copyright material. In this case, both sides of the remix divide can claim grievance. In an interview, Richard Grusin has suggested that the ‘key to the creation of the field of new 27. Andrew Clay, ‘BMW Films and the Star Wars Kid: “Early Web Cinema” and Technology’, in media studies was the intensification of mediation at the end of the twentieth century, not its Bruce Bennett, Marc Furstenau and Adrian Mackenzie (eds) Cinema and Technology: Cultures, newness’. 34 Both the ‘JK Wedding Entrance Dance’ video and the Downfall parodies support Theories, Practices, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 2008, p. 50. this view. As Michel de Certeau claims, we have always been users in the practice of everyday 28. B ernard Stiegler, Technics and Time 1: The Fault of Epimetheus, trans. Richard Beardsworth life, if not of products then of the processes of individualized mass culture. 35 To this statement, and George Collins, Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1998. 29. See Robert Sinnerbrink, ‘Culture Industry Redux: Stiegler and Derrida on Technics and Cultural Politics’, Transformations 17 (2009), http://www.transformationsjournal.org/journal/issue_17/ article_05.shtml. 33. Henry Jenkins, ‘Quentin Tarantino’s Star Wars?: Digital Cinema, Media Convergence, and 30. S ee Patrick Crogan, ‘Essential Viewing’, Film Philosphy 10 (2006), http://www.film-philosophy. Participatory Culture’, Henry Jenkins Publications, http://web.mit.edu/cms/People/henry3/ com/2006v10n2/crogan.pdf. starwars.html. 31. See Daniel Ross, ‘The Cinematic Condition of the Politico-Philosophical Future’, Scan, http:// 34. Geoff Cox, ‘On Premediation: Interview with Richard Grusin’, http://www.anti-thesis.net/contents/ scan.net.au/scan/journal/display.php?journal_id=99. texts/premediation.pdf. 32. See ‘Anamnesis and Hypomnesis’, Ars Industrialis, http://arsindustrialis.org/anamnesis-and- 35. Michel de Certeau, The Practice of Everyday Life, trans. Steven Rendall, Berkeley: University of hypomnesis. California Press, 1984. 232 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 233 I would add that media has always been social and participatory, only mediatized in different RefeRenCes ways. In Stiegler’s terms, we have always been technology, because he sees our very humanity ‘Anamnesis and Hypomnesis’, Ars Industrialis, http://arsindustrialis.org/anamnesis-and-hypomnesis. as defined by the prosthetic use of technical objects to make a different life than that which is Burgess, Jean and Joshua Green. YouTube: Online Video and Participatory Culture, Cambridge: Pol- determined by our biology alone: ‘in this sense we have always been media(ated)’, and media ity, 2009. are becoming increasingly closer to ‘us’. 36 Downfall remixes allow people to turn their interests Clay, Andrew. ‘BMW Films and the Star Wars Kid: “Early Web Cinema” and Technology’, in Bruce and experience, and indeed themselves, into media, as many of us do as part of our everyday Bennett, Marc Furstenau and Adrian Mackenzie (eds) Cinema and Technology: Cultures, Theories, use of online social media such as Facebook and Twitter. In Stiegler’s terms, this experience Practices, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 2008, pp. 37-52. might just be ‘too fast’, too individualized, and too easily exploited by, or incorporated within, Cox, Geoff. ‘On Premediation: Interview with Richard Grusin’, http://www.anti-thesis.net/contents/ corporate media. In this respect, it might be more appropriate to refer to ‘content-generated texts/premediation.pdf. Crogan, Patrick. ‘Essential Viewing’, Film Philosphy 10 (2006), http://www.film-philosophy. users’ (CGU) than to ‘user-generated content’ (UGC). This term acknowledges the extent to com/2006v10n2/crogan.pdf. which we are either made by, or make ourselves in, the processes of mediation, and some- de Certeau, Michel. The Practice of Everyday Life, trans. Steven Rendall, Berkeley: University of times within remixes of commercial culture. As engaged couples plan their wedding ceremo- California Press, 1984. nies as if they were music videos, and people use Downfall as a proxy for their own views of Electronic Frontier Foundation. ‘Fair Use Principles for user Generated Video Content’, http://www.eff. an issue, it is clear that we are made by the content, and adopt new technologies at the same org/issues/ip-and-free-speech/fair-use-principles-usergen. time as we are transformed by them. We have always been CGU, and our mediation will always Heffernan, Virginia. ‘The Hitler Meme’, The New York Times, 24 October, 2008, http://www.nytimes. appear novel - although not always as joyfully and harmoniously as YouTube would have us com/2008/10/26/magazine/26wwln-medium-t.html?_r=2. Jenkins, Henry. ‘Quentin Tarantino’s Star Wars?: Digital Cinema, Media Convergence, and Participa- believe. tory Culture’, Henry Jenkins Publications, http://web.mit.edu/cms/People/henry3/starwars.html. Kember, Sarah and Joanna Zylinska. ‘Creative Media: Performance, Invention, Critique’, in Janis Jef- feries, Maria Chatzichristodoulou and Rachel Zerihan (eds) Interfaces of Performance, Farnham: Ashgate, 2009, pp. 7-26. LaRosa, Chris and Ali Sandler. ‘I now pronounce you monetized: a YouTube video case study’, YouTube Biz blog, 30 July, 2009, http://ytbizblog.blogspot.com/2009/07/i-now-pronounce-you- monetized-youtube_30.html. Lovell, Nicholas. ‘Are Constantin Film the stupidest company in the entire world?’, Gamesbrief blog, 21 April, 2010, http://www.gamesbrief.com/2010/04/are-constantin-film-the-stupidest-company-in- the-entire-world/. McDonald, Paul. ‘Digital Discords in the Online Media Economy: Advertising versus Content versus Copyright’, in Pelle Snickers and Patrick Vonderau (eds) The YouTube Reader, Stockholm: National Library of Sweden, 2009, pp. 387-405. Ross, Daniel. ‘The Cinematic Condition of the Politico-Philosophical Future’, Scan, http://scan.net.au/ scan/journal/display.php?journal_id=99. Sinnerbrink, Robert. ‘Culture Industry Redux: Stiegler and Derrida on Technics and Cultural Politcs’, Transformations 17 (2009), http://www.transformationsjournal.org/journal/issue_17/article_05. shtml. Stiegler, Bernard. Technics and Time 1: The Fault of Epimetheus, trans. Richard Beardsworth and George Collins, Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1998. Templeton, Brad. ‘YouTube makes statement on Content-ID takedowns’, Brad Ideas, 24 April, 2010, http://ideas.4brad.com/youtube-makes-statement-content-id-takedowns. Van Buskirk, Eliot. ‘YouTube Search-and-Delete Code Makes Money for Rights-Holders’, Wired, 21 August, 2009, http://www.wired.com/epicenter/2009/08/how-copyright-holders-profit-from-infringe- ment-on-youtube. Willett, Rebekah. ‘Parodic Practices: Amateur Spoofs on Video sharing Sites’, in David Buckingham and Rebekah Willett (eds) Video Cultures: Media Technology and Everyday Creativity, Basingstoke: Palgrave Macmillan, 2009, pp. 115-132. Zack, Shenaz. ‘Content ID and Fair use’, Broadcasting Ourselves blog, 22 April, 2010, http://youtube- global.blogspot.com/2010/04/content-id-and-fair-use.html. 36. Sarah Kember and Joanna Zylinska, ‘Creative Media: Performance, Invention, Critique’, in Janis Jefferies, Maria Chatzichristodoulou, and Rachel Zerihan (eds) Interfaces of Performance, Farnham: Ashgate, 2009, pp. 4-5. 234 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 235 cuLtuRaL anaLytIcs at woRk: the 2008 The Data-Image u.s. pResIDentIaL onLIne VIDeo aDs The millions of users creating, sharing, viewing, tagging and commenting on video through a multitude of online video sharing and social networking sites results in what can justifiably be taRa zepeL termed a territory of online video data. Like much of the data in our digital cultural database, this data comes encoded in a form defined by the cycle of cultural production and consump- tion that characterizes contemporary social and technological infrastructure. We can think of this visual manifestation of data form as the data-image. The encoding process for the data- image is collective and dynamic. If offline moving-image content, both analogue and digital, engenders culture through the viewer’s reception of the medium, then online moving-image Note: hi-res color versions of the visualizations in this article, as well as a number of additional visualizations related to this study are available at: lab.softwarestudies.com/2010/12/2008-us- content propagates culture through the user’s direct interaction with the image and, because presidential-campaign-ads.html the image is in the form of data, through the user’s direct interaction with data. Culture comes in the form of data. The story of the data-image doesn’t end there. Based on this interaction, the web’s partici- patory architecture builds metadata into the content of the image. As techno-doubters and Data, data, data. We have lots of it. Today’s techno-cultural landscape is characterized by techno-utopists alike have pointed out, the ability of viewer reception to affect the trajectory of a steep increase in the amounts of data captured, processed, archived and generated. Not cultural content is, in and of itself, nothing new. It is not that an ancestral version of the data- only have the cultural storehouses of old gone digital, thereby creating a vast global database image was not possible in the age of offline media. What is unique to the cultural experience of existing cultural artifacts, we are constantly generating new cultural artifacts – cultural of online video production and consumption is the frequency of transformation. Because artifacts born digitally, in the form of data. Our global cultural database is exploding, and one online media interaction and dissemination is literally written into the media content and can catalyst for this explosion is the evolving medium of online video. This subset of the cultural be quantitatively measured, the form that online media takes can assume infinitely more database, which has been growing rapidly since 2005, has become a field of increasing criti- iterations, and this form is selected for and transformed at the pace of fibre-optic cables. This cal curiosity alongside its expanding significance for artistic, social and political use. 1 In what revs up both the speed and scale at which media interaction and form can lead to cultural follows, I will be proposing a research methodology appropriate to the scale and potential im- ideas, flows and stylistic preferences. pact of online video. Over the past two years, the Software Studies Initiative at the University of California, San Diego (UCSD) has been developing Cultural Analytics, 2 a new methodology Online Video: The Challenge of ‘Watching’ the Network for researching and teaching visual and interactive media. As a member of this initiative, I The availability of this amount of data, and of data that feeds upon itself, generates a reposi- explore how this methodology might apply to the analysis of online video. To illustrate one tory of image-based cultural material unparalleled in size, and potential relations. This body potential application, I turn to a specific set of video clips used as advertisements during the of material proves challenging for our standard 19th and 20th century ways of representing 2008 U.S. presidential campaign. and understanding culture, which typically involve the methods of close reading and/or com- parative qualitative analysis of a relatively small sample set. Using these methods, how could During their campaigns, both Barack Obama and John McCain hosted their own YouTube we even begin to explore the type of cultural innovation associated with online video, which channels, and used the online video portals to showcase speeches, interviews, commercials involves hundreds of billions – and soon trillions – of objects and histories, linked together on and debates. The adoption of this new medium as a political communication tool provides a a global scale? Take the following statistic: as of May 2010, 24 hours of video are uploaded to unique and timely opportunity for exploring the cultural implications of online video: for exam- YouTube every minute and, taken as a whole, the global community of users watch over two ple, for the way we understand form and visual design, and for the way visual rhetoric works billion videos per day. 3 Any individual scholar, group of scholars, or even entire universities on the socio-political scale of the internet. The preliminary analysis that follows looks at the or think tanks, cannot possibly view all this material, parse it, or draw insightful conclusions role online video had to play in the campaigns by way of revealing differences and patterns about the relationships constituted by it based on anything but sheer intuition. Computers can. in visual form, through two comparisons: 1) between advertisements originally designed for television and for web broadcast and 2) between advertisements for Obama and for McCain. Currently, many realms of scientific and social inquiry have embraced this solution. The sciences, business and government all rely on computer-based processing and analysis to explore similarly large datasets. The developing fields of information visualization, scientific 1. Examples of this increasing critical curiosity include numerous web and blog commentaries, visualization, and visual analytics are the outgrowths of computerized methods of analysis. academic and industry organized conferences and a growing list of recent publications: Video Vortex Reader (2008), YouTube: Online Video and Participatory Culture (2009), The YouTube Reader (2010) and Watching YouTube: Extraordinary Videos by Ordinary People (2010). 2. http://lab.softwarestudies.com/2008/09/cultural-analytics.html. 3. http://www.youtube.com/t/fact_sheet, accessed September 25, 2010. 236 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 237 The commonality between these methods resides in the technique of visualization. Because Cultural Analytics as Cultural Exploration of the breadth of its application and use, the term visualization eludes exact definition inde- As a methodology, Cultural Analytics offers a new paradigm for cultural analysis and informa- pendent of context; in general, however, the visualization of large datasets involves mapping tion visualization. This paradigm matches the data-explosion of networked and ubiquitous data onto a visual display for the purposes of discovering and/or communicating data struc- cultural creation with the processing power of computers. This paradigm brings the cultural ture. Thus, visualization holds tremendous aesthetic and cognitive possibilities for uncovering exploration of comparably large datasets in line with the techniques and methods of the most patterns and understanding relationships. data-intensive scientific and business inquiries. This paradigm focuses on real-time visualiza- tions of data that dare to ask challenging theoretical questions about the form and trajectory The arts and humanities have, however, begun to catch on. In the interdisciplinary field of of current cultural artifacts, dynamics and flows. digital humanities, people are using computer power to mine, process and represent large quantities of data. However, the cultural content selected for analysis is usually canonical Elements: Defining the Cultural Analytics Methodology texts: those deemed influential enough to be worthy of further investigating the rules and Cultural Analytics feeds off today’s techno-cultural landscape. It borrows from methods for the questions driven by ex post facto historical assessment. History is not objective. Moreover, quantification and analysis of data: statistical data analysis, information graphics, information very rarely does this cultural data excavation involve images, let alone video, and very rarely visualization, scientific visualization and computer simulation. However, the following char- does it delve into the wealth of contemporary cultural material. acteristics distinguish the cultural analytics paradigm from these related methodologies: 5 Companies such as Amazon, Google and Neilsen do capture and visualize a subset of the 1) Exploring and visualizing the global dynamics and flow of cultural form, ideas and change exploding cultural database – data based on use. Amazon showcases this data in prefer- across multiple scales and on all possible dimensions. Such an approach is particularly ence lists and recommendations, Google in the graphs and links found on Google Trends, relevant, if not necessary, in an era when cultural change, on global and local scales, and Neilsen in information available through BlogPulse. YouTube also has its version in the occurs rapidly and through a complex network of technological and social mechanisms. pull-down menu that is placed next to the view count. While these efforts are important and 2) The use of very large datasets currently available on the web and/or in digital form. necessary for understanding the cultural content on the web, they stop short of pairing this 3) A focus on visual and interactive media data including, but not limited to, film, animation, reception-based data with data inherent to the characteristics and form of the content itself. video games, comic, publication layout and design and websites. If online video constitutes a new visual medium, might it not make sense to include the visual 4) A focus on contemporary cultural data and understanding the present with an eye to- form of this medium within the analysis of data? wards the future. In other words, developing a real-time ‘situational awareness’ for ‘cul- tural analysts’. One reason for the absence of a broad scale cultural or stylistic analysis of new media content 5) The use of all of the above to expand the boundaries of current cultural analysis, and might be our assumptions about what it means to reflect upon the present. Currently available investigate challenging theoretical questions with aesthetic, social and political implica- methodologies for arriving at cultural or aesthetic theory make it difficult to know whether it tions for today and the future. is feasible to cultivate a critical theory of cultural developments as they occur in real time. 4 The negative response centres on the argument that we need perspective to be critical, and A Productive Pairing: Cultural Analytics and Online Video that perspective necessitates temporal distance. I would call this argument opinion. Culture is We can map each of the above traits of Cultural Analytics onto the territory of online video changing, and the mechanisms of perception and analysis are changing with it. Why wait until in the following way. a particular cultural form has played out, and then attempt retrospectively to fit cultural change into tidy and often arbitrary forms of classification? Why not embrace the variety and continu- 1) Online video proliferates. It is a cultural form based on the flow and sharing of ideas ity of the present? And why, when cultural content and dynamics are so intimately tied to the across a global network. Henry Jenkins grounds this capacity of online media in the residues of our interaction, should we wait to achieve a ‘situational awareness’ of our present, ease of ‘spreadibility’. 6 Jenkins writes that ‘It is through this process of spreading that and by extension our future? How do we begin to explore, conceptualize, and reflect upon, in real-time, the artifacts and interactions that comprise today’s techno-cultural datascape? 5. F or a more detailed explanation of these traits as well as other characteristics of Cultural Welcome to Cultural Analytics. Analytics see Lev Manovich and Noah Wardrip-Fruin, ‘Cultural Analytics: white paper’, (May 2007, latest update November 2008), http://lab.softwarestudies.com/2008/09/cultural-analytics. html. 6. T he term ‘spreadibility’, which refers to Jenkins’ concept of ‘spreadible media’ is borrowed 4. Geert Lovink, ‘The Art of Watching Databases – Introduction to the Video Vortex Reader’, in Geert from Jean Burgess, ‘“All Your Chocolate Rain Are Belong to Us?” Viral Video, YouTube and the Lovink and Sabine Niederer (eds) Video Vortex Reader: Responses to YouTube, Amsterdam: Dynamics of Participatory Culture’, in Geert Lovink and Sabine Niederer (eds) Video Vortex Institute of Network Cultures, 2008, p. 9. Reader: Responses to YouTube, Amsterdam: Institute of Network Cultures, 2008, p. 102. 238 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 239 the content gains greater resonance in the culture, taking on new meanings, finding new of the actual media content in the form of sampled frame, and re-order them to visualize audiences, attracting new markets, and generating new values’. 7 ‘Spreadibility’ may also content in a new or distilled form (a montage of all frames, a series of frame slices, or a drive changes to cultural form. Cultural Analytics can map this and give us the visual single frame summary of regularly sampled frames). 9 Figure 1 shows diagrams of two direct language to open discussions about contemporary cultural change. visualization techniques that are useful for analyzing video. Although these techniques may 2) T he staggering amount of data available on leading online video sharing websites pro- appear very simple, their ability to consolidate potentially hours of video content into a single vides the very large dataset. Yet, these large datasets are not always freely or easily image often leads to fruitful and original discoveries that may have remained hidden if video accessible. YouTube Insight, a self-service analytics tool, does provide detailed viewing clips are only viewed one frame at a time, in sequential form. statistics, but this data is only available to YouTube users for the videos they have up- loaded. Obtaining video shared by others is equally difficult. YouTube, Vimeo, Tudou and FIGURE 1. Direct Visualization Techniques for Video. Youku all prevent the direct download of files. To obtain content data, third-party tools are necessary. Keepvid and Savevid, which allow you to download and save videos from video sharing and streaming sites, are two of the most popular. However, video sharing sites often block this software, along with any customized scraping scripts. Copyright and licensing issues also pose difficulties. What content can be shared and by whom? How long is this content allowed to remain on video sharing sites? Who can access the associated data? An additional question is whether obtaining and distribut- ing content as a form of data analysis falls within the realm of fair use. These are bugs for Cultural Analytics to work out. Fortunately, Cultural Analytics is philosophically open Figure 1a. Montage Technique. Figure 1b. ‘Summary Image’ Technique. source and doesn’t resign itself to using easily available data. It looks for interesting data. This technique involves sampling frames This technique involves sampling frames from a video clip and arranging these frames from a video clip and then superimpos- 3) O nline video is visual data, making it particularly appropriate material for measurement in a rectangular grid according to their original ing these frames on top of each other to by computer automated image analysis that then visualizes cultural patterns and change. sequence. In this diagram, each numbered create a single ‘summary image’. If visual 4) O nline video is today’s real-time cultural data. Online video sharing sites are updated square represents a hypothetical frame elements remain clearly discernible within sampled from a video. (The video on the left the summary image, this means that they in real-time, on a potentially global scale. Exploring this growth is a key first step to any has 20 sampled frames; the video on the right stayed in the same position for a significant comprehension or analysis of the continuously unfolding present. has 17). Such re-mapping allows you to see portion of the clip. If the summary image the patterns in form and content across appears uniformly blurred in color and 5) W hat might be the challenging theoretical questions posed by new cultural medium of a video’s entire duration in a single glance. texture, this is a likely indication that online video? Well, these are what Cultural Analytics provides the opportunity to explore. This technique is particularly useful for the visual elements in the original video comparing multiple videos at once. constantly moved or changed. Techniques: How to do Cultural Analytics Alternatively, we can add the step of digital image analysis and visualize the results alongside Obtain a large body of cultural data. Clean data is important. Now, you can begin the proc- the media content. This allows us to explore the patterns in videos along potentially hundreds ess of ‘analytic browsing’ and, I would add, analytic insight – that is, the kind of exploration of visual dimensions: brightness, saturation, color and pixel difference between frames are and awareness that leads to understanding. The techniques for doing Cultural Analytics can just a few variables that are relevant to a study of online video. Imagine a visualization that be divided into two categories: 8 direct visualization and digital image analysis alongside visu- reveals whether any of these measures change over the duration of a clip, or the duration of alization of content. successive video responses to a video clip, or between content posted by professionals and by amateurs? The list of what such visualizations hold the potential to reveal is as endless as The dataset can be directly visualized, without additional computational analysis, by sam- the possible combination of visual characteristics. pling or re-mapping existing visual data and its accompanying metadata – creation date, length of clip, keywords, category and so on. For example, if we apply this method to online video, we might take all the clips posted to YouTube on a given day and graphically organize them according to length, location, channel, and so on. Or, we might take a representation 7. Henry Jenkins, ‘Slash Me, Mash Me, Spread Me...’, Confessions of an Aca/Fan, Henry Jenkins Weblog, 24 April, 2007, http://www.henryjenkins.org/2007/04/slash_me_mash_me_but_please_ sp.html. 9. B rendan Dawes’ Cinema Redux (2004) is an example of the montage method of direct 8. Lev Manovich, ‘Visualization Methods for Media Studies’, in Oxford Handbook of Sound and visualization whereby an entire film is distilled down to a single image. See: http://processing.org/ Image in Digital Media, (ed.) Carol Vernallis (forthcoming). exhibition/works/redux/index.html. 240 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 241 A Sample Set: Using Culture Analytics to Re-present 2008 U.S. Presidential analyse vast amounts of data, it makes sense to play small, and scale up should the explora- Campaign Ads tion of data prove interesting. It does. The pilot study chosen to test a Cultural Analytic approach to online video explores a small sample set, composed of advertisements produced by the Barack Obama and John McCain The Context of the 2008 U.S. Presidential Campaigns campaigns during the 2008 U.S. presidential race (see Table 1). 10 To say that the 2008 presidential campaign was an historic one is an understatement. Not only did the end result of electing the nation’s first African American president change the TABLE 1. Sample Set of 2008 U.S. Presidential Campaign Ads. game of American presidential politics, the build-up was equally revolutionary: the 2008 election cycle marked the first time both candidates were sitting U.S. senators; the longest campaign with the greatest gap between nominations and primaries; a record number of votes cast (131.2 million); 12 and the most expensive campaign in U.S. presidential history, with $745.7 million spent by Obama and $350.1 million spent by McCain. 13 Equally notable was the candidates’ use of the internet and Web 2.0 technologies. Although both Obama and McCain relied on today’s wired and networked landscape to organize, ad- vertise and communicate with their constituents, the Obama campaign is seen as the overall winner, with impressive results. At the 2008 Web 2.0 Summit shortly following the November elections, Arianna Huffington went as far as to assert that, ‘Were it not for the Internet, Barack Obama would not be president. Were it not for the Internet, Barack Obama would not have been the nominee’. 14 The implications for the way that presidential campaigns are run are profound. In 2008, the web became the complementary medium to broadcast television for political advertising. Since the middle of the 20th century, broadcast media had been the major factor at play in the media campaigns of the respective parties. 15 Until 2008, broadcast political adver- tisements had no significant online presence in any prior U.S. presidential campaigns for Title and URLs for each of the 12 campaign ads analysed. Eight ads (four Obama and four McCain) were aired on obvious reasons: YouTube and other online video sharing sites simply weren’t around yet. television and distributed on the web. Four ads (two Obama and two McCain) were aired exclusively online. All ads The introduction of online video to the political campaign advertising repertoire in the 2008 in the sample were officially produced and made available by the campaigns with the exception of D6, which was produced by the Democratic National Committee. presidential elections opened up a vast arena for communicating and receiving political mes- sages. For one, using online video for advertising is cost-effective. Advertisements designed The videos in the set include eight advertisements produced for television and also dis- for broadcast on television can also be posted to the web and thus aired to a potentially seminated on the web, and four advertisements produced solely to be aired on the web. larger portion of the population for a greater length of time. Advertisements can also be As a group, the clips run for a total of 413 seconds, and sampled at 12 fps, provided 4,960 designed purely for web distribution, which cuts expenses significantly. The official material frames for analysis. Since the goal of the study was to test the Cultural Analytics methods created for the Obama campaign that was posted on YouTube was viewed for a total of 14.5 when applied to online video, the dataset is preliminary in size and in exploration, and thus not yet scaled to the magnitude of the larger datasets that characterize more developed Cul- tural Analytics projects 11 or the full potential of what the approach has to offer an analysis of the 2008 U.S. presidential campaign ads. However, before beginning to gather, process and 12. F ederal Election Commission, ‘2008 Official Presidential General Election Results’, 4 November, 2008, http://www.fec.gov/pubrec/fe2008/federalelections2008.shtml. 13. Federal Election Commission, ‘Overview of Presidential Financial Activity 1996 - 2008’, 2008 Presidential Campaign Financial Activity Summarized, Press Release, 8 June, 2009, http://www. 10. V ideo clips of all advertisements in the sample are available on YouTube at the specified URLs. fec.gov/press/press2009/20090608PresStat.shtml. Further information including credits, original airdate and transcripts is available from The Living 14. Claire Miller, ‘How Obama’s Internet Campaign Changed Politics’, NY Times Bits blog, 7 Room Candidate, http://www.livingroomcandidate.org, an online archive of presidential campaign November, 2008, http://bits.blogs.nytimes.com/2008/11/07/how-obamas-internet-campaign- commercials 1952-2008 organized by the Museum of the Moving Image. changed-politics. 11. See the Software Studies website, softwarestudies.com and Flickr stream, http://www.flickr.com/ 15. Lynda Lee Kaid, ‘Videostyle in the 2008 Presidential Advertising’, in Robert Denton and Robert photos/culturevis, for examples of projects with significantly larger datasets (up to one million E. Denton Jr. (eds) The 2008 Presidential Campaign: A Communication Perspective, Plymouth, individual images) and more in-depth statistical analysis. United Kingdom: Rowman & Littlefield Publishers, 2009, p. 209. 242 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 243 million hours. To buy this much time for broadcast on television would cost $47 million. 16 FIGURE 2. Comparison of Visual Change in Obama and McCain Video Ads. On YouTube, this expense is reduced to production costs, plus any costs for storage and streaming, which are currently minimal in comparison. It is worth noting that the use of online video also enables mass distribution of unofficial campaign material or negative advertising produced by the public. For the purposes of this sample study, however, we will be interested only in the official content created for the campaigns. Given the historical importance of broadcast advertising as a communication tool in presi- dential campaigns, and the noted innovation of the 2008 U.S. presidential campaigns in embracing the web as a medium of communication, what are the aesthetic, cultural and political affects/effects of the use of online video for political advertising? How is cultural change manifest in online video – for example, does the use of online video for political ad- vertisement result in changes to video style? Does it alter visual and/or political rhetoric? What about practices of reception? We can put forward hypothetical responses to these questions. Sometimes we can even ‘sense’ them. Cultural Analytics lets us trace and comprehend them. Sample Set Visualizations When we watch a political advertisement, we watch a series of moving image frames that change over the course of the video’s duration. Each frame has a set of unique visual char- acteristics that we parse in succession, but always one frame at a time. Political remix videos allow us to see this succession in an alternate, or subverted, order. Yet, even if we change the order of succession, we still have no way to see the precise patterns in visual characteristics Frame difference line graphs for each of the 12 ads in the sample set. as they extend temporally over the duration of the clip. Perhaps we can mentally construct x-axis: frame number this representation for one 30 second commercial, but what if we want to compare such x-axis: pixel difference between consecutive frames patterns across multiple commercials? The line graphs in Figure 2 offer one possible way of achieving this by visualizing simple but effective representations of a dimension of video Using digital image analysis and simple software, we can measure the pixel difference that we can call ‘visual change’. This includes the types of change commonly discussed in between two consecutive frames, where pixel difference is a function of how many pixels film and video production and theory, such as camera movement, shot types, and other cin- change from one frame to another. The measurement can then be plotted in the form of a ematic techniques, as well as the graphical changes that became commonplace in the 1990s line that, like a seismograph printout, graphically displays the rhythm of visual change over with the adoption of motion graphics and compositing software such as Adobe After Effects. time. A large spike marks a greater magnitude of difference between two frames and is a likely indicator of pronounced movement across a frame. This difference might correspond to a cut, a movement of the camera, characters, animated text, or graphics, or any other variety of visual change. Viewing these frame difference line graphs as a group allows us to see interesting broader patterns, namely: 1) Web commercials are more static than commercials made for television. As the line graphs immediately reveal, the web commercials have a lower frequency and magnitude of visual change. 17 2) McCain’s television ads are more visually dynamic. The line graphs for McCain’s televi- sion ads spike more often and with greater intensity than those produced by the Obama campaign. 17. ‘Summary images’ are not included here but can be accessed through the Flickr set referenced 16. M iller, ‘How Obama’s Internet Campaign Changed Politics’. in note 11 of this article. 244 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 245 These two levels of visual difference discovered in the data appear in other dimensions of In Figure 3, the mean (average) grayscale values of all video frames are mapped against the video style that, unlike movement, may be a bit more difficult to intuitively perceive when standard deviation of these values. In other words, the x-axis represents the average bright- watching a moving image. Since images can be measured by a computer on hundreds of ness of an image, while the y-axis represents the range of all grey tones in an image, so that different visual characteristics, we can combine any two of these dimensions to create a kind each point on the graph marks the intersection of these two measurements. Again, we can of ‘image map’ – a 2D visualization that incorporates a combination of these measurements use simple digital image analysis to measure these visual characteristics, but what can a to diagrammatically represent the visual form of the image(s) analysed. Figures 3 and 4 show comparison of the numbers reveal? image maps that take regularly sampled frames (at 12 fps) from all of the ads and represent them together on two dimensions. The range of a binary grayscale is 0-255 where 0 is pure black, 255 is pure white and all val- ues in-between are different intensities, or shades of grey. The further to the right of the graph FIGURE 3. ‘Image Map’ Comparison of Web and TV Video ads. FIGURE 4. ‘Image Map’ Comparison of Obama and McCain TV Ads. Figure 3a. Figure 4a. 2008 U.S. Presidential 2008 Obama TV Ads. TV Ads. x-axis: A mean for all pixels’ x-axis: A mean for all pixels’ grayscale values in single grayscale values in single frame. frame. y-axis: A mean of standard y-axis: A mean of standard deviation of pixels’ deviation of pixels’ grayscale values in single grayscale values in single frame. frame. Figure 3b. Figure 4b. 2008 U.S. Presidential 2008 McCain TV Ads. Web Ads. x-axis: A mean for all pixels’ x-axis: A mean for all pixels’ grayscale values in single grayscale values in single frame. frame. y-axis: A mean of standard y-axis: A mean of standard deviation of pixels’ deviation of pixels’ grayscale values in single grayscale values in single frame. frame. 246 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 247 a frame falls, the lighter the average value of the pixels comprising the image. Standard de- for exploration. What other visual dimensions, besides mean grayscale value and standard viation – the value that dictates where a point falls on the vertical dimension in these graphs deviation, might contribute to the strong core we observe in the television-based campaign – is simply a measure of variability that shows how different a value is from the average. So, advertisements? Brightness? Color? Saturation? And what exactly is unique about this outlying those data points towards the bottom of the graph could be said to refer to frames that have subset of frames that fall at the extreme edges of this core? fairly typical (or expected) grayscale values whereas those data points at the top of the graph refer to frames where the intensity is further removed from the norm. Immediately, we notice What Cultural Analytics Tells Us About the 2008 U.S. Presidential Campaign Ads a difference between Obama and McCain, and between web and television, as to where the Notice that the patterns that continue to emerge from the visualizations are related. If we frames fall along both the horizontal and vertical dimension. The distribution of frames drawn compare patterns across a larger number of visual characteristics and condense our image from television advertisements falls close to a clear trend line. There seems to be some nor- analysis to sample-wide averages (Fig. 5 – 6), keeping in mind the comparatively detailed mative combination of mean grayscale value and standard deviation that characterizes the explorations discussed thus far, we can observe general trends in the visual form of the cam- ads designed for television broadcast. The web advertisements, however, are scattered, with paign advertisements across multiple dimensions of measurement: no apparent core. Perhaps this is an indication that political campaign web ads do not yet 1) While all campaign ads in the sample set were posted and distributed on the web, those have a normative visual language? This is not a hypothesis that can be tested with the small ads designed for television broadcast are visually different than ads designed for web sample set gathered for the purposes of this pilot project, but it is certainly worth looking into. broadcast across a number of visual dimensions. Analysis using the techniques of Cultural Analytics can lead us to ask questions that are If the internet was indeed a revolutionary force in the 2008 U.S. presidential elections, then sometimes old, sometimes new, and sometimes reveal the old in a new light. The distribution we might expect to see this reflected in the visual design of campaign advertising and com- of frames drawn from the television advertisements – that is, advertisements with a history of munication. As the numbers reveal, we do. For all but one of the six visual characteristics visual development – have a distinct core. There seems to be a pattern to the numbers. To represented in Figure 5, there is a measurable difference between television and web adver- make the visual characteristics behind these numbers a little easier to see, we can add the tisements. However, the implications and parameters of the patterns that emerge from the frames being analysed directly into the graph. data may deviate from our expectations about how the developing medium of online video should look and function. The pattern revealed – that web-based advertisements possess Figure 4 takes the image analysis data used in Fig. 3a to graph a comparison between Mc- a quieter and more conservative visual language that those designed for television – is not Cain and Obama TV ads, breaks the dataset into two visualizations, and maps the image a trend we would expect from the 2008 U.S. presidential campaign’s innovative use of an content with the analysis. The variance in visual style becomes almost immediately percepti- online moving-image medium. ble. The frame cluster in the top right corner of the graphs depicting McCain’s television ad- vertisements corresponds to uncharacteristically white frames that deviate significantly from 2) Comparing the television advertisements for both candidates leads to a similarly counter- the representative mean value characteristic of the majority of all frames (both Obama and intuitive observation: McCain’s TV ads are more visually aggressive and radical in visual McCain) that comprise the dataset. Here again, Cultural Analytics leads us to further avenues language than Obama’s. FIGURE 5. Visual Dimension Averages for 2008 U.S. Presidential Campaign Ads FIGURE 6. Visual Dimension Averages for 2008 U.S. Presidential Campaign TV Ads (TV vs. Web). (Obama vs. McCain). 248 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 249 Here again, the results of digital image analysis challenge our prior assumptions. Based on RefeRenCes the political rhetoric, public opinion and party lines surrounding the candidates, we might Burgess, Jean. ‘“All Your Chocolate Rain Are Belong to Us?” Viral Video, YouTube and the Dynam- expect that the media team for Obama, the younger and ostensibly more ‘dynamic’ candi- ics of Participatory Culture’, in Geert Lovink and Sabine Niederer (eds) Video Vortex Reader: date, might design commercial advertisements that showcase this dynamism. Yet, the visu- Responses to YouTube, Amsterdam: Institute of Network Cultures, 2008, pp. 101-110, alizations I have presented indicate otherwise. At least for the small-scale sample set of this Federal Election Commission. ‘2008 Official Presidential General Election Results’, 4 November, study, John McCain’s television advertisements are comparatively more visually radical than 2008, http://www.fec.gov/pubrec/fe2008/federalelections2008.shtml. Obama’s. Could McCain be putting forward a ‘maverick’ political message in response to Federal Election Commission. ‘Overview of Presidential Financial Activity 1996 - 2008’, 2008 Presi- Obama’s message of ‘change?’ Why is this pattern visible in advertisements produced for dential Campaign Financial Activity Summarized, Press Release, 8 June, 2009, http://www.fec.gov/ television and not those produced for the web? If we’re interested in a real-time critical theory press/press2009/20090608PresStat.shtml. Jenkins, Henry. ‘Slash Me, Mash Me, Spread Me...’, Confessions of an Aca/Fan, Henry Jenkins blog, of online video, these questions are worth pursuing. 24 April, 2007, http://www.henryjenkins.org/2007/04/slash_me_mash_me_but_please_sp.html. Kaid, Lynda Lee. ‘Videostyle in the 2008 Presidential Advertising’, in Robert Denton and Robert E. These observations are based on visualizations that explore just a few of many possible di- Denton Jr. (eds) The 2008 Presidential Campaign: A Communication Perspective, Plymouth, mensions of the visual language available for political video advertisements. Analysing differ- United Kingdom: Rowman & Littlefield Publishers, 2009, pp. 209-227. ent characteristics, and combinations of these characteristics, may reveal different degrees Lovink, Geert. ‘The Art of Watching Databases – Introduction to the Video Vortex Reader’, in Geert of disparity. Furthermore, a more in-depth analysis of a larger dataset across a longer era of Lovink and Sabine Niederer (eds) Video Vortex Reader: Responses to YouTube, Amsterdam: Insti- time may offer further insight into the changing form of the broadcast campaign advertise- tute of Network Cultures, 2008, pp. 9-12. Manovich, Lev and Noah Wardrip-Fuin. ‘Cultural Analytics: white paper’, (May 2007, latest update ment. Fortunately, Cultural Analytics scales up to the macro-level. Imagine visualizing all U.S. November 2008), http://lab.softwarestudies.com/2008/09/cultural-analytics.html. presidential campaign advertisements, from their birth during the 1952 Eisenhower vs. Tru- Manovich, Lev. ‘Visualization Methods for Media Studies’ in Carol Vernallis (ed.) Oxford Handbook of man presidential race up until the present, and watching the unfolding of a media form over Sound and Image in Digital Media (forthcoming). decades. Imagine extending this analysis beyond a single election cycle, so as to compare Miller, Claire. ‘How Obama’s Internet Campaign Changed Politics’, NY Times Bits blog, 7 November, and observe how the introduction of an online video medium might have changed the visual 2008, http://bits.blogs.nytimes.com/2008/11/07/how-obamas-internet-campaign-changed-politics. language of political campaign advertisements. Imagine incorporating the unofficial online advertisements and video responses into the dataset. Imagine leaving the U.S. and analysing political campaign ads as they venture into the new web medium on a global scale. Such visualizations would allow us to explore cultural dynamics as it happens, in real-time. Cultural Analytics lets us observe, with the support of quantitative analysis, what characteriz- es today’s campaign advertisements in relation to those of the past. With observation, we can then ask: Does the visual style of web and television advertisements differ more significantly than the style of campaign advertisements broadcast in different election years? Is the visual rhetoric of a campaign correlated to a candidate’s political leaning or to a given culture’s visual ideals? Does the visual language of political campaigns translate globally and if so, does it flow with shifts in global politics? Most importantly, Cultural Analytics has the potential to help us ask these questions and even uncover new questions, which we may never have otherwise thought to ask. All images, figures and tables appearing in this text are copyright of Software Studies Initiative at University of California, San Diego, 2010. 250 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 251 fRee, open anD onLIne: an InteRVIew wIth as the Xiph.org 7 foundation, adopting the free Vorbis audio codec and the Ogg transport 8 as DenIs RoIo aka jaRomIL a backbone for the openness of the system. Today, they are no longer definable as an ‘alter- native effort’, as they are establishing ‘de facto’ standards. RacheL someRs mILes The usability issue was still crying for attention, while advanced functionality for radio stations as playlist management and mixing were completely lacking. We had been streaming using open source software with the Radio Cybernet 9 project for 2 years, when in 1999 I met Au- gust Black 10 and Markus Seidl, 11 conductors of fundamental radio. 12 With all our funny radio experiments we were all in need of more advanced audio streaming software, so we started In early September 2010, Amsterdam-based artist, programmer and theorist Denis Roio (aka doing it ourselves. One year later we released MuSE, 13 the first graphical application to mix Jaromil) and I sat down for a conversation at the Netherlands Media Art Institute (NIMk) and stream audio on the internet. The application has continued to grow until today, freely where he’s been working over the past years in Research and Development. Having been available on GNU/Linux 14 and Apple/OS X, thanks to several contributions. Now even more deeply involved in the free and open source software community for over a decade as a cod- applications are available, inspired by our design of that first application. er/activist involved in a number of audio and visual projects, such as dyne:bolic, I wanted to speak with him about his experience with, and his perspectives of, the relationship between Two interesting things about MuSe are worth mentioning. First, is that we conceptualized free and open source software and online video. the software as an engine that should also be able to remix live streams, imagining a topol- ogy that was not just broadcaster-to-listener, but instead, letting every listener remix various Rachel Somers Miles: Could you provide what you consider an ‘alternative history’ of soft- streams and re-broadcast them. This was something like a ‘rhizomatic delight’ used in 2000 ware that manipulates and broadcasts audio and video? for the ‘atlantic-transfer-jam’ concert that had live bands, such as Shadow Tribe, improvising between Chicago, New York and Linz, looping sounds across the network in three separated Jaromil: I guess by alternative you mean ‘not mainstream’ and that will mostly translate to concerts, but still at a very low quality for audio. free and open source software in my past experiences. Of course, there is always something more alternative than the next alternative, so please consider that the account I’ll give here The second is that after two years of development in MuSE, I received an offer from Rob is necessarily subjective. Lanphier of RealNetworks to ‘buy dyne.org and the MuSE project’, which I declined as it would have implied the software would become closed source and disappear from public Surely audio started being manipulated and broadcast on the internet way before video, and domain. As I follow the ideal of freedom of speech, I believe free speech is also determined this is because of bandwidth and computing power limitations in earlier times. At the time by the freedom of broadcasting tools. But of course, my idealism wasn’t paying for the food, RealAudio Player was launched around 1995 there were only few experiments on UNIX 1 so the support of Public Voice Lab, 15 which has now become OS Alliance, has been crucial to platforms done with The Network Audio System (NAS) 2 on local area networks - audio was continue such efforts. It was while working with them on the StreamOnTheFly 16 project that not compressed. we developed dyne:bolic 17 as a one-click free streaming solution for online radios. In a couple years, independent developers Scott Manley 3 and Jack Moffit started working on RSM: While you mentioned it earlier with respect to video, could you elaborate more on why Icecast 4 and Liveice 5 realizing the first open source implementation of an audio streaming you think free software for audio and video processing has come relatively late with respect system using MP3 as a codec. 6 Still offering low usability - the tools were all text-based - they to the rest of the history of free and open source software? put together a system that was reasonably stable for absolving an ambitious task at that time, about 1997. Later on, these software and their developers converged in what is known today 7. http://xiph.org/. 8. http://www.xiph.org/ogg/; http://www.vorbis.com/. 9. http://radiocybernet.org/. 1. http://www.unix.org/. 10. http://aug.ment.org. 2. http://radscan.com/nas.html. 11. http://funda.ment.org/biomexx.html. 3. http://star.arm.ac.uk/~spm/. 12. http://funda.ment.org/. 4. http://www.icecast.org/. 13. http://muse.dyne.org/. 5. http://star.arm.ac.uk/~spm/software/liveice.html. 14. http://www.gnu.org/gnu/linux-and-gnu.html. 6. A codec for audio or video, for example, is a small program that enables one to listen to music 15. http://www.pvl.at. or watch videos of a particular format. There are diverse formats for multimedia, thus often 16. http://www.streamonthefly.org/. requiring the installation of a number of different codecs. 17. http://dynebolic.org. 252 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 253 Jaromil: I think it’s because of the CPU power (central processing power) of the available influence the World Wide Web Consortium (W3C) 19 to favour their closed technologies over technology – computers were not so powerful and the majority of the GNU/LINUX community open options when deciding upon standards. The fact is that this attitude of ‘buying people was still busy on the development of networking protocols and other less visible things. In in’, rather than coexisting with variety, doesn’t foster economic growth or quality in results. 2000, computers were enough to process network packets - and therefore operate broad- Often old and inappropriate, yet economically well-established monopolies, become tyrants casting reflectors - but processing audio was way more expensive, without even mentioning that clog up innovation to perpetuate their own advantage, rather than playing in the inter- video. Only institutions or companies could afford something like a Silicon Graphics and its est of progress, and of the millions of consumers who could otherwise become producers C compiler - those weren’t tools that an independent developer could have on his or her own themselves. desk, just the support of a community of enthusiasts. Within this context, online video has changed a lot in recent times because independent So for me the reason is obviously that while technology became more advanced, processing efforts nevertheless have come to exist and proliferate. The most significant one from 2000- power also became more affordable, and it took time for it to happen. The moment a technol- 2005 was lead by Chris Montgomery at Xiph.org a foundation based in Texas that developed ogy becomes shared, democratized and made available to more people, a community can the Ogg/Vorbis 20 standard for audio, and Theora 21 for video, distributing it under a BSD develop. Since free software is about community development, without this democratization (Berkeley Software Distribution) 22 license, which is basically free software. They provided of technology the work to develop software and the work to develop the community cannot the possibility for small and medium hardware manufacturers to use free codecs inside their happen. To me it’s a very clear pattern: as technology is more available for grassroots agency, products without paying royalties on patents to multinationals. They also unlocked the pos- community development follows. sibility for software artisans to develop independently and sell their work along licensing schemes like the GNU General Public License (GPL), 23 which encourages people to distrib- RSM: How do you see the role of the free and open source software community in the devel- ute and even sell software without having to pay for royalties or patents. opment of online video? Still, the video application panorama has space for more players, in particular those devel- Jaromil: I think something very interesting has been happening in the last years. Ten years oping new schemes of interaction when processing video. We saw some early lone cowboy ago online video was a waste of bandwidth and wasn’t really available to everyone, so it was efforts such as Heroine Warrior 24 who developed Cinerella, and then more software efforts: less interesting - not many people wanted to experiment with it, just some could. One of the LiVes 25 developed by Salsaman; Open Movie Editor 26 by Richard Spindler; KDN Live and main reasons it is interesting today is that it finally has the potential to change the way we the MLT multimedia framework (Media Lovin’ Toolkit) developed by Dan Dennedy and his consume and produce television. Free and open source in video is unlocking a lot of creativ- crew. 27 I’m also personally involved in FreeJ, 28 which we’ve been developing since 2000 to ity, not just in making tools available, but also in making them customizable, breaking fixed provide our community with a javascript environment to manipulate and stream video in real- schemes and, as we see it happening more often, enhancing possibilities for participation. time, and Frei0r, 29 a plugin framework for video effects that is already adopted by several applications on all major operating systems, including GNU/Linux, Apple/OS X and Windows. What happens very often with modern technology is that we first have commercial imple- mentations realized by those that actually see a business possibility there, that are capable of investing and expect an advantage from that. These investors will develop it faster and provide a solution that will stay established for at least five to ten years. 19. http://www.w3.org/. 20. http://www.xiph.org/ogg/; http://www.vorbis.com/.. The difficulty comes when the long-term interest of such investments is effectively closing the 21. http://www.theora.org/. possibility for people to appropriate technology, to customize it for their own community, and 22. http://www.freebsd.org/. to grow their own economy around it. This is how multinational monopolies actually lead to 23. GPL stands for ‘General Public License’ and is a free copyleft license for software and other economic conglomerates that establish political control on standards. They tend to enclose kinds of work created by the GNU Operating system. As stated on the GNU website, the foundations of a GPL license are: ‘the freedom to use the software for any purpose; the freedom technological progress while spreading its use among large masses, for instance, the case of to change the software to suit your needs; the freedom to share the software with your friends international corporations such as Adobe. and neighbors; and the freedom to share the changes you make’. http://www.gnu.org/licenses/ quick-guide-gplv3.html. The so-called ‘mega-corporations’ are often lobbying to close access to technology develop- 24. http://heroinewarrior.com/. ment, even on a governance level. For instance, stakeholders in codec 18 products try to 25. http://lives.sourceforge.net/. 26. http://www.openmovieeditor.org/. 27. http://www.piksel.org/frei0r. 18. Encoding and decoding algorithms for audio and video compression for instance, whose use is 28. http://freej.org/. often encumbered by software patents. 29. http://frei0r.dyne.org. 254 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 255 In most cases with free and open source development we like to develop peer reviewed im- Jaromil: Yes, try to put a video online and make sure that it can be played on every platform: plementations that people can learn, study, adapt and redistribute. For example, there are a Windows, Mac and GNU/Linux, and see if it will work. It’s a very difficult ‘migration’ issue as lot of people behind the effort of Frei0r who can then use these efforts in a situation they are the portability of standards meets the obstacles placed by corporate interests. As we play for locally involved in. Relying on such shared development efforts means relying on a globally the public interest (including that of small and little enterprises) the challenge consists in shared research and development activity, a situation in which quality assurance is given by making open source standards recognized and implemented for all platforms. It’s technically the interested peer review provided by the community of adopters. Here everything produced possible, yet politically very difficult to have a portable plugin for streaming video that works will be fed back into a pool of shared tools - it will be used in the future, reused and recom- on every operating system, based on free and open source code. Such a plugin could be bined, reducing the waste of duplicate efforts and naturally ensuring the quality of results. included by all browsers for free, so that web surfing would always mean painless playback of video. RSM: Could you speak some more about the current atmosphere around the development of open video standards? RSM: Is this being worked on right now? Jaromil: It is very interesting right now. Last year there was a large impact with the introduc- Jaromil: Yes. As a matter of fact, as we speak, the fruition of video on the internet is becoming tion of HTML5 30 that became a contentious issue. easier and easier and is even unlocking the market for new players, but it took longer than expected - this could have happened 5 or 6 years ago. Meanwhile many other aspects have This new specification of HTML was created to tag video and audio, and stream it on the web. come into play. For instance, network distribution that needed to be optimized by peer-to- Within the definition of this new standard, media codecs had to be selected and indicated peer (P2P) algorithms such as BitTorrent. So, if you have a video that is being watched by as mandatory for web browsers so that the web browsers could be HTML5 compatible - an many people at the same time, this video will be re-shared by those watching it in real-time industry standard requirement. Image tag compliancy is with JPEG, GIF and PNG normally. without clogging up the bandwidth of the provider - a multicast distribution system that was For audio and video, MPEG4 and H.264 were selected, while Ogg and Theora, as free and designed decades ago, but that somehow never made it into everyday technology until today. open source possibilities, were left behind in this decision. Actually it’s remarkable what those programmers are doing, it’s really advanced. And by This didn’t make much sense to many developers because both MPEG4 and H.264 are ‘those’ I mean both the free and open source software community, and the developers of heavily encumbered by patents, so whenever you use them you have no choice but to pay proprietary technology like the Flash player used by YouTube. Behind those technologies into the software patenting system, which is not even recognized as legally binding in Euro- there are very advanced mathematical and logical implementations, which I hereby dare to pean countries. The many people who had been active in developing reliable and available define as beautiful in the way they are opening up access to more content production and its alternatives to the available patented technologies were outraged to see that a supposedly dissemination to large masses around the world - this is not just a technological revolution, neutral public entity, such as the W3C, ignored the existence of the free and open source but also a political one. codecs they had been working on for years. This event obviously illustrated that W3C govern- ance is influenced by lobbyists for partisan interests, but in this case, the W3C was not the RSM: With respect to online video and the free and open software movement, what would only ruling authority and the voices that were raised finally made them review their positions. you like to see happen in the next 5 years? RSM: What do you see as some of the other key issues with online video right now? Jaromil: What I would like to see is definitely beyond what I can do myself. I wish that hard- ware manufacturers acknowledge the potential residing in the innovations brought by free Jaromil: Another interesting issue right now is how enclosed infrastructure in use, like pat- software development. They should in fact see their own advantage in this, and understand ented codecs, gets substituted by free and open source infrastructure as the latter becomes that every user can also be a producer. This is not just a marketing strategy, but also a politi- the most efficient and reliable. In this very moment those holding a monopoly with enclosed cal issue affecting society as well as their sales. technologies do everything possible to keep enforcing their own standards. It’s very interest- ing to see how nothing is purely technical or political, and to understand how public interest I’d also like to see more device manufacturers start to use an ‘open hardware’ symbol 31 as can be better represented when choosing technological standards. one of the logos they use to display the device’s compatibility, like the HD symbol used for high-definition. This would illustrate that devices are designed with the free and open source RSM: Do you have a specific example of this? philosophy in mind, being adaptable and flexible for integration in further developments 30. See: http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/HTML5. 31. See: http://www.openhardwaresummit.org/. 256 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 257 and appropriated by communities of enthusiasts. Unfortunately most industry manufacturers Avoid waste currently see their own gain through limiting the possibilities of enthusiast communities to Thanks to its free and open source nature, new software can easily adapt and reuse what has adapt their devices, and this I believe is a big mistake that will cost them the market in the already been created and perfected. For instance, video software like LiVES 33 uses image long term. manipulation tools from the ‘ancient’ ImageMagick 34 framework on single video frames, as if they were single images to be edited. This approach has enabled a non-linear video-editing As of today we can already find some positive trends in the direction of opening hardware. program to use algorithms that were previously made and perfected over decades for pho- Many people buy certain devices because ‘they can be hacked’ and thus, can have more tography, for their own purpose. In this way, LiVES has made hundreds of high quality effects done with them. Speaking for one, I wouldn’t have been able to develop the SyncStarter 32 from the tradition of digital photographic manipulation available to the users of a video-editing while working at NIMk without having a device on the market based on GNU/Linux that could program. be reprogrammed. The ability to do this made everyone happy: me, because I was able to de- ploy my skills and adapt the device for the particular needs of my employer; and the company Human resources that produced it, because they included a GNU/Linux operating system on the device for free, More than expensive hardware and support contracts with foreign helpdesks, free and open instead of having to pay for years of development tailored to a single product. source licenses on software allow competence to be valued over infrastructure. This leads to the employment of local people able to adapt technology to local needs, rather than let- RSM: In your understanding, experience and practice as an active member of the free and ting the global market adapt local needs to its offer. This is something I can relate to with my open source software community, can you describe what you feel are the over-all main con- own position at NIMk, as can many other researchers and developers working inside similar tributions the community has offered, and continues to offer, to online video? organizations that are on the edge of innovation: we are constantly in need of being able to adapt our output to new ideas. Jaromil: Here, I consider the contributions as a set of characteristics that are fundamental to the politics and philosophy of the free and open source software: Transparency Especially in the field of protocol design, free and open source research and development Interoperability is leading to increased transparency in the field of codecs and transport video formats. Free This is an approach to problem solving that the free and open source movement, as we know software projects provide a reference for transports and video codecs that are free to reuse, it today, has inherited from the so-called UNIX philosophy: to solve a big problem don’t build while an increasing amount of hardware devices are supporting these formats, because they a big solution, but break it down into pieces, and try to formulate a pattern language that suits are convenient and efficient. The result is that encoding and playback of media doesn’t de- both the description of the problem and that of the solution. By realizing a diverse set of tools pend on a specific manufacturer or software, finally making it possible to seamlessly move that will inter-operate to reach the final goal it will be possible, later in time, to reuse this effort files around without the need for reconversion. and recombine it to reach more analogous goals. Such an approach produces tools that can be specialized to solve simple tasks, but that are also generic enough to be combined in a set of diverse tools to reach more articulated solutions, without generating the need for new software or hardware. Peer review This is a common situation for free and open source projects, and is also found in other fields particularly where precision and specialization is necessary like in scientific research. Through fostering this kind of review practice, the free and open source community provides space to peer review the inner mechanisms (which in the case of video would be a compres- sion or filtering algorithm for example), and if necessary, modify and adapt them to specific needs or more advanced hardware. 32. Syncstarter is a free and open source software used to sync the playback of video installations 33. http://lives.sourceforge.net/. that require multiple videos on multiple screens. http://www.nimk.nl/syncstarter. 34. http://www.imagemagick.org. 258 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 259 stReamInG counteR cuRRents: ‘w.a.s.t.e’ capitalize upon this already ‘closing’ gap between new and old media. For a decade now, the gap we have called the digital divide has been closing, as IT4D or IPTV lobby governments for aLejanDRo DuQue pipeline infrastructure covering the planet – and if fibre won’t reach, satellite will do. Codecs such as webm will finally realize the promise of the famous webTV of the late 1990s. Perhaps it is now possible to ask: has streaming media finally found its audience? 7 Today, streaming is becoming obligatory for all the commercial players that constitute the broadcasting industry. For us, it is still the pleasure principle that impels our small community Our ‘we’ forms a loose and untraceable community no one can address or target. 1 It involves efforts. The list of ‘marginal’ participants in this feast is long, and identifying a few names here people and initiatives ranging from indymedia to ourmedia, democracynow to politube, can- will not do full justice to the efforts of so many, who know very well what they have contrib- didaTV to bitnik.org, even when for only a few seconds the “#on-air” Twitter hash flashes. uted. Just ask Pedro Soler, Antonia Fòlguera and Raul Marroquin about the day their worlds Those stream test-drives from pirated analogue signals of silentTV emissions ground a mul- collided at horitzo.tv, 8 or August Black and Markus Seidl about their radio days while the first titude of singularities fighting on the battleground of media+representation. ‘WE’ is an event incarnations of MuSE 9 were being developed. So yes, it is our good fortune that the list is taking place at the individual level while submitting misleading hardware addresses and long, and what is even better, it constitutes a unique dispositif. 10 locations. Our only common and stable boundary in such complex networks is the streaming server, 2 its furtive domain name or the I.P. number serving an undefined pool of wills. We ‘...“Signal” in these cases is interpreted as “contact”, and a phantasmatic projection of Await... connection and interaction is projected onto the faintest of signals, aided further by the curious emergence of synaesthetic perceptions where minute changes in tone, rhythm We are blinded by the flickering light of YouTube, Seesmic, twitcam, Qik, live stream, justin, or even wording can produce intense bodily sensations and responses...It is this libidi- ustream, Revision3, Blip.tv, and Break.com. We see their feeds start arriving – no pain – nal drive for connection, identification and belonging that propels the development of straight to mobile devices. These, along with 3D video, are the latest platforms to be hyped, new media and communication technologies...’ – Eric Kluitenberg 11 and will provide the largest market induced trends. Of course, they will be led by the main- stream broadcasting giants, along with hardware and software manufacturing companies, The rapid development of so-called “Free software” bridges our audio and/or video impulses. ranging from SONY to ARRI, and passing through Nvidia, Texas Instruments, AMD, MIPS, Anyone with a will, will be able to set-up a system and join the relay networks on his or her own Android, Flash, Firefox, Opera, and Flumotion, to name just a few. A plethora of efforts, diving using tools like Icecast 12, for one. Having access to such audiovisual technologies is not just head-first into so-called Internet Protocol television (IPTV), video encapsulated through pack- a remarkable example of what we once thought the net could do – namely, help us reshape ets routed over mobile networks. Google’s push forward through webm 3 protocol also signals our societies – it also enables and strengthens forms of contestation. What follows, then, is an that video will constitute a major component of what we once knew as the web. accidental list of streaming events that made a mark, and reoriented a particular approach to what is called video, on or offline. Anyone involved in open source video or audio streams Trend hunters behind the TED conference pin-point the ‘aeffects’ that online video has on the could claim and construct a different story line, but the hope here is to include activities not development of ideas through their branded concept of Crowd Accelerated Innovation. 4 This always visible, but that nonetheless marked the last decade of online audio and video. 13 will shift crowdsourcing, the unfair technique of exchange exercised by gluttonous troglo- dytes and disguised by glossy Web 2.0 rounded templates, to the next level. Entrepreneurial reports 5 naively suggest that traditional target ‘markets’ are no longer watching television. 7. http://www.nettime.org/Lists-Archives/nettime-l-0010/msg00204.html. Every day, they claim, more and more people are watching video online, even during so- 8. h ttp://www.horitzo.tv/. called prime time. In sum, the web that was always considered as an alternative selling 9. http://muse.dyne.org/. channel for television-based campaigns has become the place where advertising deploys 10. In the sense of systems and deployments, as in Foucault’s or Agamben’s interpretation of the its best moves. A clear sign is the arrival of a new kind of monster called GoogleTV, 6 here to concept, but in a radical way. In Michel Foucault’s words, ‘the said as much as the unsaid’. See ‘The Confession of the Flesh’ [1977] interview with Michel Foucault, in Colin Gordon (ed. and trans.) Power/Knowledge: Selected Interviews and Other Writings, Brighton, Sussex: Harvester Press, 1980. 1. http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/WASTE. 11. Eric Kluitenberg, “Distance versus Desire: Clearing the Electrosmog’, http://turbulence.org/ 2. http://giss.tv:8000/; http://theartcollider.org:8000/ ; http://abrazo.servideo.org:8000/. blog/2010/11/29/distance-versus-desire-by-eric-kluitenberg/. Included on the Turbulence. 3. http://www.webmproject.org/. org ‘Networked Performance’ blog, the text is extended from a talk given by Kluitenberg at the 4. http://www.ted.com/talks/chris_anderson_how_web_video_powers_global_innovation.html. Impakt Festival 2010, Utrecht. 5. http://www.emarketer.com/blog/index.php/emarketer-webinar-evolving-online-video-landscape/. 12. http://www.icecast.org/. 6. http://www.google.com/tv/. 13. IMHO FWIW. 260 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 261 In 1997, a net.radio workshop lead by E-Lab, nowadays RIXC, 14 took place during a meeting At the end of 2004 and during 2005, the usual hackitectura suspects co-organized madiaq 22 called Polar Circuit (Tornio/Finland). The workshop introduced a commercial software called and fadaiat. Following both events from a remote location was easy, as it was with a few Real Producer, for which no Free/Libre alternative was available at the time. Anyhow, at the hack-meetings that took place in Italy and Spain. All this led us to take steps towards building very least, the software allowed audio to be sent across the network. It was simple to operate, a similar infrastructure enabling the development of hacklabs, social centres, independent requiring only 56kbps of bandwidth to activate an ‘on air’ signal, and share a sound event networks and open source software. This was to be done for, and from, the hemispherical over the internet in real-time, between one or two listeners. You might call it intimate media, south from the hand of the already present LUG (Linux User Groups) across the continent. but this approach proved that the positions of sender and receiver were interchangeable, breaking apart all established communication or media production models. The software was used by people from Riga to trace transcultural and artistic links with colleagues in Austria, the U.K, and New Zealand, among others. In 1999, Orang, or the Open Radio Network Group, hosted live streaming from Paradiso (Amsterdam/NL) during the N5M3, 15 (Next Five Minutes 3), a conference on the Tactical Use of Media. This was not just a spontaneous action, it was the beginning of an ambitious effort to build a worldwide archive of Sound Art and other related files. The database grew exponentially, but later disappeared – the server was reported to have been ‘hacked’, and its information rendered unrecoverable. Among the many tactical media oriented people that took part in the above-mentioned meeting was Raul Marroquin, a key operator who still works on the project DeHoeksteen.live 16 through Salto, a digital television station in Amsterdam. Elsewhere on the internet, he is cutting across a variety of protocols, from http, SecondLife and Skype to Twitter, quik and IRC. His feverish rush for making live programs has dwelt in Screenshot of FLISOL.tv freej stream test. cables and improvised studios for decades. In 2006, we organized a variant of the Festival Internacional de Installacion de Software Libre. This effort was named FLISOL.tv, 23 and was documented via wikis. We also provided IRC In 2003, Okupa Futura (Asturias/Spain) received first-hand exposure to open source code (Internet Relay Chat) support to encourage everyone involved with the Latin American Install for streaming media. An event organized by Hackitectura 17 used a ‘squatted’ architecture, as Fest to adopt and use software called freej. 24 This was provided by the hackers at dyne.org, we were hosted by the multiple potentialities of a distributed T.A.Z, 18 crossing networks, and who were always ready to implement new features. One such feature allowed the selection heading from immediatism 19 to immediacy. 20 The Placard 21 festival operates in a similar vein of frame-rate so as to economize on bandwidth, which is crucial when one is behind a very and spirit. Back in 2004 (Mulhouse/France) sound streams met video flows. This was the first limited data transfer link. 25 Thanks to another netizen known as Chaser we were able to run time we had a stable feed using a GNU/Linux laptop running Gentoo, plus the well-known unstable software Pd (a.k.a PureData), which had just recently integrated video modules to encode video/audio packets. It took a good while to compile and install such objects, but we 22. http://mcs.hackitectura.net/tiki-index.php?page=MAPA:+cartografiando+el+territorio+madiaq. succeeded on both the tech and party fronts. The core infrastructure was ready. 23. h ttp://www.flisol.info/FlisolTv. 24. http://freej.org/, this was the one line command to stream: freej /dev/video0 -s 320x240 -T 6 -V -1 -i. 25. I RC chat with one of freej’s developers: 14. h ttp://rixc.lv/; http://rixc.lv/net.art.lv/index.php?obj_id=1029&kat_id=215 =. [00:16] try latest svn for fps 15. http://www.n5m.org/n5m3/. [00:16] freej -f ... 16. h ttp://dehoeksteen.live.nu/. [00:16] jaja! perfect! 17. http://mcs.hackitectura.net/tiki-index.php. [00:16] :) 18. http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Temporary_Autonomous_Zone. [00:16] but it doesn’t work with video 19. ‘Immediatism is a political philosophy embracing the virtues of immediate social interactions with [00:17] test it because I havn’t tested it yet :) people as a means of countering the antisocial consequences of consumerist capitalism’. http:// [00:17] wait I have to commit en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Immediatism. [00:17] ahh its fine, we need just streams no video :) 20. ‘ Immediacy is a philosophical concept related to time and temporal perspectives, both visual, [00:17] no rush cognitive. Considerations of immediacy reflect on how we experience the world and what reality [00:17] im here helping a kid in colombia with his freej install is’. http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Immediacy_(philosophy). [00:18] great :) 21. h ttp://leplacard.org/. [00:18] yeap, you will see, it will be a mad event..march 24 262 Video Vortex Reader II Moving iMages Beyond youtuBe teChnologiCal appRoaChes 263 embrace more participants and grow larger. Even today, in the days of Ubuntu, 28 we are not yet ready to be running and operating a Linux based system. A few years back, anyone using a Macintosh was banned and bullied by the typical Linux evangelist. In the last few years we have seen Adobe Flash take over through a few not- worth-mentioning commercial plat- forms. In any case, this state of things is temporary, as HTML5 now allows embedding tags for